?:if^: THE CELEBRATED Controversial Discussion BETWEEN THE REV. THOMAS MAGUIRE AND THE REV. RICHARD T. P. POPE, WHICH TOOK PLACE AT THE LECTURE-ROOM OF THE DUBLIN INSTITUTION, WHERE O'CONNELL AND OTHERS PRESIDED. A. FULL, COMPLETE, AND AUTHENTIC REPORT. NEW YORK : D. & J. SADLIER & CO., 31 BARCLAY STREET. MONTREAL ; 275 Notre-Dame Street. Th8 Library OP C&NeREss WASHINGTON Copyright, D. & J. SADLIER & CO. INTRODUCTION. As introductory to the Report of the important ContioversiaJ Diseiission between the Rev. Messrs. Pope and Maguire, we feel It our duty to lay before the Public the arrangements which preceded the meetings for the above object. A meeting was held on Wednesday, the 11th of April, 1827, at the house of Mr. Tims, in Grafton street, at which Messrs. Pope and Maguire were present ; when it was resolved, that as the points about to be discussed equally affected the Protestant and Roman Catholic Churches, so there should be an equality ill every particular, in order that the public, on the after consid- eration, might be satisfied that the Discussion had been conducted in the most impartial manner, and entered upon with the spirit of kindness and mutual good feeling. After several meetings, in which we have the gratification to SJiy, every disposition was evinced on both sides to act with liberality and candor, while at the same time principle was upheld with uncompromismg steadiness, the Reverend Gentlemen having finally settled the points for discussion, and the undersigned definitely and with their entire approbation, having arranged the preliminaries, the day of meeting was fixed jor the 19th day ol \pril. From the impossibility of procuring the Rotunda for six su**cessive days, (the shortest time the discussion could last,) ,ind no more spacious or equally commodious place for meeting pipsentmg itself, the Lecture-room of the Dublin Institution, Sackville street, was taken ; and in the result manifested that, as to situation, necessity bad compelled, what judgment ultimately apnraved 4 INTRODUCTORY STATEMENT. The preliminaries entered into were as follows . I. irrangonent agreed upon for the proposed discussion between tk^ Rev. Mr. Pope and the Rev. Mr, Maguire, April 12, 1827. L The Discussion to commence on Thursday, the 19th ihBtant, and continue from day to day until closed. II. The Meetings to be presided over by two Chairmen on« Protestant and one Roman CathoUc. III. The business to commence each day at eleven o'clock^ kuid to close at three, with the exception of the first day, which will close at four o'clock. IV. The Discussion to be limited to three points by each party, viz : MR. POPE. 1st, Infallibility; 2d, Purgatory; 3d, Transubstantiatiwi. MR. MAGUIRE. 1st, The divine right of private judgment to prcnounce upon the authenticity^ integrity^ and canonicity^ of ScriptiJie, and to determine its meaning in articles of faith. 2d, The justification of the Reformation. 3d, The Protestant Churches do not possess that unity whiiii forms the distinctive mark of the true Church of Chiist V. The points to be discussed in the following order; 1st day, - - - Mr. Pope, 1st point. 2d do. - - - Mr. Maguire, do. 3d do. ... Mr. Pope, 2d point. 4th do. - - - Mr. Maguire, do. 5th do. - - - Mr. Pope, 3d point. 6th do. - - - Mr. Maguire, do. VI. Not more than one pomt to be spoken to at a tmie. VII. No new point to be spoken to by either party, until the pomt under consideration is fully and finally closed. VIII. The speeches and replies to be limited to half an hour %nd each point to occupy but one day at the utmost. N. B. The number of minutes which may be lost before the beginning of each day's discussion, to be added to the period of closing the business of the day. IX. Admission to be by tickets only, for which shall be charged the sum of , the surplus of money so collected, aft^r defraying all the expenses attending the Discussion, to be handed over to the Mendicity. X. The Meeting to be open to the Press, but a special Reporter for each party to be employed, who shall be responsible INTRODUCTORY STATEMENT. O for the accuracy of the reports that shall be made of the speeches. Biid entire business of the discussion.* XL Two door-keepers to be provided, one Roman Catholic aiul one Protestant. XII. No indication to be admHted of approbation or disappro- bation. XIII. The authorised copy of the speeches to be authenticated by the signatures of the Rev. Mr. Pope, and Rev. Mr. Maguire T. Maguire, P. M. Singer, Richard T. P. Pope, John Lawless. II. Further Preliminary Regulations for the Proceedings of the Meeting of the Rev. Mr, Pope, and Rev. Mr. Maguire, agreed to by the undersigned, on the part of the above Gentlemen respectively. L No person whatever to be permitted to address the aieeiing but the Rev. Mr. Pope, and Rev. Mr. Maguire. II. No part of the auditory to interfere in any way whatever with the Rev. Gentlemen above named, or with the subject matter of the discussion. III. The undersigned to be at liberty to explain any part of the preliminary arrangements, if called upon to do so from the Chair. IV. The Chairmen are requested to prevent any manifestation of approbation or disapprobation, and to eni^orce perfect silence in the meeting. P. iE. Singer, Dublin^ \Sth ApriU 1827. John Law^less. TIL Further Articles of Agreement entered into by the undersigned^ on the part of Messrs. Pope and Maguire. I. The parties not to exceed four speeches each during any one day. Merely calling on the opposite party for proofs not to be considered as a speech. II. Declining to speak in turn by either party, when it is his rotation, or speaking short of the limited period of half an hour, ti be considered as one of the four speeches of the day. Ill The business of each day to close after each party has ifoken, or hai the opportunity of speaking ybwr times, although It uhould not have reached the hour of three o'clock ; it being hereby again declared that agreeably to the regulations of the 12th instant, should the discussion reach three o'clock, the number of minutes which may have elapsed after eleven o'clock, Hhe hour fixed for commencing the discussion on each day) ♦ The Special Reporters appointed on this occasion were Mr. P. D. HAftDf ftnd iVir. J. Sheridan. 1* b iiiiKODUCTORJ^ STATEMENT. ehal. be added to the time allotted to the last speaker, on e^ch day, so as to complete his half hour, should he desire to continue for that time, although such addition shall exceed three o'clock by so many minutes. P. I£i. Singer, 20/A ^pril, 1827. John Lawless. The cnairs having been taken, on the morning of the 19th of April by Admiral Oliver, as the Protestant, and Daniel 3'CoNNELL, Esq, as the Roman Catholic Chairman, the latter briefly observed, '• That he considered it necessary to state, that the Gentlemen who had been appointed to make the preliminary arrangements would read the particular rules by which the "meeting was to be governed ; and as he felt assured that the mere reading of the rules v/ould be quite sufficient to induce every gentleman to comply with them, he would not make any further observations.'' The friend appointed by Mr. Pope having been then called upon, the document No. 2, was read, as containing the rule« unmediately relating to the meeting. The undersigned, in making the foregoing statement, have discharged a duty which they felt to be incumbent upon them ; and they have to express their gratification, that so important a discussion, and one so likely to excite the mind beyond the exact limits of discretion, was conducted with becoming zeal, but at the same time with good feeling, and a conduct suited to the momentous business in hand. They are also equally gratiii»»d, that the arrangements which they entered into, were such as ♦o give satisfaction to the auditory, and ensure that regularity arn aF they are on—but they will not, they cannot." At a meeting of the Hibernian Society, which took place on ihe following Tuesday, I commented on the Socinian question, expressed my willingness to meet Mr. Maguire, and requested that, if there were any Roman Catholics at the meeting, they would convey my answer to Mr. Maguire. Fearing, however, that my observations might escape his notice, and being anxious that he should not be ignorant of my readiness to meet him, I addressed a letter to the Editor of the Roscommon and Leitrim Gazette^ which, after treating on the subject of the Socinian controversy, concludes thus : — " And now. Sir, in conclusion, I beg leave to state, that I am ready to discuss the subject of this letter, or the Roman Catholic controversy generally, with Mr. Maguire, or any other gentleman, believing that "magna est Veritas et prfcvalebit." Such, then, gentlemen, was my acceptance of what I con- ceived to be a challenge from Mr. Maguire. Some time after, a letter appeared in the Weekly Register, from Mr. Maguire, in which he gives the following report of a part of his speech at Carrick-on-Shannon: — " I there observed,'' he says, " that in flippancy of tongue, tortuosity of mind, and sophistry of argu- ment, the Bibk-men stood unrivalled; but that were I to meet the arch-crusader on the arena of polemical disputation, (and this handsome compliment I intended for you) I would confine him to a few solid, stubborn objections, of which, if he gave a clear logical solution, I myself would become a Biblical, and raise my feeble voice in the loud, holy, profitable cry.'' To- wards the conclusion of this letter, he grounds a proposal upon a concession which I could never grant, pamely, " That the ob- jection of the Socinian remains unanswered and unanswerable^ (the principle and practice of private interpretation alone consid- ered)." His proposal was as follows : — "Should you have the manliness to make this necessary admission, which I must insist upon as a sine qua non, I shall afford you ampler canvass, and a rougher sea, viz : of all the charges which have been, and now can be advanced against the doctrines of the Roman Catholic church> you shall be at liberty to select whatever three you deem most glaring and untenable, whilst I, in my turn, shall bring three prime chargejj against the doctrines of your churchf and THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. V ftius we shall be both plaintiff and defendant reciprocally." In mv next letter to Mr. Maguire, I observed, " It is apparent from your own report, that you either did not challenge me, or that you have retracted the challenge ; the expression ' were I tc meet tlie arch-crusader,' conveying most undoubtedly a very dif- fei ^nt meaning from that contained in the words, ' I challenge Wulffe or Pope to meet me,' ascribed to you in the Register. I here distinctly call upon you either publicly to confess that you did not challenge me, or to meet me for public discussion, 'Ftruru horum mavis accipe.' I write strongly, but not in the spirit of polemical bravado." I shall now rea i to you the concluding paragraph of Mr. Maguire's last letter . " I do declare, dis- tinctly, that J never did invite you to Sitiva voce disputation ;— and I as distinctly declare, that I now accept your challeitge and will meet you at the Rotunda, in Dubhn." He says, he never did challenge me — you, gentlemen, will judge, whjther 1 had not reason to consider his speech reported in the Register ^ as containing a challenge. I again wrote to Mr. Maguire, and ^,he result of that correspondence has been, that after an amica- ble arrangement of prelimmaries, we are met here this day to discuss the various subjects which have been agreed upon ; and I most willingly bear testimony to the good feeling which has been evinced by my reverend opponent and his friend. Permit me to say, gentlemen, that we should hail the appear- ance of Mr. Maguire amongst us this day, as exhibiting a noble display of independent feeling and judgment. I say, it is a noble display of independent feeling — it is manly and bold in Mr. Maguire to appear here to advocate his principles ; espe- cially as it is well known that the Roman Catholic Primate of Ireland has publicly expressed his disapprobation of such a proceeding. I say, then, it is manly and bold in him, circum- stanced as he is, thus to come forward and claim his privilege, as an intellectual and rational being, of thinking and acting foi himself. The present meeting is certainly one of a very peculiai character, and will doubtless be regarded as a memorable eveni in the history of this country. We have on the one hand Dr. Curtis, the Titular Primate, expressing his disapprobation of 'he proceedings ; but, on the other hand, has the Roman Catholic Archbishop of Dublin interfered to prevent Mr. Maguire from attending here this day ? or has the Roman Catholic Bishop of Mr. Maguire's diocess (Kilmore) taken any notice whatever of the extraordinary circumstance of one of the Clergy disobey* ing the wishes of the Titular Primate ? Gentlemen, it appears, that neither the Roman Catholic Archbishop of Dubhn, nor the Roman Catholic Bishop of Kilmore has interposed theii authority in the business And I do say 'iiat by their siieuce oa 10 THE INFALLIBILITY OF Ihe subject they liave given an indirect sanction to the proceed ing ; for they possess the power of preventing Mr. Maguire from attending, and that power they have not exercjsed. I beheve, I am right, in stating that there are some Roman Catho- lic Clergymen here this day. I hail their presence amongst ua with great satisfaction, as, in my mind, by their attendance, they also give their sanction to the proceedings. With respect to tile preliminaries, I have one observation to make — it regards myself — it is thought by some, that I possess a talent for declamatory speaking. Supposing this to be the case, I am by tha arrangements which have been entered into, relative to the mode in which the discussion is to be conducted, precluded from avaihng myself of any advantage which this talent, if I possess it, might give me — as it has been agreed upon that neither my reverend opponent nor myself shall be allowed to address the meeting for longer than half an hour at a time — my soarings must be contracted — my pinions must be fettered down. It is not by flights of fancy or poetical allusions that this meeting is to be swayed — argument is the only weapon that can be wielded here this day. We must be governed by the only unerring standard, — the word of God. One word to the geiitlemen of the public Press — all I ask is justice — justice alike to each of us — let our principles and opinions go fairly before the world- let the world scrutinize and examine them, and then give its verdict — I shall not at present occupy more of your time. Mr. Maguire rose, and spoke to the following effect : — Gen- tlemen — As my friend, Mr. Pope, has entered into a very long narrative, touching the circumstances that have led to the pre- sent discussion, it will not be considered egotism in me, if 1 give you a brief sketch of them, as far as they regard myself. I happened, last November, to come to the town of Carrick-on- Shannon, on private business of importance, and I solemnly assure you, that I was not aware, until I arrived in Carrick, that a nieeting of the Catholics of Leitrim was about to be held there I was pressed by a few particular friends to remain for the meet- ing which was fixed for the next day ; and on attending at the meeting, a resolution on the subject of education was pit into my hands to move. In doing so, I prefaced it with a few observations, and I distinctly recollect saying, that my great objection to the disputations upon the indiscriminate circulation of the Scriptures was, that they all ended in a wordy war, and mis- erable speechifying. I objected to that course, and I said, that on the contrary, solid argument, logical deduction, and elos© fighting T»hould be adopted. I went on to say, hat such was the course I was determined to pursue ; and that were I (you Mil! THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. II observe that my expr(!Ssion was an hypothetical one to meet the arch-cr"sader himself, in the arena of polemical dis\ utation, in- stead of suffering him to indulge in flights of fancy, which would only obscure, or in strains of eloquence that would only confuse, I would confine him to a few solid objections, such as thai respecting the Socinian, which, if he would satisfactorily solve to me, I would myself consent to become a Biblical. You will observe that my expression was put hypothetically. I did not say that I would meet him, but that were I to meet him, I would avoid the flights of fancy and speechifying, and confine him to a few solid objections. A report of the observations \\hich 1 made at this meeting appeared in the Weekly Register, and I was there made to say that I was ready to meet the Popes, &c, &c. I can assure this assembly, that no such expression as that fell from me on that occasion. A newspaper controversy, the necessary consequence of a misrepresentation on the part of Mr. Pope, ensued. Mr. Pope addressed a long letter to me, through the columns of the Evening JSlaiL In that letter he attempted to solve the objection with regard to the Socinian. I replied, to show that he had not solved that question ; and I trust, before this polemical conflict is over, to prove to you that he has not solved it, and that he never will. With regard to what he has said about the Roman Catholic Primate of Ire- land, it would have been more dignified in Mr. Pope to be silen t*n that point. — I avoided hearing or seeing any thing from my own Bishop, Dr. O'Reilly. Since I came to Dublin, I have not received any communication from him, verbal or written. — If I have thus come forward in this public place, and on this solomn occasion, I have not done so until I have been repeatedly challenged tu the conflict. A number of persons were hired, I Know not by whom, and sent round my parish with green bags containing copies of the challenge, which thev circulated most mdusuiously in every possible direction, 'x'he challenge was put into every cabin, it was posted upon eve:y wall in the county, I state these circumstances to you, as they will form with you some excuse for the appearance here this day of a man who bas lived amidst the bogs of Leitrim — a man who has been the inhabitant of the mountains, and who never before addressed an enlightened audience like the present. It must appear to you from th's relation of facts, that it was no overweening desire of notoriety that pressed me forward. Over me Dr. Curtis and Dr Murray exercise no direct control ; and I trust that, in hold- mg a conversation in this public room, I do not involve myself in a breach of clerical jurisdiction, i am well aware that the Roman Catholic Bishops of Ireland never will recognize the prill' iple of public discussions upon matters of religion in thl*^ 12 THE IMWLLIBILITY OF country— disturbed as it is by moral, polemical, and political diP ferences and coriflict>j. I disclaim, I deny, with uplifted arms, any thing like an indirect sanction of these proceedings on the part of the Catholic Prelates as mentioned by Mr. Pope. I stand forward here, of myself, to defend my religious principles, which have grown with my growth, and for the assertion of which I am ready if called upon, to lay down my life. These princi- ples I anr determined to maintain, unless indeed Mr. Pope shaH convince me that I am in error. If I be convinced that I ant in error, I am ready to change my religious opinions, and to adopt whatever creed reason might in that case point out as pre- ferable to my own. Having stated so much with respect to the challenge, I have a few words to say with respect to Dr. Cur- tis. It may not be inappropriate here to remark, that though I am independent of the control of Dr. Curtis, the Roman Catholic Primate of all Ireland, I am ready to listen to any advice emanating from him, with respect and dutiful attention. 1 am well aware that obedience is one of the great and principal duties of the Christian — I know, as the Apostle has it, that he who refuses to obey the authorities set over him by Divine Provi- dence resisteththe ordinances of God, and procureth to himself damnation. I would not, therefoie, disobey my superiors, as, in doing so, I would be guilty of a violation of moral principle. It may not be out of place for me to mention to you the personal disadvantages under which I labor on the present occasion. Mr. Pope is an old practitioner in the business of disputation. He has become, by habit, eloquent on the subject, and he has a fatal facility of expressing himself, sufficient to make any cause in his hands appear plausible. His system has all the charms of novelty to recommend it — and fashion, we all know, is a formid- able temptation. He has arrayed in his favor worldly power and influence. He has, besides, all the saints and sinners o modern times, whose pride and self-interest will secure birr attentive ears. He knows how to estimate the value of such influence. I do not mean to say that it has any weight with hini in t^e assertion of his religious principles. I solemnly declare thai I givo him. credit for sincerity. But I have one complaint, and a serious (>ne, to make against him. He has left m.e little or no ground for attack. I could not obtain from Mi. Pope, without difficulty, a profession of his creed, ^^'hen called upon to deiine his tailh, he has called himself a Protestant. Mr. Pope protests against the church of England — so do I. He protests against the church of Scotland — so do I. Against the church in Germany — so do I. Against the Greek church — so do I. Mr. Pope, in fact protests against every church, but, in a more especial and particular manner, does he protect against th« THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 13 ^errors" of Popery ; and if any errors do exist in Popery, I am ready lo protest as strongly against thenn as i r. Pope. So far I am equally a Protestant with Mr. Pope, and my Protestantism g:)es as tar as his, consistmg, as it does, in a simple negation of Popery, if it be understood in the sense in which Mr. Pope -^ould exhibit it. On the other hand, Mr. Pope has the whole .:ge of Roman Catholicism, whence to select three favorite- charges against my known and established principles. Wher? ire the points which I am to select against him "I In the confes- sion of faith which he made to me, he admitted the doctrines of tha Trinity, the Incarnation and Justification, by Faith only. Now there is not one of those principles which I do not admit except the word " only." So far it is difficult for me to selec; three principal charges against him. It is true that Mr. Pope — he describes them as plunged in the darkesi U THE INFALLIBILITY OF Atheism. Every thing in the scripture is explained away ther©, and the test of natural philosophy is absurdly applied to the mira- i^les of our Redeemer. If the principle of private judgment be once recognized, then had the heretics of former days, Arius, Cerinthus, Manicheus, &c, as good a right to the exercise of private judgment as Mr. Pope, or any gentleman of the 19th century. ][ those heretics had a right to exercise it, upon what principle did the Catholic church condemn them — cut them off 53 rotten members, and treat them, as Christ said those shall be jreated who would not hear the church, as heathens and pub- licans, and reprobates upon the earth? Mr. Pope, I suppose, recognizes the first four councils, and the Athanasian creed — he must then admit that the church had a right to condemn Arius, Eutyches, and Manicheus, and every other heretic and heresy that appeared for the first four centuries of the Christian aera. If he acknowledged the power in the church to condemn heresy in the first century, why not acknowledge it now ? Gentlemen, I am about to enter upon my proofs of the authority of the Catho- lic church. Mr. Pope's rules of faith will be amply discussed hereafter, but now you are about to hear, what, to some of you may appear the antiquated doctrine of church authority, which hos been discarded by modern Reformers for the last 300 years. Mr. Pope. — I beg to call upon Mr. Maguire for proofs of the Infallibihty of the Church of Rome. Mr. Maguire. — I shall make a few preHminary observation? before I directly enter upon the subject. If t e unlimited righ^ of private judgment be recognised, then wdll a seven-fold shield be thrown over every error, however impure — every heresy, however damnable — every folly, however ridiculous. It will be the origin of every species of madness, violence, and fanati- cism. What will each of the heretics say 1 "I exercise my judgment conscientiously and to the best of my ability — I have prayed to God that he niight enlighten me with his grace. I have taken every means in my power to arrive at the truth, and my decided conviction now is that Christ is not the Son of God." Thus would Arianism, that heresy which distracted the ehurch of Christ, and which, if the protecting influence of tlie Almighty had not been extended to his church, would have eradicated every Christian principle, and sapped the foundation of that heavenly and noble edifice, become justifiable. How could Mr. Pope blame the Arian I Mr. Pope would appeal tc the scriptures — but in vain he would appeal to the scriptures agamst the obstinate Arian or Socinian. They would in reply appeal to their conscience — they will sav that they have read THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 15 the scriptures, ard that they have as good a right to interproi their meaning as Mt Pope. Can Mr. P^pe, who recognizes the principle of gospel hberty, blame them for their conduct? Will he, in this regard, violate that principle which is the boast of the Reformation? Who is to judge between Mr. Pope and die Socinian or Anan ? God alone can be their judge, and ihat not till the soul is separated from the body. Mr. Pope has called upon me for proofs of the infallibility of the church of Ptome. I beseech you, gentlemen, for the tender mercies of God^ as far as in you lies, to divest yourselves of every fettling, of every prejudice, of every prepossession in favor of your own opinions that have been dear to you, and to weigh in the honest balance of sincerity the principles which I shall lay down, and wnicn I shall invariably found upon texts of scripture, and upon the authority established in the church for the first five ages of Christianity. I assure you I do hope, with the blessing of heaven, and by the influence of the Holy Ghost, to make some converts. ! am serious, believe me. Protestants are not in the habit of examining the Roman Catholic rehgion. The very name of Popery is sufficient to frighten them — the basilisk does not appear half so dangerous in their eyes as Popery. And for my part I should not wonder at their thinking so, if Popery really were what they have been taught to believe it is. It is mcumbent on you then to commence an examination of the tenets of the Roman Catholic religion. The first text to which I shall refer you, is taken from Isaiah, lix, 21. It is admittet. by Protestants, that the inspired writer in this passage spoke of the church that was to come. " This is my covenant with them, saith the Lord ; my spirit that is in thee, and my words that I have put into thy mouth, shall not depart out of thy mouth, nor out of the mouth of thy seed, nor out of the mouth of thy seed's s^ed, saith the Lord, from henceforth and for ever." But I need not dwell at length upon this text, as I am fur- nished with several strong and conclusive texts in the New Testament. " As the Father has sent me, I also send you," says the Lordj addressmg his Apostles. Again — " All power is given to me in heaven and in eartli ; go ye, therefore, and teach all nations, baptizing in the name of the Fatiier, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you : and lo ! I am with you all days even to the consummation of the world." — MattheiVj xxviii, 18, 19, 20. Christ here declares, that the same power given to him by t\ie Father he communicates to his Apostles vithout limitation, moral or personal, it is a maxim in ethics, Ubi lex non dis- tinguit, nee nos distinguere debemus. The Father conferred upon Christ infallibiL'ty, and here he directly communicates uli bis power to the Apostles, Perhaps it will he said, thai il 16 THE INFALLIBILITY OF rested there, and was to cease with the lives of th^ \postlc9 Christ declares the contra y, for he adds, ** Lo ! 1 am with you all days, even to the consummation of th^ world." Were the Apostles to live for ever, or rather was not thii power to be communicated to their representatives on earth in whose persons they would morally live for ever? St. Paul H iting to Timothy says, *' The church ot the living God, is the pillar and the ground of truth."— ii. 15. Again, our Saviour says, " He that heareth you, heareth me, and he that despiseth you, despisetb Die, and he that despiseth me, despiseth Him that sent me." — Luke x, 16. Also St. John, iv, 6. " He that knoweth God, heareth us, he that is not of God, heareth us not, oy this we know the spirit of truth, and the spirit of error." Therefore, those who did not hear the Apostles preaching and instructing, were branded with the mark of the spirit of error In Mark, xvi, 15, 16, we read, " He saith unto them, Go ye into the whole world, and preach the gospel to every creature. He that believeth and is baptized, shall be saved j but he that believeth not, shall be condemned." Is there, I would ask, any thing like a commandment here to |ive the scriptures to every m.an, woman, and child, and let hem interpret them as they might please ? — No. — But if " he will not hear the church, let him be to thee as the heathen and the publican." 1 ask you, in the sincerity of your hearts, do you think that Christ would thus bind mankind in obedience to an authority, which coula lead them into damnable error ? Our Lord says emphatically, and without limitation or exception, " he that will not hear the church, let him be to thee as the heathen and the publican." This, no doubt, will appear a novel doctrine to many of my aearers, who have been taught to recognize no authority m my church, and w^ho have long worshipped the idol of private judgment. Again we read in Hebrews, xiii, 17, " Obey your Prelates, for they watch as being to render an account of your souls." I am at a loss to discover how the Prelates would be obliged iO render an account of our souls if it be not our duty to obey them ; but if, on the contrary, w^e may read the scriptures and interpret them at our own risk, must it follow in that case, as a Decessary consequence, that the Bishops, to whom we ackuow* HIE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 17 ledge no obedit nee, shall be ace )untable for the salvation oi our souls 1 •* Oh ! Israel, Israel, destruction is thy own — thy help is only in nie." How can the Bishops be accountable for our souls, if we do not make them our spiritual guides'? I could quote twenty additional passages from scripture in support of the doctrina which I advocate, as — •* Ye ai e the light of the world" — " ye are th« salt of the earth" — " wha^ •oOYsr ye shall bind on earth shall be bound in heaven," ^c. I ask you, in the unaffected sincerity of a Christian heart, if Christ did not intend to bind mankind in obedience to hia Church, is it not astonishing that he should have put forward in 80 many and such clear texts of scripture, the authority of that church ? I challenge Mr. Pope to show me a single dogma in the Christian dispensation more clearly revealed in scripture. I affirm that he could not prove the divinity of Christ upon texts so clear — that cardinal dogma of Christianity is not established upon texts so plain, so natural, and so obvious. The Homilies of the church of England tell us that for upwards of 800 years, " all Christendom v/as involved in damnable idolatry and error." Could Christ himself leave hundreds of millions of men for 900 years in error 1 I ask — would he lead us into the belief of an infallible church, possessing not nifalUbility ? Hav- ing said so much upon the subject of infallibility, let me now ^ive you the belief of the first ages of the church which are admitted by all Protestants, and even by Luther himself to have taught the truth, and to have been pure in doctrine. The quotations which I shall here make from the Holv^ Fathers will go before the learned world — I will tell the page and the book m which they will be found — I have myself, in seven instances, consulted the originals, and finding them so correct, I can vouch for the accuracy of the other quotations. The first authority which I shall quote is Irenaeus, a father of the Latin church, who lived in the second century. He was by birth a Greek, and his work in the original is lost, but a Latin transla** tion has been preserved. " Things being made thus plain (he is alluding to the derivation of doc- trine from the Apostles,) it is not from others that truth is to be sought, H'hich is easily learned from the Church, (or in the words of the original — quam facile est ab ecclesid sumere,) For to this church (he continues) as into a rich repository, the Apostles committed whatever is divine truth ; that each one, if so aiclined, might thence draw the drink of life. This is the loay of life; all other teachers must be :shunned as thieves and robbers. For what ? Should there be any dispute on a point of small moment, must not recourse be had to the most ancient churches, where the Apostles resided, and from them collect the truth ?" — J Iv. He- es. lib. iii cap, iv, page 20^ Ed. Oxoiui. 1702. 2* 18 THE INFALLIBILITY OF And again. "It is a duty to obey the Priests of the t/tw ch — Hs qui u tcelesia sunt Presbyteri, obedire oportet — who bold their sncc ssion fi(nn the Apostles, and who with that succession, received agreeably to the will of thfl Father, the sure pledge of truth, {Charisima veritatis certum;) but as to thoae who belong not to that leading succession they may be united, they shoild he suspected, either as heretics or schismatics, proudly extolling and pleasing themselves, or as hypocrites, actuated by vain glory or the Jove of lucre. But they whi) impugn the truth, and excite others to oppose the church of God, their fate is with Dathan and Abiron ; while schismatics who riclale the church unity — ^wi scindunt et separant unitatem ecclesicn — experience tbt punisiment which fell on King Jeroboam." My next authority is St. Clement, of Alexandria, Lib. stro* matum, Book vii, page 883, Oxford edition. He was a Greek Father, and Master of the School of Alexandria. He hved in the second century. " Those who seek may find the truth, and clearly learn from the scrip- tures themselves, in what manner heretics have gone astray, and on the contrary, in what manner accurate knowledge and the right doctrine are to be found in the true and ancient Church only. He ceases to be faithful to the Lord, who revolts against the received doctrines of the Church, to embrace the opinions of heretics. Heretics make use, indeed, of the scriptures ; but then they use not all the sacred books ; those they use are corrupted, or they chiefly urge ambiguous passages. They corrupt those truths which agree with the inspired word, and were delivered by the holy Apostles and teachers, opposing the divine tradition by human doctrines, that they may establish their heresy. — But it is clear from what has been said, that there is only ont true Churchy which alone is ancient, and there is but one God and one Lord." TertuUian, who flourished in the end of the second century, and was a citizen of Carthage, in his book De Prescript, cap. 6, page 331. Edit. Pamelhana, 1662, says, — " We are not allowed to mdulge our own humour, nor to choose what another has invented. We have the Apostles of our Lord as founders, who were not themselves the inventors nor authors of what they left us ; but they have faithfully taught the world that doctrine which they received from Christ," Ibidem, cap. 21. "Now to know what the Apostles taught — that is, what Christ revealed to them, recourse must be had to the Churches which they founded, and which they instructed by word of mouth, and by their Epistles, For it is plain, that all doctrine which is conformable to the faith of thesi» mother Churches is true, being that which they received from the Apostles, the Apostles from Christ, Christ from God ; and that all other opinions must be novel and false.'*^ Century the Third. — Origen in his preface to the first bock of his Periarchon, page 47, writes, — " As there are .nany who think they believe what Christ taught, and some of these diifer from others, it becomes necessary that all should profess that doctrine, which came down from the Apostles, and now continues in die Church {usque ad presens in ecclesia permanens,) That alone is tr^th which in nothing differs from what has been thus dehvered. ((^ua %n iwxUsi cJk teclesvuMca et apostolica discordat tradiUone,^^) THE ROMAN CATHDLIC CHURCH. I* And homLy the 6th, on Leviticus : — •* Let him look to it, who arrogantly puffed up, contemns the aposCoJic words. To me it is good to adhere to apostohc men, as to Grod and hit Christ, and to draw intelligence from the Scriptures, according to the sense, that has been dehvered by them. If we follow the mere letter of the Scrip- tures, and take the interpr'^tation of the law, as the Jews commonly explain it, I shall blush to confess that the Lord should give such law. But if the law of God be understood as the Church teaches^ then only does it tranactnd all human law, and is worthy of him that gave it" And again, Tract 29, on Matthew, tome 3, page 864 : " As often as heretics produce the canonical Scripture, in which ei ery Christian agrees and beUeves, they seem to say, * Lo ! with us is the word of truth.' But to them (the heretics) we cannot give credit, nor depart from the first and ecclesiastical tradition : we can believe only as the succeeding churches of God have delivered." I may observe, there is only a translation of Origen's wciks ill the Latin remaining, except a few fragments of the original Greek. St. Cyprian, bishop and martyr, in his treatise De Unitate Ecclesiae, observes : — " Men are exposed to error, because they turn not their eyes to the foun- tain of truth, nor is the head sought for, nor the doctrine of the heavenly Father upheld, which things would any one seriously weigh, no long arguing would be necessary. The proof is easy — Christ addresses Peter, * 1 say to thee, thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my Church, and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it.' He that does not hold this unity of the Church, can he think that he holds the faith ? He that opposes and with- utands the Church, can he trust that he is in the Church ?" — Page 108, ^c.** And in his 66th Epistle, page 166, Oxford Edition : — "Christ says to his Apostles, and through them to all his ministers, who by a regular ordination succeed to them, — * He that heareth you, heareth me, and he that despiseth you, despiseth me.' (Luke x. 16.) And thence have schisms and heresies arisen, when the bishop who is one, and presides over the Church, is proudly despised — Dum Episcopus qui unus est, el Ecclesice prcesty contemnitur,^^ Century the Fourth. — Lactantius, a convert to the Christian religion, the most accomplished scholar of the age, and tutor to Crispus, the emperor Constantine's son, and who was styled " the Christian Cicero,'' — In the fourth book of his Institutions, c. 30, p. 232, Cambridge edition, thus speaks : '•*The Catholic Church alone retains the true worship — this is the sourra oi iruth — this is the dwelling of faith — this the temple of God, into which h« tbU enters not, and from which he that goes out, forfeits the hope of life, and W eternal salvation — a spe vitce ac salutis eternoe, alienus esV Eusebius of Palestine, in his Prxmium de Eccles* Tkeol page 60, Ed. Colon. 1687: "To what has been mentioned, I shall add my reasoning on the diviniu of our Saviour; but nothing newly invented from myself; nothing From mv own closet, nor resting on the opinion of my own s^agacity. I shall d ;live"i the uncorrupted doctrine of the Church of God, which once received fron tsta and eye witnesses, this chuivch preserves inviolate." to THE INFALLIBILITY OF St. Athana^jius, Patriarch of Alexandria, first Epist. ad Ser§f^ p^ium^p. 676, Ed. Bened. 1698: " Let us again consider ftom the earliest period, the tradition, the doctrine, and fiiith of the Cathohc church which God first delivered, which the Apostlei proclaimed, and the succeeding Fathers fostered and preserved. On thes6 authoiitios the church is founded, and whoever falls from her communion neithof is, nor can be called a Christian." Epist. ad Marcell, 9 1, p. 996, Ed. Bened. 1698: " If you wish to confound the opinions of the Gentiles and of the heretic^ hac to shew that the knowledge of God is not to oe found with them, but *U Urie *hurch alone, you may repeat the words of the 79th psalm." St. Hilary, in his Commentary on Matthew, c. xvii, p. 676, Ed. Bened : *• Christ (teachins; from the ship) intimates, that they who are out of the chuich can possess no understandmg of the divine word. For the ship is an emblem of the church, within which, as the word of life is planted and preached, so they who are without, being as barren and useless sands, can- not understand it." St. Basil the Great, Bishop of Caesarea, in Cappadocia, Lib. de Spirit. Sanct. chap, xvi, t. 3, p. 34 : "The order and government of the church, is it not manifestly and beyond contradiction the work of the Holy Ghost? For he gave to his church — first, apostles ; secondly, prophets ; thirdly, teachers," &c. — 1 Cor, xii, 28. St. Ephrem of Edessa, whose works were published in Latin oy Gerard Vesius, at Rome, and in Greek by Thwaites, at Oxford, and who was the disciple of St. James, Bishop of Nissibis in Mesopotamia, Sermon 25 — Adv. Heres. t. 4, p, 499— Edit. Quirini— Romas, 2740 : " They again must be reproved, who wander from the road, to run mto uncertain and devious tracks ; for the way of salvation holds out certain marks by which you may learn that this is the path which the Messenger of Peace trod ; while the wise whom the Holy Spirit instructed walked over; and the Prophets and Apostles pointed out to us. My brethren let us walk in this way by which his divine Son travelled. This is the royal road which leads us to happiness." St. Cyril, patriarch of Jerusalem: "The church is called Catholic because it teaches Calholicly, and with- out any omission, all points that men should know concerning things visible tnd invisible, heavenly and earthly." — Catechism, 18, No. 2, page 270. ibidem. Cat. 4, No. 20. — "Learn sedulously from the church, which aie :be books of the Old and J^ew Testament.''^ Ibidem, Cat. 5, No. ^ — '* Guard the faith, and that faith alone which if ttow delivered to thee b^ the church, confirmed as it is by all ;he scripturcfe." Mr. Pope rose and said — Gentlemen, I find it necessary, in consequence of an observation which fell from Mr. Maguire towards the conclusion of his first speech, tc give the follo^^ ing statement relative to my confession of fiith. I shall read for von a document, which was handed to Mr. Maguire, w'tl^ul tue slightest hesitation by Mr. Singer : THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHuRcH. 21 **I do not stand for\N ard as the advocate of any particular cliurch, but ot tfie great leidincr doctrines held in common by the reformed churches, ai contained in their published creeds, and as an opposer of tiie tenets of the church of Rome, aguinst which they in common protept, "Our controversy is not about church-government, bat about doi'trines. ^ "1 hold the doctrine of the Trinity. "The sufficiency of the scriptures to salvation, the Apocrypha having been rejected. " The utter depravity of human nature, and the necessity of a change of ireart, before the soul can be admitted to the kingdom of heaven. "The guilt and condemnation of man, and justification before Jod hj fiuth alone, in the finislied work of Christ. " That good works spring out necessarily of a true and lively faith. " I protest against Infallibility ; doctrine of Supererogation ; Human Merit ; Transubstantiation ; the Sacrifice of the Mass ; Service in an unknown tongue; Communion in one kind; AdoruJon of Images; an< Invocation of Saints and Angels." While I acknowledge to Mr. Maguire, that 1 could not sub- scribe to every one of the 39 articles, I beg to refer to the following articles, as a further exposition of my faith, — articles 1, 2, 4, 5, 6, 7, 9, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, 15, 16, 17, 18, and all the protestations against the church of Rome, contained in the other articles. Those are the principles which every real Protestant professes, and to them 1 most cordially subscribe. My friend has complained, that he has discovered no tangible matter on which to oppose me. Mr. Maguire should remem- ber, that we accuse the church of Rome of overwhelming the whole structure of Christianity, by the addition of novel opinions ; and, therefore, he carmot find fault with me, if my profession of faith is contained within a muf-h shorter compass than his. Mr. Maguire has touched upon some subjects, amongst others, the right of private judgment, which by oui arrangements were not to come under consideration until a future day — I shall not follow him in his wanderings, but shall at once proceed to the subject more immediately before us — the proots of the infallibility of the Roman Cathohc church. My learned friend has endeavored to prove his point, by bririg- ing forward various passages of scripture, which he, no doubt, looked upon as proofs. But I charge him at once with a ^^ petilio principii,^^ and maintain that the onus rests on him of eioving that the church of Rome is the church of Christ. Unt'l he shall bring forward proofs to demonstrate this, the passages which he has adduced relative to the church of Christ are irrelevant. My learnef friend has also brought forward various quotations from the Fathers. While I admit, that as historians and witnesses of what may have occurred in the times during which they lived, we may receive the testimony of the Fathers ; yet I do say, we are not to place any great weight apon their authority — and I contend fcr it, that we are only to 82 THE INFALLIBILITY OP receive their expositions, when those expositions approve them selves to our judgments, as in accordance with the general tenor of the sacred scriptures. Having made these general remarks upon the Fathers, I beg to read the advice given by St. xlugustin and Chrysostom, which,- perchance, may assist Mr. Maguire in deciding, whether the church of Rome be the church of Christ. From St. Augustin, "De Uniiate Ecclesicp^^^^ cap. 16, I read as follows. Speaking of the Donatists : — " [^etthem," he says, "if they can demonstrate their church not by the talk ■iid lumor of the iVCricans ; not by the Councils of their own Bishops ; not by the books of their disputers ; not by deceitful miracles, against which we tre cautioned by the word of God, but in the prescript of the law, in the predictions of the Prophets, in the verses of the Psalms, in the voice of the Shepherd himself, in the preaching and works of the Evangelists ; that is, in all canonical authorities of the sacred scriptures." St. Chrysostom also : " Formerly it might have been ascertained by various means, which was he true church, but at present there is no other means left for THOSE WHO ARE WILLING TO DISCOVER THE TRUE CHURCH OF ChRIST BUT BY THE SCRIPTURES ALONE. And why ? Becausc heresy has all outward observances in common with her. If a man, therefore, be desirous of know- mg the true Church, how will he be able to do it amidst so great a resem- blance, but by the scriptures alone? Wherefore, our Lord foreseeing that Buch a great confusion of things would take place in the latter days, ordered the Christians to have recourse to nothing but the scriptures." — Horn, 49, in Matt. xxiv. From these quotations, you will perceive, that much of the controversy resolves itself into this simple question — Are the doctrines of the church of Rome those which the Bible teaches ? How then are we to know this but from the Bible ? We must first then be in possession of the doctrines of the church of Christ, in order to determine, vrhether the church of Rome be the church of Christ — and then, forsooth, we must go back to the church of Rome, in order to learn what the doctrines of the charch of Christ are ? Methinks, my friend should have given some definition of " The Church." — He should have stated, where the infallibility of the church is lodged. Whether in a general council, inde- pendently of the Pope, or whether in the Pope independently of a s^enerai council — whether in a council and the Pope together —or in the universal church dispersed throughout the world — *br if I know not where this infallibility lies, even supposing that it did exist, of what possible use can it be to me ? I assert, that there is not a single passage throughout the entire scrip- luies, in which the word "church" means the body of the eccle- siasiicid officers exclusive of the Christian congregations over which they preside. The word church occurs in about ninety places in the New Testament * and there is not one, in which i THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 29 19 to be understood of the ecclesiastical governors of the church, to the exclusion of the people under their charge. We shall sec the opmions of the Fathers on the meaning of the word church. St. Clemens Alexandrinus, calls the church a congregation of the elect. — {Strom, 7, p. 715.) In the same sense it is used by St. Ignatius, by GritopuluB, by St. Cyril of A-lexandria, by Isidore Pelusiota, (Ig. ad Trail Crit. in Confess, Fid. c. 7. Cyril, in cap. 42, les. p. 54. Isid. ep. 246, 1. 2, p 2>i6,) and others, lobius Monachus says, that " the peop Relieving in God constitute the church." — (In Bib. Phot. Cod. 122, p. 636.) To nearly the same effect speaks St. Basil, Theophylact, (Basil ep. 393, Theoph. in 1 ad Cor. c. l,p. 164,) and other Fathers and eminent ecclesiastical writers. Zonaras, who may be considered as high authority in respect of the import of ecclesiastical terms, says, that "the word 'church,* properly denotes a congregation of the faithful." — (Ad Can. 6. Grang. p. 314.) We see, therefore, from the scriptures them- selves, and from the authority of the Fathers whom I have quoted, that the word " church" does not signify an ecclesiastical synod or a general council — but the body of the faithful. So that even supposiug it did appear from the scriptures, that the church of Christ is infallible, it is evident that that infallibility must not be restricted to the ecclesiastical rulers, but must be extended to the entire body of Christians scattered over the world, laics as well as ecclesiastics. My friend next referred to Isaiah, lix, 21, and he told us that many Protestant divines consider the prophet as speaking in that passage of the future church. I beg to say, however, that many learned Protestants have considered it as referring to the Jewish church, subsequently to their restoration and introduction to the Christian dispensation. — If it confers a privilege on any, it confers it on all wh constitute the church of Christ ; but it seems to confer particularlij on the Jewish churchy as the promise was originally addressed to them. The words are, "my spirit that is in thee shall not depart from out of thy mouth from henceforth," &c. The learned gentleman in his next remark, also followed up the peiitio principiu "as my Father sent me, so also send I you," and t ikes for granted that these words apply to successors of the Apostles. But the onus is on him to prove, that every thing said o the Apostles is also said to their successors ; and again the DRUs rests on him to show, that the ecclesiastics or Popes of Rome are the successors of the Apostles. This be has not yet 9.ttempted to show, and until he does so, of what avail are alibis assertions. Again he quotes, " Behold I am with you all days," and asks, how could he be with the Apostles to the end of the world, seeing thev \f efe mortal men '\ He should bear in mind« 84 THE INFALLTBITJTY OF that not a line of the New Testament was written wTieh n^ sprmt these words. The "end" is regarded by many as the con- summation of the Mosaical dispensation — the original word is literally " age," and not world. But Christ was in truth with the Apostles while in the flesh, in the power of his spirit ; and he will no doubt, be with tkeir doctrines (which under the influence of ths holy spirit, they committed to writing,) to the consummation of time— blessing them to the salvation of thousands yet unborn. But here I meet my friend, and deny that there are in the strict sense of the term any successors to the Apostles. When I shall see men performing miracles in the broad face of dmj, like them proving their doctrines by the law and the testimony, evidencing by the holiness of their lives that they are not of this world, and that they are valiant for the truth on earth ; then, and not till then, can I allow, that there are in the strict sense of the word any successors to the Apostles. "Whatever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven," has been alluded to by my friend. Why should that promise be exclusively claimed by the Pope and his clergy, which was made to the Apostles at large. — (Mat. xviii, 18.) It is a fact, which rests on the authority of historical testimony, that no bishop of the church of Rome assumed the title of universal bishop till the year 606, in the time of Boniface ; and Gregory the great, m an epistle written a few years before that period, makes this striking remark : " That if any person assume the title of universal priest, he is a forerunner of antichrist." But I would ask, if the promise was to be extended to any of the successors, why not to the successor of Peter at Jintioch^ and to the succes- sors of the other Apostles, to Polycarp, and to others of the early Fathers. My friend has said, that our Saviour promised to com- municate his power to the apostles, when he said, " All things are given unto me in heaven and in earth." I really cannot dis- cover this from the context. It is said, all power is given unto the Saviour; but because the power is given unto him, does it fol- low that he communicated that power to his Apostles and theii successors 1 The promises, even if admitted in the sense of my learned friend, rests upon this condition, " Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you." There- fore, Mr. Maguire should show that the church of Rome is in accordance vv^ith the word of God? My friend has again re- ferred to ths church being " the pillar and the ground of faith.' Now, as I stated, before he can apply this or any similar pas sage to the church of Rome, he must first show that that church is the church of Christ — this he has not yet been able to prove Hid I assert with confidence that he never will. [ do admit indeed, that the universal body of the faithful, bf THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 25 letting forth the purity of Christian doctrine, by exhibiting iti practical influence, and by asscnibling on the Lord's day, hold up a blazing light to the world, are " an Epistle known and read of men," and thus diffuse the truth as it is in Jesus. But I do not thence infer, that inf^illibility is the prerogative of the church of Christ, though I do hold that against the faithful the gates of hell shall not prevail, and that "neither death, nor life, nor angels, our principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor things to ccme, nor height nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate them from the Igve of (xod, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord." To be preserved by the power of God, and to be Hatched over by his providcr.ce, does not imply infallibility ; and without the possession of such a prerogative, the church of Christ may be the pillar and ground of truth, by being a living exemplar of the influence of Christian doctrine." "To hear the Church," refers not to the universal church, but to the particular church with which the parties concerned happen to be connected. How is it possible, that an individual could make his complaint to the uni- versal church ! The gentleman has endeavored to give us an illustration, by comparing the church to the constituted authorities of the land. But I would ask, although we do look upon them as the proper expounders of the law of the nation, and appeal to them to decide in matters of dispute ; and although we do admit " that the powers that be are ordained of God," does this argue, that we consider them as infallible ? As far as the commands of ^he church of Christ accord with the word of God, so far, and no farther, are they ratified in heaven. The expression " obey your prelates," my friend has also •Jjoted. Now, in the original, the word is rjyov/nsi^oig, — " Obey t iem that have the rule over you." We must be careful to attend to the tenor and spirit of scripture, and call no man mas* ter, save in so far as his guidance is agreeable to the word an(' will of God. Let it not be imagined that I am opposed 'o pas- toral authority. No, far from it — " Christ gave to his church, first, apostles, — secondly, prophets — thirdly, pastors and teacn- crs, for the perfecting ot the saints, for the work of the minis- try, for tie edifying of the body of Christ, My friend has referred to the passage, " Ye are the salt of the earth." He should have continued the Saviour's words, " If the salt have lost its savor, wherewith shall it be salted 1" Does this, I would aek, look like infallibility — " If the salt lose its savor, wherewith shall it be salted 1 It is then fit for nothing, but to be cast out and trodden under foot." Mr. Maguire has also referred to the passage, "Whose-soevcr I Bins ye forgive, they are forgiven, and vvhose-soever sins je retmn, they are retained." Now it must be remembered, thpitai 550 Tiifc IJVFALLiBILITT OF j the time our Lord uttered these words, not a line of the .\c^ i Testament was witten.l) Christ was about to ii troduce a ne\t ' dispensation ; ana ne appointed his Apostles as ministers of hi? new kingdom, with authority to exact laws and regulations for tiie governance thereof. The Saviour fully commissioned hi? Ap'^stles to make known the glories of his divine character, and (th« principles of Heaven's administration — to lay down the way of salvation, clearly and fully through a Redeemer's blood, and to describe the character of those whose sins had been blotted '>ut, or in other words to depict the sanctifying influence of tne gospel upon the life and conversation. I admit the power of the church of Christ to excommunicate from its society any, who by their unholy lives disgrace their profession, or, by their errors as to the fundamental doctrines of Christianity, give evidence, that they are not the followers of our Lord and Saviour. B\i\ even the authority of excommunication is restricted; for it avail? not except so far as the decision agrees with the will of heaven. Further — there is no standard authority as . WipHne in the church of Rome ; for Doctor Doyle, in hi« ^^^ ination on oath before the Lord's committee, page 240 >nen asked, "Does ihe last article in the priest's oath decla .; every thing done in the council of Trent binding? " replied, " That regards faith, DO' discipline. The French church never received the decrees »f the council of Trent regarding discipline: and in a part of Ireland such decrees are not received." My friend has spokep much about unity of sentiment and supreme authority. Th«- passage just read furnishes a sufficient comm.entary on his as- sertions relative to these points. There are many other proofs which I could adduce, that the church of Rome possesses n^ claim whatever to infallibility — but my time at present does no^ permit. Mr. Pope here resumed his seat. Mr. Maguire. — I regret exceedingly, that after all my en deavours to the reverse, this controversy is likely to be a war Of words, and not of argument. Let us come to close fighting — let Mr. Pope propose his objections seriatim^ and I pledge my self to answer them to your satisfaction. I fearlessly appeal i» scripture. He has stated that not a single passage in the Ne> Testament refers to church authority independently of the con- gregation. I aver that there are many such passages ; when oui Saviour says,—" If he will not hear thee, tell the church : and if he will not hear the church, let him be to thee as the heathen and the publican ; " he evidently alludes to a tribunal before which the offender is to Ve arraigned. Was the Bishop to b** arraigned before the peasant, and not the peasant before th# Bwhop] to— Christ intended that thcr« should bf» rulers in THE ROlflAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 27 his church — that the Apostles, with their successors, shoulc corstitute a tribunal, to which obedience should be rendered and from which the ignorant and the illiterate should receive instruction in the faith. Mr. Pope says, that our Saviour must refer to a particular church, and not to the universal church, from ihe impossibility of referring to the latter. He might as well say, that any individual who sought redress from the laws of hia country, should appeal to the congregated magistrates of the country. An individual can appeal to a Bishop, as to a magis tiate — he can appeal from the Bishop to a Synod — from the Sy- nod he can appeal to the Pope, and from the Pope to a general Council, which, like the House of Lords, is the last resource., It was extraordinary sophistry, then, to argue, as Mr. Pope ha3 done, that there is no tribunal but the universal church. He endeavors to bring the Holy Fathers into a qualified dis- repute, as Luther did before him. When Luther found the authority of the holy Fathers strong- against him, he said, "I care not if a thousand Chrysostoms, a thousand Cyprians, a thousand Augustines, stood up against me. And let this be my creed, 'I yiel-d to no man.' " Again, he says, " I, Dr. Martin Luther, as to those matters (articles of faith,) am and wish to be deefned obstinate, contumacious, and violent." Such was Luther's con- fession that the Fathers were against him. When Luther found a great number of sects arising amongst the reformers — Calvin denying the real presence — Zuinglius saying, that this is my BODY, means "this represents my body," he began to repent, and he threatened to return to Popery again, if they continue id to raise such schisms. Mr. Pope should not endeavor to briii^ the Holy Fathers into disrepute. If he says that they were fal- Uble, which I admit, yet he must allow that they are good and faithful witnesses of what was the Christian doctrine in their days. If I show, as I will, the infallibility of the church to be the doctrine of sixty Fathers at a time^ when Mr. Pope will ad- mit that the church was pure, then is it not evident that such doctrine must be true? If Mr. Pope answers in the negative, then he must contradict all Protestants who admit the authority o{ the fiist four councils — I do not include the council of Jeru- salem. Mr. Pope has said, that he cannot discover where this ai'thority exists in the Catholic church. If he had examined our divines and canonists, he would find that the Pope, at the head of a council regularly convened, in their decrees regard- ing faith, are admitted to be infallible. That is one instance. — Also, if the Pope, with a few bishops assembled, should issue decrees touching the deposit of faith, and which are subsequently received by the church dispersed, we account them infallible, at otherwise the promises of Christ to his church would fail 2b THE INFALLIBILITY OF As »o ll e title Ecumenical, assumed by Boniface, i' certainly was condemned by Gregoi; the Great, when assumed in a di^ ferent sense by the patriarcn of Constantinople. It was then condemned by Gregory as a blasphemous heresy, because, as he said, there was no universal bishop in the unlimited sen^e m.eant by the patriarch of Constantinople, but Christ, who is with his f^hurch to the end of the world, teaching and preaching. But in a limited sense, the expression is not to be condemned, and tliat was the sense in which it was claimed by Boniface. Again, "as the Father has sent me, 1 also send you." Mr. Pope says, I did not prove that this was directed to anv but the apostles. I have already proved that our Savior promised he would be with them to the end of the world — not that they should live in a physical, but in a moral sense, and survive m the per- sons of their successors. Mr. Pope says that this applied to the Jewish church. I am sure the church of Enorland will be much obliged to him, for all his arguments tend as strongly against the established church of England, as against the church of Rome. The church of England, in her homilies, declares that she will not endure a departure from her liturgy in the slight- est degree. So far she claims obedience to her authority as well as the Catholic church. There could not in fact exist any regularity or order if Christ did not leave an authority to his church. Mr. Pope says, granting for a moment the church of Christ to be infallible, that the onus lies upon me to prove that the church of Rome is the church of Christ — this argument is mei e\y ad captandum. After I have proved that Christ estab- lished one true and infallible church on earth, do I not lay the Ratchet to the root of all the rest, and thus prove the falsehood <^t* all the heresies that have separated from that church ? and • onsequently have I not broken the neck of Protestantism gen- erally 1 Is it not evident that I can prove the infallibility of the church in the times of the Apostles, and under their successors, the bishops and martyrs, who died for the truth ? If Mr. Pope once admits the infallibility of any church, I have gained m^ point. I have proved to you manifestly that the passage whicl I quoted from Isaiah has reference to a future church. I shah read to you the passage again, with the preceding verse :— " And there shall come a Redeemer to Zion, and to them that return from anquily in Jacob, saith the Lord. This is my covenant with them, saith the Lord; my spirit that is in thee, and my words that I have put into thy mouth, ihall not depart out of thy mouth, nor out of the mcuth of thy seed, nor out uf the mour,h of thy seed's seed, saith the Lord, froui henceforth, an*, forever." Isaiah, Ux, 20, 21. Here the inspired prophet speaks of a Redeemer to come U Zic a, and tc estabhsh his church. Could there be a more obvi* THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 29 9Ufi alIusH)n to Christ and bis church. In reference to my quota- tion "ye are the salt of the earth," Mr. Po}.e has reminded ..le of the addition, " If the salt shall lose its savor." I deny that the salt does lose its savor — I am not a chemist, but I can statn upon the authority of the most learned men, that salt cannci hisc, its savor — this, therefore, proves the infallibility of the church The Apostles are compared to salt, and as soon as the salt wmila lose its savor, they would lose their infallibility — that is never* Mr, Pope argues that when Christ talked of the church, he talked of the laity — will it be inferred, because Christ speaks one time in the aggregate, that he never speaks particularly of the bishopa and rulers whom the Holy spirit appointed to govern ihe church. Mr. Pope says that the passage, '' obey your prelates,'- means^ " obey your superiors in general." What says the Apostle Paul 1 "Obey your prelates, and be subject to them. For they watch, as bein;i to render an account of your souls," &c. Are laymen, or magistrates, by Christ's appointment, to ren der an account of our souls? It would be absurd to suppose that the bishops should give an account of that which they have not the government.' . AVhat signifies how a government exists, if obedience be not rendered to it? — How absurd to suppose that an authority couid exist, and yet the people not be obliged to obey it. It is evident if an episcopal church were established by Christ, that bishops must be recognised in it. Our Saviour gave the feeding of the sheep and lambs to one, but he also gave the feeding of the lambs to the bishops. Mr. Pope contends that the text '' Feed my lambs, and feed my sheep,*' equally applies to ail the Apostles, but did not Christ addres>i himself to Peter onhj^ when he said, "Simon Barjona, lovest thou me more than these?" iVnd when Peter answered "Yea, Lord," — Christ replied, " Feed my lambs, feed my sheep." — Did he not also declare that there s'lould be but " one fold, and one shepherd." Now I should be glad to iearn what is there in a sheep-fold, beyond sheep and lambs? That is — dropping the metaphor, beyond clergy and laity. When, therefore, Christ commissioned Peter to feed both sheep and lambs, he gave him a charge over the clergy as well as the laity. — This is the sacrrd edifice raised by Christ, IVom which Mr. Pope has not been able \o pick a single stone. Mr. Pope has pronounced an eulogium upon the scriptures— 1 too love and honor them, and I trust that in my life, I foil >^ their commands. I pay that respect to the scriptures, which [ pay to the images of our Saviour, his Apostles, and martyrs ; I follow their precepts, I hope ; but as to the adoration either of ficriotures oi of images, my sotd abhors — my nerves shrink from it. If, however the scriptures had been intended as the sole 3* 30 THE INFALLIBILITY OF rult 01 faith, it is evident that Christ would have given a com- mand .0 write them. But no such command was given by oui l^aviour. He ordered his Apostles to go teach and preach ; and that those who belieced would be saved. Believed what ? The preaching of the Apostles. But he said nothing about writing. My arguments remain so]id and undisturbed. I thvirefore sit down, till objections of a more tangible and serious nature shall '^€ ad\anced. Mr. Pope rose and said — My learned friend has observed, Jtiat ho will wait, until some stronger arguments shall be brought forward against him. I really commend the spirit which he has evinced on this occasion. Ke remarks, that the arguments which I have advanced are not sufficiently weighty to deserve a reply ; and he reserves his proofs, that the church of Rome is Oie church of Christ, until the third day of the discussion. The jassages of scripture which speak of the church, I again affirm, do not refer to ecclesiastics exclusively. While I admit, that tie church of Christ will be preserved through every age, and taat the gates of hell shall never prevail against it, I still main lain, that not one single passage of scripture has been adduced, ur can be brought forward, proving that our Saviour conferred infallibility upon his church; and I again put Mr. Maguire to the proof of it. I shall now show you, from the testimony of Roman Catholic w riters, that the term, " church of Rome," was not considered a.s a designation of the general church of Christ; but that it was a' first merely given to distinguish that particular church ^rom ciher churches — I would therefore ask, on what ground can the r hurch of Rome arrogate to herself the right of being consid- ered as the church of Christ, more than other churches. Du- pm, a Roman Catholic historian, and a doctor of the Sorbonne, has the following passage : " It is true (says he) that at present the name of the church of Rome ia given to the Catholic church, and that these two terms pass for synonynioLS, But in antiquity no more was intended by the name of the churcii of Ronio, U?.an the church of the city of Rome; and the Popes in their subscriptiong and superscriptions, took simply the quahty of Bishops of Rome. The Greek schismatics seem to be the first who gave the name of the church of H orne to ail the churches of the West ; whence the Latins made use of thii to distinguish the churches which communicated with the church of Rome, fr >m the Greeks, who were separated from her communion. From this came the custom to give the name of the church of Rome to the CathoHc cluircli.— - But the other churches did not for this lose ' .ji'' name or their authority," &c. — {Dupin. Traite de la Puiss. Ecdes. 4'C, p. 55 1.) Here, then, we see nothir.g, even upon Roman Catholic testi- mony, to induce us to esieem the Roman Catholic church ai exclusively the church of Christ. THE ROMAN CATLOi.IC CHURCH 81 Again, Pope Innocent III tells us, (lib. ii, Ep. £C0.) " The church, indeed, is called Universal, which consists of all church eai| ivory where, which, by a Greek word, is denominated Catholic, thus tbb Roman church is not the Universal church, but a part of thb Univef sal church." Heie are the opinions of a Pope and a Roman Catholic his- torian. Bofn passages clearly show, that the term " church uf Ronie " did not signify the un'versal church of Christ, but thai th<; titi^e merely distinguished it from the other churches, whict had been established in various parts of the world. 1 shall now show you, that the Fathers referred to the written word as the standard of faith. I shall quote to you the opinion of St. Ignatius, who was contemporary with the Apostles, and successor (so to speak) of St. Peter in Antioch. — It is recordec^- by Eusebius, lib. iii, Ecc. Hist. cap. 36. He informs us, that Ignatius being on his way from Syria to Rome, where he was to suffer martyrdom, addressed himself to the several churches on his journey, establishing them in the faith, and cautioning them against the heresies which then prevailed. — "He exhorted them to hold firmly by the tradition of the Apostles^ which testify^ ing that it had been already committed to writings he declared was necessarily so for its preservation.''^ Augustine also, in his lib. iii, contr. Lit. Petiliani c. 6. *'If any one concerning Christ or his church, or concerning any other thing nvhich belongs to faith or our life, I will not say, if we, but (what Paul hath atided) if an angel from heaven shall preach unto you, beside w^hat you have received in the legal and evangelical scripture, let aim be accursed." Again, St. Jerome, in c. 1st, Aggaei. " Those things which they make and find, as it were, by Apostolical tradi- tion, without the authority and testimony of Scnpture, the word of God smites." In my letter to Mr. Maguire, which appeared in the public prints, I referred to the opposition maintained by the early Fathers against the authority of the church of Rome. Wheneve** therefore, they advocated the authority of the church of Christ it would not be the authority of that church which they themselves opposed. But my friend brought forward an analogy, and asked me, *' does not each particular mag^istrate in his own jurisdiction represent the executive authority]" And he argued from this, - that each and every individual bishop should be regarded in the same light with respect to the charch. I ask him, will he say that each and every particular bishop of the church of Rome ia uifaJible 1 I am sure Mr. Maguire believes no such thing. Further — in order to show my friend, that the power of judg- ing was vested not in. a single person, but in the body of the Christian congregation, I refer him to the first Epistle to the Corinthians, v, 12, where the apostle asks, "Do vou iiot judga S8 THE INFALLIBILITY OP them that are within?" And I inquire, to whom was this querj addressed? Was it to the ecclesiastical rulers, or to the body of the church] Consult the Douay edition of the scriptures and you will find, that the epistle is addressed " to the church of God that is at Corinth, to them that are sanctified in Chribj Jesus, called to be saints, with all that invoke the Lord Jesus Christ, in every place." — Now, I would ask my triend, are ec- clesiastical officers the only individuals thus denominated? Are ihey alone the sanctified in Christ Jesus ? Are they alone called to be saints, and do they alone invoke the name of our Lord and Saviour? In the 2d epistle to the same church, ii, 10, it is said, **io whom ye have pardoned any thing, I also." A reference to the epistle v/ill show that this passage also refers to the entire body. My friend quoted a verse of the 18lh chapter of Matthew " Wherever two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them." Now I of course admit this. The great head of the church, the Lord Jesus Christ, is present with his people, wherever they are congregated in his name. — But, though present with them by His Spirit, does he, therefore, confer on them the prerogative of infallibility ? As to the testimony of the Fathers — I am quite wilhng to admit, that they may be referred to as faithful witnesses of the opinions current in their times. And, is not every faithful historian entitled to the same credit? But I would ask, when we refer to Hume, or to any other historian, do we thence infer, that, because they are faithful witnesses, they are, therefore, infallible ? My friend has referred ro two sources of infallibility. Now «vo are informed by Cfixries Butler, Esq., in his Book of tiio Roman Catholic charch, p. 121 — 124, that there does exist a difference between the Italians and the French church, respect- ing the infallibility of the Pope. The Italians believe in the in- fallibility of the Pope ; the French hold the contrary opinion — the former receive the dogmas of the Pope as infallible ; the latter reject them, if they be only ftr se or ex-cathedra. Here we have two bodies referring to sources of infallibility, which rnay often jar with each other. I therefore ask, can there be any certainty, on their own grounds, as to the foundation of their faith? My friend has commented on the opinion of Pope (Gregory, in reference to the title of the Pope. I shall read to you the passi?§e. *' I confidently say, that whosoever calls bimself the Universal Priest, oi desires to be so called, in his arrogance, is a forerunner of Antichrist," — Lib. fi, Ep. 30. Gregory VII, tells us, 1. ii, ep. 55, that " the Roman Pontiff alone is rightly called universal.*' Here then again you will perceive, that we have Pope against Pope, and one body against another body on the authority and infallibility of the Pope. lo THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH 35 fclatioi. to the passage which my friend has quoted, where our Saviour says, "he will be with his disciples to the consummation of time," I merely observed, that it is the opinion of some an- cient <-ritics, that the words mean " to the end of the Mosaic dispen nation," — not but that our Saviour will be with his Apostles in iheir ivritings to the end of time. While, however, I men- tion this, merely as the opinion of eminent critics, I am quite willing to allow, that although the Apostles have no success'?rs in the strict sense of the term, our Lord has promised to be witl those who labor in the word and doctrine, by giving seals td ihiiir ministry, as long as they continue to teach whatsoever he ha^ commanded in His Holy Word. My friend has again referred to the passage whi<"h says, " if the salt lose its savor," and he has told us, that salt cannot lose its flavor, and therefore would build upon it the infaJUbility of the church of Rome. That salt for a long time retains its savor, I admit ; but can my friend prove that it is never decomposed. — And does he not, by his remark upon the passage, make the adorable Redeemer contradict himself? Although our Lord knew all things, we invariably find him, in his discourses with his (fisciples and others, using those terms which were most familial to them, and accommodating his language to their capacities and modes of thinking. — Even in the present day, we speak of the rising and setting of the sun, although it is known that the 3un neither rises nor sets. — These remarks account for our Saviour's employing the mode of expression which we are coif sidering. In connection with this passage, I would ask, was there not a Judas even among the Apostles, and did he not sel' his master, and put himself to death] I shall now refer Mr. Maguire to a passage of scripture, and I ask him how he can reconcile the infallibility of the church of Rome wi\h it? In Romans, xi, 22, " See then the goodness and the severity of God : towards them indeed that are fallen, the severity; but towards thee, the goodness of God, if thou abik in goodn^.ss, otherivise thou also shall be cut o^." Mark this ! '' othervv^* ^e thou also shalt be cut off." I ask, does the church of Roi^ m the present day wish to identify herself with the early ohu: ch to which the Apostle wrote these words, or not? If not, then is her antiquity scattered to the four winds of heaven. And if she tloos, I would ask, is not this a strange threat to be addressed lu C? infallible church ! My friend has again quoted the passage, " He that will not hear the church" — but can he show that this speaks of pastors exclusively, and not of the people also? I have already proved, that every Christian body is authorised to judge them that ar« wiuuu. " Feed my sheep'' was «^nother passage brought lor- 84 THE INFALLIBILITY OP W3.vd by Mr Maguire ; and in reference to it, I beg to call youi attevition to the authorities of some early Fathers on the sub- ject. St. Augustin says — " when it is said unto Peter, ' feed my sheep,' it is said unto all." — (De agon. Christ, c. 30.) St. Ambrose says, " which sheep and flock St. Peter did not receive alone, but we all received them with him." — (Lib. dc Sacred ) The passage, " one fold and one shepherd," has beea quoted by Mr. Maguire. Our Lord's meaning clearly is this, that the church which had been confined exclusively to the Jews, was now to combine both Jew and Gentile ; that the barrier which separated them, was henceforth to be thrown down, and the waters of life to flow beyond the limits of the Jewish people, carrying health and fertility through the whole world. The onus lies on my friend, to show where the church of Rome is called the church of Christ, or where the Pope is called the shepherd. I am convinced that he cannot do so. I assert^ on the contrary, that to call any creature the head of Christ's church on earth, is to utter a blasphemy against the Son of God, who icj aloao the head of the church. / The Psalmist says, " The Lord is my shepherd, and I shall not want." — Psalm xxii. B?.< my friend has again referred to the passage in Isaiah, where it is said, that '* the words of the Lord shall not depart out of thy iiioufh from henceforth and for ever." If you consult the con- te.^t, you will perceive that it was probably addressed in an espe- cial sense to the Jewish church, as he mentions Zion and Jacob. Some commentators do refer it to the restoration of literal Israel. But in truth, if this promise confers infallibility on any church, then the promise of the Holy Spirit will confer infallibility on every behever. In the epistle to the Romans, St. Paul says, " If any man have not the spirit of Christ, he is none of his.'' Now, I ask my friend, are we to understand by this, that every individual having the spirit of Christ is thereby rendered infalli- ble? May not a person be enlightened by the holy spiiit, with- out being rendered infallible also 1 The passage from Isaiiih, therefore, does not prove any thing for my learned friend's argu- ment. He has again quoted, " Obey your prelates." Now, I find in other parts of the sacred scriptures, that we are desired "to try the spirits whether they are of God, because many false prophets have gone out into the world." Again, I read, "to the law and to the testimony, if they speak not according to this word, it is because there is no light in them," or as the Douay version gives it, " they shall not see the morning light." And again, I find St. Paul saying, " I speak as unto wise men, judge ye yourselves what I say." — (1 Cor. x, 15.) And oul Lord himself asks, " why even of your ownselves, jiidge ye not vhat is right]" — (Luke xii, 57,) If we are thus desired to try THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. SS he spinis — to go to the law and the testimony and lo judge ind examine for ourselves, are we, in opposition to the express licrates ot the word of God, to receive every thing which an 3ccles:astic tells us, without examining whether the doctrines and >rex;cpts inculcated upon us are in accordance with, or opposed o, t'\e revealed will of heaven? And if we are authorised ta 3ya7iine, as to the truth or falsehood of the doctrines brought bffore us, then will it clearly follow, that no church is infallible. In conclusion, I shall now propose one or two questions to my learned friend, to which I shall thank him to give me ex- plicit ansv^ers. In the first place, I should wish him to inform n e, how many general Councils have been held? Secondly — By what characteristics are general Councils to b( distinguished from others ? Thirdly — Can my reverend friend produce an authenticated translation of the scriptures, perfect and infallible? And Fourthly — Can he point us to an infallible commentary apoii those scriptures ? These questions I put to him, and these questions must be satisfactorily answered ; or else I assert, that I have strong pre- •jumptive evidence against the infallibility of the church of Rome For I say, if the church of Rome be infallible, we may expect^ that she is able to refer her doctrines to an infallible and clearly attested standard — and that she has given to her people an infaU lihle and authentic version of the sacred scriptures — and, as she holds that a commentary is indispensably necessary, we may also expect that she has furnished an infallible commentary, so that h( r followers may not wander in the wilderness of error but have a sure and certain guide to direct them. A priest declares at his ordination on oath, that he, " Uahesltatingly receives all things, defined, delivered, and declared by tfe* noly canons, and general councils ; " and I ask, therefore, have I not a right to put these questions t,^ any priest of the Roman Catholic church? V Mr. Maguire. — It may, perhaps, appear to many of my auditory, that I have an Herculean task to perform. A great auml^er of questions have been put to me to answer, which would require much more than the comparatively short period allotted to me for addressing you. Mr. Pope opened his speech by endeavoring to draw a distinction between the church of Rome and the Catholic church. 1 beg and crave the kind and impar- tial attention of all, while I clear up what he seems to consider an insuvniountable difficulty. In the early ages of Christianity tiie church was not known by any other name than that of th^ S6 THE INFALLIBILITY OF Catholic church. It was so designateil in the Apostles^ creed No otm r church had then the audacity to compare i\i*eK with the cnurch of Christ. In the lapse of time^ however, -^rhen the Arians br.came impudent and powerful — when they got the Emperor Constantius on their side, and the temporal power was employed to subvert the church of Christ — when, in fine, thc-se heretics, imitating the example of Julian the apostate, who \ooled up the foundation of the old temple of Jerusalem, and vainly attempted to rebuild it, in order to falsify the prediction of the Son of God — sought to disprove the promises of Christ to his church, by overturning its government, and establishing a new one — it was then thought necessary, for distinction sake, to superadd the epithet Roman, as a communion with the See of Rome was looked upon as the test of unity, and all other churches declared heretical or schismatical, which refused to acknowledge the bishop of Rome, the vicar of Christ on earth. Thus the word consubstantial was first mtroduced at the Council of Nice. We all know that the term had no origin in the scriptures. The word, however, is to be found in the Liturgy of the Protestan church. My friend must admit that the term *^ Roman " was in troduced lawfully, and according to the gospel, or he must deny that the term ^* consubstantial," was introduced lawfully — he must den} the Council of Nice, which is acknowledged by Dr Walton, and all Protestant historians. The name makes nothing for my friend's argument. Though the name Roman has been added, it is still the same church. When Arius broachc^ his heresy, the Catholic church either then was m existence. *»r it was not. If it was then in existence, Arius had no right to set up a church against the church of God. If it was not the Catholic church which condemned Arius, the church which he set up could not be the Catholic church, for he, for a time, stood alone. Where was the Catholic church at the time when Luther, as he says himself, stood alone, and was the only one who had the courage to apply the hatchet to the root of Popery ? The name Roman was then, as I have clearly proved to you, giver to the Catholic church to serve as a distinction. I have already explained to you, that the title ecumenical, ai assumed by the patriarch of Constantinople, was blasphemous, Christ is the only ecumenical pastor — he is the foundation and llie corner-stone. The Apostles formed the edifice— But if the word be taken in the limited sense in which it is applied to the bishop of Rome — that is the visible tiead of the Universal Church — it is not blasphemy. Mr. Pope has repeated the quo- tation from St. Augustin — there the arguments of St. Augus- Kin are employed against the Donatists, who^ like Mr. Pope fiim^elf, set up their own authority against tl?at of the Catl*^);* THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 87 thuTch — who appeali d from the authority of the church, and from a regularly ordained ministry to their own private opinions. It is just as if an individual having been condemned in the King's Bencii, then appealed to the House of Lords, and tnon to tne King, and, on the decision being given against hmi, he should recur to his own private authority. Mr. Pope has quoted St. Augustin and St. Jerome, who dis- anguished between the church of Rome, and the Catholic church* Ijut those fathers have sometimes spoken of the church of Roiiie ^9 a diocess, or as a patriarchate. Did they, however, deny ihat the church of Rome was the mother and matrice of all othe; ciiurches ? Let them speak for themselves. In his eleventh book De Doctrina Christiana^ where laying do\?n a rule to distinguish canonical books, St. Augustin says- • '*Tn this inquiry, the authority of the greater part of the Churches mu?tbc followed, and particularly of those that hold apostolical sees, and received eplstlos iVom the Apostles." And lib. Contra Evistolam Fundamenti^ he says — **Many are the considerations which keep me in the Catholic church — th« ajb?nt of nations — her authority — first established by miracles — cherished oy hope — extended by charity — strengthened by lapse of years ; the succes 5ton of pastors from the chair of Peter, to whom the Lord committed the care of feeding his flock down to the present bishop ; lastly, the name itself of Catholic!^ Thus he identifies the Cathohc church with the bishop of Rome, to whom he says, Christ committed the care of feeding his fiock. So much for the distinction between the church of Rome and the Catholic church. Mr. Pope admits, that a man may be excommunicated. Ho rr can the church excommunicate unless it possess authority ? in it not evident too, that it is an authority to which man shoitof yield obedience] What does St. Augustin say] " I would not believe the gospel, if the authority of the Catholic church du rM)t mo^'e me thereto." Will Mr. Pope show me, that he does not deviate from the living authority of the Catholic church ? I defy him to do so. He appeals, indeed, to an invisible church — he quotes a text of scripture to prove, that where two or three are gathered in the Lord^s name, there will he be in the midst of them. This i& no new doctrine. There our Lord speaks of private prayer.— • The Apostles command all to believe in the holy Catholic church. There never existed a time since the Apostles in which that holy Catholic church was not visible on earth, otherwise the Apostles would have bound us to believe in a church of whose existence there \^^s no certainty. Let Mr. Pope reconcile the idea of a Universal church, to tkat of two or three being assembled in Christ's name^ or lei 4 3^ VHE INFALLIBILITY OF h rn scow that two or three establish our notion of universahty Mr. Pope in vain appeals to his invisible church. This is an argument which would delight our infidels. The Jew may say to the Christian-—'* Jhrist made great promises to his church according to your account — he declared, the gates of hell should not prevail against her — and he said, that whoever should not hea)- her, should be condemned ; he also compared her to a city buiit jpon a mountain. Yet, we find that he has not fulfilled his promises — that his church may fail — that the gates of hell i;ave prevailed against her — that the spirit of God has departed from her and that the promises of visibility have been shame- fully violated. It is then necessary for you to look out for that Messiah, whose coming we daily expect." These arguments might be used against the man who admits, that a time did exist, since the coming of Christ, when there was no visible church upon earth. With regard to the authorities which I have pro- duced from the holy Fathers, I have quoted from them where ihey expressly treat of the authority of the church — T do not select passages from them v/here they allude to the church, mere- y by a side wind, and which passages prove nothing upon t^^e subject. Mr. Pope calls upon me to produce a genuine infal- lible translation of the Bible — that is to be found in our churcn, which is not in his. We have the Latin vulgate, the nobl^ translation of St. Jerome, and approved of by the council ot Trent — that is our acknowledged and authentic Bible. I retort upon Mr. Pope — I call upon him to show me any translation in nis church, that can be said to be infallible. The Protestant church is fallible — the translators of their Bible were fallible — and the man who reads it is fallible. How can certainty be built upon uncertainty ] How can infallibility proceed from fallibilities, or to use an expression of a great dignitary of thd Established church, " How can an immoveable edifice be built upon a moveable foundation ? " Let Mr. Pope answer that argument if he can ; a child who is born in Mr. Pope's communion must remain a Deist till ho has arrived at the years of discretion. A Bible is then put into his hands. I will admit that he is conscious of the existence o. a God — All his works proclaim it. " Coeii enarrant gloriam Dei, ^ Bat he can never ascertain of himself, from the book put into his hands, the religion which God has ordained. He must learn thai from his Clergy or from Mr. Pope — I respect the Pi otestant Clergy — I acknowledge they possess the titulus coloratus. Mr. Pope, I should remaik, is not sent, and St. Paul tells us that no one is to preach who is not called as Aaron was —''And how can they preach unless they be sent." The Pro- testant child, when the Bible is put into his hands cannot believe THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 89 fn the infallibilify of the translator — he cannot ttke the scrip lures upon the authority of the Cathohc church, he must disbe* lieve them altogether. The Protestant Clergy should beware of the principles so confidently put forth at the present period, and to which they lend their countenance and support. If ever)^ individual is to be constituted interpreter of the scriptures, the day v^ill arrive when the clergy will be thrown overboard, and thu> will be glad to fly from the machinations of those whc wouliJ make every old woman in the country an interpreter and ex- pounder of the sacred word of God. VVher. Mr. Pope takes the Bible into his hands, he should prove that it is inspired. Granting that he establishes its authen- tirMty, he has done nothing, if he cannot prove its inspiration. I dtty him to do so upon his own principles, without being enclos- ed in a vicious circle. He receives the scriptures upon the r^na* of private judgment, and he then proves the divine right of pr vite judgment from the scriptures. With regard to general c.)uncils, he wishes to know how many have been recognised in the church. If I be not able at this moment to state with nu- merical certainty the councils which are received, he will con- clude that the church is not infallible. I tell him there have been eighteen ecumenical councils, whose definitions on articles of faith are held to be infallible. If Mr. Pope proves that any of the ecumenical councils have sanctioned any thing which contradicts the faith of the Catholic church, that indeed would be something like an unanswerable argument. He says that Home councils are received in one diocess, and others in another. There never was an ecumenical council held, but its doctrin'iic church was not in primitive times acknowledged as the universal church. He also referred to that passage in the creed where it is said, " I believe in the Holy Catholic church." The creed, 1 admit, is an ancient document ; and were I even to grant that i was penned by the Apostles, Mr. Maguire need not have given himself the trouble of proving, that the universal church of Christ was called the Catholic church. I admit this at once ; but I den} as distinctly that this term applied to the cluirch of Rome ; and until Mr. Maguire proves this, I maintain that his otlier arguments go for nothing. I know my friend attaches great H^portance to the authority of the Fathers, and I shall now allude ■^ a passage from Tertullian which was referred to in my lettei Mi Mr. Maguire. In order to secure Christians in true doctrine, %e recommends them to consult the Apostolic churches, men- tioning the churches of Corinth, of Philippi. of Thessalonica, and of Ephesus, as well as of Rome. — Tertul. de prascrip. aa U^r, § 14, j9. 108, 109. Now I would ask, had Tertullian considered that the church ot Rome was the universal church, or that she maintained an authority over other churches, would he have written thus? Would he have spoken of other churches in the same strain in which ho speaks of the church of Rome — had he considered her as the supreme or universal church? Truly Tertulliem did not place her in so high a rank as my friend would have us to suppose. In relation to this passage which I have quoted, the Roman Catholic writer, Beatus Rhenanus remarks, that •* if Tertullian were to utter such a sentiment in his day, relative to the church of Rome, he would not escape punishment." Rhenan. Argum. in Tert. de Praec. et alibi. Impres. Basil, 1621. / could multiply many quotations from the Fathers to the name purport^ hut that I wish to occupy my time with other matter. In the Council of Chalcedon it was decreed, that equal respect should be paid to the Bishops of Constantinople and Rome. And I would ask, can any thing more distinctly prove, that the church of Rome was not in the earlier ages looked upon exclusively the church of Christ ? Or can any thing more directly contradict the assumption of universal authority claimed by that church? But I would also ask my friend, if Ihe church of Rome was in the lirst ages considered as the su- preme or universal church, how does it happen, that the Apostle Paul addressed epistles to several churches without the most distant reference to the authority of the church of Rome ; aud THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 43 ihet, in the epistle which he addressed to the church cf Rome, he does not make the most indirect allusion to her being the C;.itholic or supreme Church, much less to her possessing the prerogative of infallibility I Nor is the epistle even addressed to Peter, who is said to have been the first Bishop of Eome. ' On the contrary, we find the epistle addressed '' to all," (mark that) '' to all that are at Rome, the beloved of God, called to bft saints." There is not one word, you perceive, about the Dialled supremacy of that Church — nor the least mention of the Apostle Peter. It is addressed to all those who composed the church of Christ in that city. Where, then, I would ask, is there the slightest ground of argument to show that the church of Rome was the supreme church ? I assert, that Mr. Maguire has not established his opinion on this subject ; while on the contrary, it must be evident to every one present, from the par^- eages which I have quoted from scripture, and from the Fatherj Uso, that no such doctrine was entertained in the first ages of 'he church. My friend has brought forward the word " con- wubfcstantial," to show that words have been introduced, which are not to be found in scripture ; and argues that the term Roman Catholic may be also admitted, though not found in ssacred writ. I allow that there are many words used by theolo- gians which are not to be found in scripture, but deny that this makes for his argument. The terms which theologians use, do not contradict themselves ; but I appeal to common sense, is there not an evident contradiction in the term Roman Catholic ? To speak of a particular universal, I maintain, is absurd — " Where the true church was before Luther," and the Pope's supremacy, I shall consider, when we come to the question of the Reformation. My friend has referred to the passage which I quoted froni St. Augustin, pointing out the method by which we might dis- cover the true church of Christ. I confess that 1 vas not a little surprised at his commentary on that passage. If, however, , he admits that St. Augustin held that the scriptures were to be referred to m contentions with reputed heretics, — as the church of Rome considers me a heretic, she should condescend to refer me for the discovery of the marko of the true church to the same authority. St. Augustin again says, "I am unwillng that the church be demonstrated by hu'Tian documents but b} divine oracles." — [De Uniiat, Eccles. c. 3.) I did not cite '* where two or three are gathered together ia my name, there am I in the midst of them," ^o prove the invisi- bility of the church of Christ; — nor did I argue that two or three constituted the universal churcn. What I said was, that the church of Christ, or the universal church, consisted of thi 44 THE INFALLIBILITy OP miire body of the faithful, however scattered over the worlta<— and the Great Head of ♦he Chinch had promised, that wHere- ever two or three were assembled together in his name h« would be with them to bless thorn and to preside over them. My friend has alluded to the promise made by Christ, "he shal^ guide you into all truth." But he should remember, that while, some of the promises refer to the great bod»y of those who com* pose the church of Christ, others were intended especialW fox the Apostles. Tn a succeeding chapter we find Christ promised the Comforter, " to bring to their rememhrayice all that he haa spoken.^^ We cannot say that we heard Christ speak viva voce^ as the Apostles did. And therefore it will be seen, that there are some of the promises which cannot apply to any but to them. My friend says, " he was quits with me on the Fathers." Now, I affirm, that the passages which I quoted from their writings, went distinctly to prove, that in the early ages, neither the infallibility, the supremacy, nor the uuiversality of the church of Rome was acknowledged. Should I grant, however that Mr. Maguire " was quits with me, in reference to the Fathers," what does the concession amount to? That we have Fathers against Fathers — and how shall we in the midst of such uncertainty, if we depend on them, be able to come to any specific conclusion ? I therefore do trust, that the result of the present discussion may be, that we shall throw the Fathers over- board, and sailing in the ark of the living God, his holy scrip- tures, launch out upon the great ocean of religious truth. My friend has said, that the version of the scriptures which contains the pure word of God, is that translated by Jerome, and sane* tioned by the council of Trent. The council of Trent pro- nounced an edition of the Yulgate, that was a/ieruards to It published " quana emendatissime," as correctly as possible — the standard edition. She pronounced a verdict upon an edition at the time, in utero, that had not seen the light. An edition of the Vulgate was published by the Louvain doctors, about thirty years after the council of Trent. Pope Sixtus V. not approv- ing of this edition, and wishing for a still more correct one, with great trouble brought together many learned Je \'ish and Roman Catholic doctors — the Vulgate was compared with the Greek and Hebrew originals, and the edition was completed. Sixtua considered it so perfect, that in his preface he declaied, that ^ny one who should attempt to alter it "in minima particui^," should be subject to the major excommunication. Within three years after the publication of this immaculate and infallible edition, written as it was in a dead language, and therefore less liable to suffer from the variations to which a living language is iubject, another made its appearance arid3r the sun(5tion of THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 4A Po^e Clement VTII. And what think you? Nol withstanding the anathema which Pope Sixtus had pronounced on the indi- vicuhl who should, "in minimi particula," in the least particle altt: the edition published by him, it has been ascertained, that thai ^ were in the edition published by Clement YIII, no fewer than 2a00 variations from the text of the Sixtine edition. Dr. Jam /s has proved the existence of these differences between the ( lei/ientine and Sixtine editions, in his work entitled Bellum Papl >. x^ow, I would ask my learned friend, from which of tLese f divions has the version, which he represents to be so im- macuvAti), been taken 1 I answer, from the Clementine edition and net froAi me Sixtine. So that Pope Clement YIII, and the Doua) trariblaiors have inourred the penalty pronounced in the preface of the dixtine edition — have subjected themselves to 2000 n ajores tyxcommunicationes. But this is not all. In the successive edi^^ons of the Douay version are to be found many discrep. ncies. If the present edition, of whose correctness my earned friend rias made such unwarrantable boast, be com- pared w th the Clementine and Sixtine editions, it will be found to differ not only irom both the Sixtine and Clementine, but also fro.n preceding editions of itself, as Mr. Hamilton has clearly shown. I snould mention that Clement bought up the Sixtine copies to guard, if possible, his predecessor from the charge of fallibility , so that but two copies, I believe, are ex- tant. Thus, we have Pope against Pope, and doctor against doctor. I again ask my friend to produce a perfect and im- maculate copy of the scriptures. I have shown you that he nannot do so. Then we have to charge his infallible church, uither with having failed in her duty towards her people, in not 'uving provided a perfect 'edition of God's holy word ; or, on ue other hand, with inability to produce such a translation of the scriptures. Let my friend ^opt either alternative ; and I ask, what becomes of the boasted infallibility of his church ? He desired me to produce a perfect version of the Bible — I affirm, that although we do not boast of infallibility, we have a better version of the scriptures than his church can produce. I need not here occupy your time in speaking of the extreme pains and care, which wero taken by men of the greatest talenta and research, in preparing the present authorised version. Dr. Geddes, who was, at least at one period of his life, a Roman Catholic priest, a man of considerable literary attain* ments, has spoken of the Protestant Bible in terms of the great est commendation. He observes, — " The highest eulogiums have been madt kA\ the translation of James I, both by our own writers and by foreigners. And, indeed, if acruracy fidelity, and the strictest attention to the letter of tte text, be suppostd U 46 THE INFALLIBILITY OP form the qualifications of an excellent version, this, of all versic.is, must m general be accounted the most excellent. Every sentence, every worti, every syllable, every letter and point, seem to have been weighed with the nicest exactitude, and expressed, either in the text, or margin, with the greatest precision. Pagninus himself is hardly more literal ; and it was trell observed by Robinson, above 100 years ago, that 'it may serve for a lexicon of the Hebrew language as well as for a translation.'" Hear the opinion of the celebrated J. K. L.* on the subject lie says, " The authorised version is a noble work, with all ita faults." We see, therefore, from the testimony of Roman Catholics, that our version of the scriptures is truly excellent ; and in confirmation of its great value, I beg to remark, thai each succeeding edition of the Douay Bible approximates nearer and nearer to the Protestant version. And is not this circumstance an acknowledgment, that the Protestant version is considered, even by the Roman Catholic hierarchy, as more accurate than their own ? Mr. Maguire. — I deny that our bible has approximated to the English edition. I deny the fact — let Mr. Pope prove it, and then show how, and in what manner, it has been effected. The apostle St. John is desired to write what he has seen " in a book, and send it to the seven churches which are in Asia^, to Ephesus, and Smyrna, and to Pergamos, and to Thyatira, and to Sardis, and to Philadelphia, and to Laodicea." So far the apostle is commanded to write to the particular bishops of particular churches, conveying particular information. But from this a general conclusion is drawn by Mr. Pope that our Saviour com- manded the New Testament to be written. The Apostle is commanded to write to the angel of the church of Ephesus, and from this Mr. Pope draws the unjust and illogical conclusion, that a positive commandment has been given to write the New Testament. I come now to his argument drawn from the Six- tine and Clementine editions of the Bible. I may premise that the Pope's infallibility is not a doctrine of m.ine, nor of any Catholic. There are differences on the subject between the French and ultra Montanists, but they are merely the private opinions of private divines. The church has pronounced no opinion on it. The church only pronounces on essentials. l! leaves the human mind free to discuss other subjects respectmg which infallibility does not shut out inquiry — but the authority of the church is decisive in articles of faith, which cannot be ascertained by human power. How could the mass of man- kind be able to judge of the truth of the doctrine of the Trinity or of justification by faith ? how could they reconcile whh a iust God the doctrine of ongmal sin ] And what is the hnmap * Right Reverend James Doyle, Bishop of Kildare and L^ighiiiu THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 47 nimd ? Is not the great mass of mankind composed of the ig- norant and lower orders ? It is only when every man is allowed to read and interpret the Bible, that "A little learning is a dangerous thing.'* Christianity is thrown overboard, and the church of Christ is scoffed at. It was by such means that infidelity spread through- out France and Germany. It is our duly to read the Bible, but it must be under proper circumstances. I love the Bible — I read the Bible — I believe it to be the infallible Word of God. Christ will not allow his children to use good food, when, b} the circumstances of the case, it might be converted into poison. Would you give to a child food of an indigestible quality? The Catholic church, knowing from experience the danger of an in- discriminate perusal of the scriptures, directs that the sacred volume should not be read by any who want the due disposition. The Catholic church is right in resisting the indiscriminate reading of the scriptures. If the Bible be at all imperfect, as Mr. Pope has been endeavouring to prove it, that would be a strong argument that it should not be put into the hands of the gnorant and illiterate without due caution. Mr. Pope quotes the authority of Pope Sixtus, that the scriptures shall not be altered from his edition, " ne in minima par ticul a. ^^ The Catholic divines, who wrote the catechism of the couii- cil, state, that Catholic doctrine shall not be changed ne in minima particula. Allusion is here made by the Pope to the. faith conveyed in the book, and not to matters of discipline in faith we yield to the authority of the church, which, as the holy Fathers say, is the solution of all difficulties. I will here call on Mr. Pope to compare the Sixtine and Clementine editions of the Bible with the Latin Vulgate, and see if he can find any thing in them as to substance and faith different. He talks of his Bible — it has undergone more substantial changes than any book in the world. There have been upwards of 7000 correc- tions made by Dr. Mills. Dr. Wharton was charged with promoting infidelity, having made such a skeleton of the Bible. Ward has proved the numerous corruptions in the Protestant Bible. Take an example — in the nineteenth chapter of Num- bc:-s, Moses is directed to take the ashes of a heifer that has been sacriiiced, and to sprinkle them with the water of expiation — lest this text might go to sanction holy water, it is translated the " water of separation" in the Protestant Bible — although m all ancient copies, it is either the water of lustration, purification, or aspersion. " A man," says Dr. Wall, another restorer of the Protestant Bible, •' cannot forbear having a strong stomach against our translators, who, with all the ancient copies befor« tbem« must nevertheless go astray." 48 THE INFALLIBILITY OF Luther, quoting the words of St. Paul, **For we believe that a man may be saved by faith, without the works of the law," (alluding to the Jewish law) adds to the text the word ' only ;' is the German ^allein.^ And when upbraided with this sacrilegious addition, he replied, ' Km I not an apostle, as well as Paul — and should any Papist object to »R& ford only^ immediately oppose to him the tvill of Dr. Martin Luther, wuo ^B a doctor above all Popish doctors, and who asserts, that the Pope and ac iss are synonymous terms —quid unum et idem.'' I hold myself responsible for the Vulgate. T challenge him to show me a material error in that translation. I receive it apon the authority of an infallible church. Mr, Pope will acknowledge no authority — he sets up his opinion not onh'agak»bt the Catholic, but against the Protestant churches. The Catho- lic church has preserved the authentic copy of the scriptures — from it the Protestant church has received it. Mr. Pope, however, denies any church possesses any authority to which any man is obliged to yield. I shall read to you a passage from St. Chrysostom. He says, — *' If you wage war against man you may conquer, or be overcome ; no force shall overcome the church. The church is much stronger than tiie <50^h — even stronger than heaven — for 'Heaven and earth shall pass away,' (Luke xxi, 33.) What words are these, Uhe gates of hell shcdl not prevail Against her?'' (Matt^ xvi, 18.) But if you doubt the word — ^-give credit to facts. How many tyrants have assailed the church of God — how many torments — wliat persecutions — what fires? They could effect nothing." Homily de Expidsione sua, tome iv, p. 843. And in his Homily, *' Quod Christus sit deus^^^ tome v, chap 1 1 — he says, — "^ On this rock I will build my church.' — (Matt, xvi, 18.) Consider what ;rated by the principles which he advocates. But it is evi 'Jent that the ignorant, the unlearned, and the weak-minded, who form the great majority of mankind, can alone proceed safely, when conducted by a living guide. If they be allowed to frame a rule of taith for themselves, embark without chart or compass upon the wide ocean of opinion — if they are allowed to think upon matters of faith as they please, the result will be, they will give way to prejudice and passion, and substitute iheir own judgment for the revelation of Jesus Christ. When Mr. Pope hands the Bible to the poor and ignorant Protestant, how can he know that it is the word of God. When the Protestant arrives at the years of discretion he must receive it from his parents, from some clergyman, or from Mr. Pope, and the only reason he can assign for his believing it is, that he received it from them or from Mr. Pope. Let the other rule be examined, and let the common sense of mankind judge whether it is not the better. The child receives the scriptures upon the authority of that church in reference to which St. Augustin said, " 1 would not receive the gospels, unless upon the authority of the Catholic church." I may here remark, that there were at one* *ime in circulation nine spurious copies of the gospel of St Matthew, each pretending to be the true original. The apos- tolical churches were then consulted, and the genuine copy ascertained. The church pronounced her decision, upon which St. Augustin rested his faith. If Mr. Pope insists upon the scriptures being the sole rule of faith, then why does he not wash his neighbor's feet? As the Lord says to his disciples, ** If I, being Lord and Master, have washed your feet ; you also ought to wash one another's feet." If he cannot show me that this is not a commandment, let him show me why he does not continue to obey it. Let him also justify from scripture the change in the observance of the Sabbath. Mr. Pope rose and said : — Gentlemen — my learned friend nas asked, when we are individually all fallible, by what proceug can we arrive at an infallible decision] I ask my friend the same question. He has told us, that he believes the Pope to be iklliblet and all the bishops and priests of the Romish church \m THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 61 |K> fallible. Now, I should wish to know by what method iliey who according to Mr. Maguire's own confession are all fallible. can become infallible 1 He tolls me, that if my doctrines be admitted, a young child must remain an Atheist until he arrives at years of discretion. Now, what do I find the scriptures saying on this subject? "Train up a child in the w±y he should go, and when he is old he will not depart therefrom." The Psalmi.st declares, '* that out of the mouths of babes ano sucklings God has perfected praise :" and the Saviour remarks, that " the things which are hidden from the wise and prudent, are revealed unto babes." I readily admit, that, in the first instance, in a great degree, the faith of the Protestant child, as to the authenticity and inspiration of the scriptures, must rest on the veracity of the parent. And I ask Mr. Maguire, is noi this the case with the children of Roman Catholics ? How can a Roman Catholic child believe that the church of Rome is infallible, or that she possesses any authority, unless the child receives these opinions on the authority of the parent? JJo we, in point of fact, find more Atheists among the children of Protestants than among those of the Roman Catholic com- munion ? Let facts decide. But my friend says, I argue in a vicious circle, because I prove the inspiration and authority of the sacred scriptures by the right of private judgment, and maintain the right of every man to exercise his judgment by the authority of the scriptures. But this exercise of the judgment IS an inherent right, implanted in man by the God of Heaven, to «vhoin we are accountable. There is no other way given of discovering truth. We possess a natural right to exercise our judgments on the contents of any document purporting to be a revelation from God. The x\postles themselves appealed to the judgments of men. There is no other mode of deciding upon the authority of the scriptures, but by the exercise of pri- vate judgment. And a subsequent appeal to the inspired oracles in confirmation of the right of private judgment, does net militate against the laws of sound reasoning, 1 deny, there- fore, that I argued in a vicious circle. But, on the contrary, I assert, that this was the case with my friend, Mr. Maguire, What were the arguments which he made use of to show the authority of his Church? When asked to prove her authority, he refers to the scriptures ; and when again requested to prove the authority of the scriptures, he refers to the church. Just aa if I were (to give you a familiar illustration) to take two books, and place the one up the other — thus. — (Here Mr. Pope taking two books gave a practical illustration of his meaning.) The same part cannot be at once the superstructure and the r^andation. If the church ^ives authority to the scriptures, Di THE INFALLIBILITY OF (hen the authority of the church must be independoiit of the Bcripturey ; and we cannot appeal to the scriptures in support of her authority. If the scriptures give authority to the church the authority of the scriptures must be independent of the au- thority of the church ; and we cannot appeal to the c-hurch in support of their authority. My learned friend has asked me for my creed. I have given it ; and now return the question upon himself. He would, no doubt, tell me that he beheved whatever the church has decreed. This you will find is an ^ xceedingly indefinite reply. My friend agreed with Delahogue in his Tractatus de Ecclesi^, that there are eighteen general councils ; but he was not quite certain as to the number, nor did he attempt to specify the peculiar characteristics necessary to designate a council as general. You perceive, therefore, when I ask Mr. Maguire for his confession of faith, he has to refer to general councils ; and yet at the same time he cannot state, by what mark a general council can be distinguishet' from others : while I appeal for my creed to certain well-defined articles, and to the Bible as the ground-work of the Christian faith. Now, I would ask, whose creeds is the most defined — mine, which is contained in the book of God, the Bible ; or Mr. Maguire's, who refers you to general councils, of the authority of some of which doubts are entertained ; and to the unanimous consent of the Fathers, scattered through a multi- tude of ponderous folios? I affirm, that I do not difi^er in any essential point of faith from the church of England, or from any Protestant communion. I think, however, my reverend friends
    mmentary — except we choose to take the unanimous consent » the Fathers, as contamed in the numberless and massy V dumes that have emanated from their pens ! My friend has t{ Iked of a ray of light which would dry up all the streams of I rotestant opinion — I wish he would now suffer that ray to beam upon us. If he be able to produce such a light, is it not uncharitable in my reverend friend to allow us any longer to remain in the state of darkness of which he speaks? But my friend has also brought forward the numbers attached to his church as a proof of her universality. Numbers, permit me to say, are no proof of truth. If such, however, be regarded as a proof of universality and infallibility, the church of Rome cannot be the universal or infallible church. It has been ascertained, tliat there are at present seventy-five millions of Protestants, and, in addition, fifty millions belonging to the Greek church, who also protest against the church of Rome. Now the aggre- gate of these is one hundred and twenty-five millions ; while the number belonging to the Roman Catholic church amounts to but ninety millions. So that we perceive, even in point of numbers, this wonderfully infallible and universal church, when weighed in the balance, is found wanting. Mr. Maguire has asserted, that the Bible is a dumb judge, and unable to pronounce — yet we find that the Saviour consid- ered it competent to decide : for he again and again appealed c the Old Testament scriptures — " Had ye believed Moses, ye wo'ild have believed me, for he ivrote of me." It is worthy of observation, that Bellarmine (de Conciliis, 1, i, ch. 6,) gives us a list of general cowaciXs partly confirmed SLud pmrthj rejected; and (in c. 7, and Rom. Pont. 1, iv, c. 11,) ho says, that several things in those councils allowed to be general, were foisted in by heretics — he knows not how. My learned ouDcnent in correct, according to Delahogue, as to the numbers 66 THE INFALLIBILITY OF of general councils — but strange to say, Delahogue himsoli admits, that there is a division respecting the council of Con« Ftance — all Catholics, he observes, confess that as to some of its sessions it was ecumenical ; the Italians deny that it was ecumenical as to all its sessions, while the French church vigorously maintain the directly opposite opinion. — Tract de Eccles. p. 451.) Again, Delahogue (p. 452,) acknowledges the uncertainty t;xisting respecting the 5th Lateran council, and quotes the foU lowing passage from Bellarmine: " It remains a question among Catholics to the present day, whether tae 5th Lateran be truly a general Council." — (L. ii, de Cone. c. 13.) I beg to remark, that Delahogue must include the council of Constance, or the 5th Lateran, in order to complete the number of eighteen general councils. And yet with all the assistance of an infallible church, he has not told us which of the two he has adopted, not having prefixed any number to either. There- fore, another infallible tribunal is called for, to determine which councils are general, and which are not ; and an infallible depository is required to preserve the councils, according to Bellarmine, from the interpolations of heretics ! I would ask, is it the character of the council which is to decide the ortho- doxy of the doctrine, or the orthodoxy of the doctrine the char- acter of the council? If the former, who is to decide upon the characteristics of a general council 1 If the latter, why is not the council of Tyra, held in the 6th century, received as general, as well as the first council of Nice — both having been summoned by imperial authority? Was not the 5th council assembled at Constantinople in despite of the opposition of Pop«; Yigilius ? Did not that council condemn as heretical, three books, against the express prohibition of Yigilius — the one by Ibas, Bishop of Edessa, the other of Theodorus of Mopsuestiv'^., ind the other of Theodoret, Bishop of Cyrus ? And yet was iiot that very council in the end approved of by the successoi.^ oi' Yigilius, and, in fine, received throughout all the church as a true and ecumenical council ? (Yide Baronium in Justiniano et Yigilo, tom. vii, et Sirmundum Praefat, in secund.) All this doubt and confusion carry upon them prima facie evidence, thai the church of Rome is destitute of infallibility. I now solemnly put it to Mr. Maguire's conscience, will he Btand to every thing which is decreed in general councils ? I am satisfied that he will not. In the 27th canon of the 3rd Lateran council, the persecution of heretics is reccmmended. It is decreed (3 Lat. council, can. 16,) that "oaths are to b« regarded as perjuries which militate against ecclesiastical utilit'^ and the institutes ol the holy Fathers." Will Mr. Maguire, I gay, THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. 57 ru\ncl to such decrees ? He cannot ; he will not. What then becomes of the infallibiUty of general councils in his estimation] Again — we have had contradictions the most opposite. The ro.mcil of Constance deposed three Popes and declared the papal authority was subject to a council. We may differ about the signification of passages in the scripture, but we can appeal 10 common sense — to the context — or to the analogy of faith — but we cannot appeal to an infallible tribunal to decide — for the 3xist€nce of such a tribunal is the matter in debate. But facts can speak — council is against council — Pope against Pope. The church of Rome has not yet been able to decide as to the si)at of her supposed infallibility ; and, by referring me to the unanimous consent of the Fathers to discover the doctrines of scripture, bids me to waste my life in wandering through their oonderous folios. Facts, such as these, lead me at once to conclude, that the church of Rome is not infallible. Mr. Maguire — I have first a few words to say in reply to Mr. Pope. He has endeavored, but in vain, to get over the difi[iculty which I called upon him to solve, namely, how a Pro- testant child could receive the Bible as the inspired word of God. The child could only receive the scriptures upon the private judgment, or the authority of the minister. If he receive the scriptures upon that authority, and that such authority be recognised by Mr. Pope, then the question is settled. Mr. Pope endeavored to illustrate his argument by placing one book on the top of another, and he gets out of the circle in which he is involved by upsetting both books. I defied Mr. Pope to point out an error regarding matters of faith in the Latin Vul- gate. He appealed to a passage in Hebrews where he asserts •t is said of Jacob, " adoravit cacumen virgae ejus." Now in the first place, the quotation is false and the Latin is bad — the words are, " fastigium virgae ejus." — The controversy here is about the Greek word ^ni. It signifies towards the top of the staff, as well as the top of the staff. The latter is the better translation — every man who knows Greek, knows the Greek word will bear both meanings. This passage has baen very My discussed by Dr. Lingard who is fully qualified to sustain !t. I can assure the learned gentlemen, that he ir> very far, in this instance, from proving the existence of an error m the Latin Vulgate. I said that no Catholic is bound to believe in the mfalhbility of the pope ; and I re-assert, that it does not from an article of Catholic faith. Divines have had, and may still have their private quarrels about it. But such differences from no breach of communion, as the subject matter in dispute, forma no aiiicle of Catholic faith* " Upon this rock'' says oui 58 THE INFALLIBILITY OF Saviour, "I will build my church, and the gates of hell shall no prevail against her." Here is the infallibility promised by oui Lord, and claimed by the Catholic church, and not the infalli- biliy of the pope, which my learned adversary would cram down the throats of Catholics, " velint nolint" — as an article of Catholic faith. 1 called upon Mr. Pope to produce any ecumenical council i^hirh contradicted another in matters of faith. It is strange tha\ he should quote what he has quoted regarding the taking of an oath. I affirm that everv oath should be taken in truth ana justice, and in j idgment. No man should swear to any thing for which he has not the evidence of his senses, or a certainty approaching to mathematical precision. A person who would swear contra statuta patrum^ would not, undoubtedly^ have such evidence to sustain his oath. I repeat in the face of the learned world, that what Mr. Pope has quoted from the councils, forma no part of their decision upon matters of faith. When a council decides upon matters of faith, it employs a certain invariable form — '' Si guis dixerit,^^ " If any person shall say," &c, — " anathema sit^^^ " let him be anathema." When this form is employed, the decision is upon an article of faith — I told you already there were eighteen ecumenical councils. — Tliey never issued an anathema in the above form, where an article of faith was not concerned. But, in matters not connected with faith or essential morahty, a council may err. The infalhbility of general councils extends only to matters of faith and essential discipline. The promise which Christ made to his church was, that she should never teach error. Our articles of faith are well known. I defy any one to produce me a general council which <^5.s contradicted another general council in matters of faith. Mr. Pope speaks vauntingly of seventy-five millions of Pro- testants. W^here are they ? They do not exist — unless, indeed, you collect under the broad standard of Protestantism many sects, who differ more from each other than I do from my friend, Mr. Pope. I ask, when you separate all those jarring sects, where are the millions of whom Mr. Pope speaks, with all the urtifice of a practised rhetorician 1 But Mr. Pope would rather ^muse us with powerful declamation, than descend to the vulgar level of argument. Is it honourable to adduce against me liic Arian council of Basil? Is the Catholic church to be account- able for the conduct of those whom she had formally excommu- nicated ? I have proved, that in the Catholic church exists the authority to put down error. Other churches tolerate a super- ficial conformity, and introduce into their bosoms vipers that will gnaw their very vitals. See how the Puritans overturned thr f stabliahed church, and kicked out ihe bishops of Scotland. Il THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH 59 18 contiary to the spirit of th(.- Piotestant church to condemn en or, and yet she retains the Athanasiau creed, which proves that m her nature she is not tolerant. But she prudently exhibits this species of toleration, for otherwise her churches would be deserted, and the conventicles crowded to excess. If the king of England has no choice, but must remain a Protes- tant ''f the church of England, is not that a betrayal of con- sciencn, and an inroad upon the exercise of private judgm-.nt? Is the Athanasian creed characteristic of that toleration of which the church of England boasts ? The man who swears against the doctrines of the Catholic church perjures himself, as the council of Lateran declares. For it is not possible he can be certain that the oath he takes is true. How can any man swear, that the doctrines of the Catholic church are damnable and idolatrous ? The oath is not that he believes them so, but that they are so for fact. The declaration of his majesty, prefixed to the homilies, declares, that the thirty-nine articles of the church of England contain all things necessary ; and it strictly prohibits all differ- ences from them : *' we will not allow (i-t says) the least devia- tion.'* The church of England, then, is not a particle more tolerant than the church of Rome, though it evinces a great variance in its practice. If the Protestant clergyman believes that a church has been established by Christ, he should uphold it — if he does not believe so, why should punishment be inflicted on those who separate from the communion of the church of England ? Ought not the Protestant clergyman contend agaiiist those who rise in opposition to that church ? If they be .he "iccessors of St. Peter, and if the Holy Ghost has endow^ed i/ieir church with the spirit of grace, as they would make ua believe, she should exercise her authority, and not give the sanction of her name to every spawn of the innumerable sects that range themselves under the banner of Protestantism. Johanna Southcote exercised the right of private judgmen*^ when she announced herself as pregnant with the Messiah. Every man of sense must allow, that by private judgment we never can prove the inspiration of the scriptures. Why then will Mr. Pope not receive them upon the authority of the Catho- lic church, instead of resorting to the authority of frail and falli- ble man ? I asserted that Christ never gave a positive command to write the New Testament. If St. John, at Patmos, M^as ordered to V -"ite to particular churches, that does not by any means prove thai a special command was given by our Saviour that the New Testament should be written, particularly as St. John wrote about facts, and not about doctrines to those particular churches. 60 THE INFALLIBILITY OF The truth is, nearly sixty years had elapsed from the death o' Christ till the last of tlie New Testament was written. Wen the people of God left in the meantime without a rule of faith to guide and to direct them? Was it not the Roman Catholic church that converted these islands from paganism — missiona- ries sent from Rome to England rescued that land from idolatry and paganism. The Christian church was cemented in the tirsS ages with the blood of martyrs — thirty-four Popes in succeesioB after St. Peter became martyrs for the faith of Jesus Christ. Forty-five others are canonized saints — Protestants also have their saints ; and churches are dedicated to saints. I may t^rs in passing, remark, ttiat Catholics do not worship the saints — it is a rank calumny, invented in order to fling dust into the eyea of the multitude. Mr. Pope has not yet attempted to answer my direct argu- ment, both from scripture and the holy Fathers — he has indeed advanced, and the task was an easy one, several captious objec- tions. If a Catholic happens not to know the history of every general council which has been held, the conclusion drawn from such premises by Mr. Pope is, that the church of Christ is proved not to be infallible. Has Mr. Pope quoted any texts of scripture, direct, plain, and obvious, like those I adduced 1 I have here more than seventy passages from the Fathers upca the subject, and I would read them to you if the time permitted. In one of them the church is compared to the ark of Noah, ou\i of which no one shall be saved. I deny that we look upon al! Protestants as heretics — we consider Arius, Luther, Calvin, &c. who have separated directly from the church, as heretics. But, as St. Augustin says, we do not consider the children or de- scendants of heretics, as formal heretics, unless they remain obstinate and contumacious in their errors. I am opposed to the doctrine of the Pope's infallibility. It is imposed upon me by Mr. Pope — but I have already stated that it forms no part ot the doctrine of the Catholic church, and is not received by the Catholics throughout the world. I may conclude this day'e discussion by again asserting that Christ promised he would l» with his church teiching, preaching and baptizing until V ^ cor summation of the world — my scripture proofs th^^reforf i^" untouchad. THE DIVINE RIGHT Or rn.» IE JUDGMENT. t>^ SecOiNd Day. — Friday, April 20. SUBJECT. — Th^ Divine Right of frivate Judgment to prv^ nounce upon the AutherAicity, Integrity, and Canonicity oj Scripture, and to determine its meaning in Articles of Faith, \t eleven o'clock the Chair was taken by Daniel U'Con- H ?i,L, Esq. and Ad3iiral Oliver. Mr. Maguire rose, and called on Mr. Pope for proofs lo sustain his rule of faith, which he (Mr. Maguirp) ur^Jcisiooa lo mean private judgment. Mr. Pope — I shall preface my observations this day, by assuring the present meeting, that I was under thft fu" Cuuvic- tion, that I should yesterday have had an opportunity of replying to Mr. Maguire's last speech. Mr. Maguire spoke six times, while my addresses were but five in number. In justice, therefore, the right of reply was vested in me : but as the chair- men were divided on the point, and as I felt that iiiy aigumenis against the infallibility of the church of Rome had been cogent and satisfactory, I waved my privilege. I cannot avoid noticing the bold, and, I must say, unfounded assertion of my opponent that I did not touch one of his argunjents. Gentlemen, you will decide on that question. I regret that it is the fashion of man ^ advocates of the church of Rome* to substitute barefaced asser lion and high-sounding language for solid argument. With respect to the proofs of the right of private judgment, I shall first adduce negative evidence. If there be no infalhble tribunal, man is under the necessity of exercising his judgment. I shall therefore make (partly in reply to Mr. Maguire) some remarks on the infallibility of the church of Rome. And first I beg to say, that Mr. Maguire has not proved that the church of Rome is the church of Christ. The passages, I maintain, which he adduces from scripture, do not demonstrate the infallibility of %ny church — much less the infallibity of the church of Rome. It is remarkable, that the church of Rome, which has defined ©very thing, has never given a definition of herself! In the conferences previous to the decrees of the eleventh session oi the council of Trent, Tincent Lunello, a Franciscan friar, pro- posed that a definition )f the church and her authority should precede the declarations of the disputed points of doctrine. The motiom was rejected. — (Sarpi's History of the Council of Trent, 1. iL, p. 155, Geneva, 16^5.) If the church has dg< 6 62 THE DIVINE RIGHT defined herself, how are her votaries to discover the source from which they are to derive their opinions. Mr. Maguire also admitted, if I mistake not, that in the primitive ages the church of Rome was not looked upon as the Cathe^lic church. In reference to Matt, v, 13. — " But if the salt has lost its STivor," &c. I beg to observe, that Maundrell in his travels, espressly mentions, that "In the Valley of Salt, near Gebul, and about four hours' journey from Aleppo, there is a small precipice, occasioned by the continual taking away ftf the salt. In this, says he, you may see how the veins of it lie : I broke a jiete of it, of which the part exposed to the rain, sun, and air, though it had *e sparks ».\r>J particles of salt, yet had perfectly lost its savor, as in Matt, v." Again — there was an asphaltic substance, which was used by ihe Jews to saK their sacrifices, and which, if kept too long, lost lis flavour, an(i was thrown upon the floor of the Temple to orevent the Priests' slipping. Hence the allusion — " Trodden binder foot of mmy These observj^tions will, I trust, serve to *fiow that the Sanour iyi the passage which we are consideritig, ^ouid not have aduded to the infallibility of the Apostles. Does my friend mean to say, that the Sixtine and Clementine editions do not vary in minima particuk ? I have a work no\^ oefore me, " Hornets Iut»odaction to tho Study of the Scrip- •rtires," in which ne gives us a specimen of the discrepancies trxisting between the Oieiiiontine and Sixtine editions. As to vacob worshipping the to{> \jf his rod, as the Douay Testament nas it, I beg to observe, that vhe Apostle Paul quoted from the »§eptuagint. The original Hebirew word in the 47th of Genesis and 31st verse, to which St. Piiul refers, according to the dif- ferent pointing, signifies both " a ft/d and a bed." The Douay Bible translates the passage (Gen. \lvii, 31,) thus : " And he A/aid, swear thou to me. And as he was swearing, Israel aiorea God^ TURNING TO the bed's head.^'' The scholars, howeV'?r, can at once decide, whether "Jacob adored the top of his rod" IS not a gross mistranslation of the origiiial text. Mr. Maguire insinuated that the canons of the third count.il of Lateran, (27 and 16,) relative to ihe persecution of heretics, and to oaths which militate against ecclesiastical utility, are matters of discipline ; but I insist that they relate to morals- - ^* pertinent ad mores,^^ We all know, how Jesuits and other j interpret " Ecclesiastical utility." It is a remarkable fact, that the pope may bvJ the sole author of the canons of a council. Dupin, in reference to the 70 canons passed in the fourth or great Lateran council, (vol. ii p. 449,) writes, " Matthew Paris says, that these canons seemed tolerable to some of tLi pielates, but grievous to others. His words are these, ' Facto prius cb ijm OF PRIVATR JLDCMENT. 62 fipa exhortationis sermcne, recitata .sunt in pleno concilio capitula septuaginia^ q\KB aliis placahilia, aliis videbantur onerosa^ Let the case be how it will, it is certain, that these canons were not made by the council but by Innocent fil, who presented them to the council ready drawn up, ami ordered trem c be read ; and that the prelates did not enter into any debate upon theia ju. .hat their silence was taken for an approbation." Is it not evident, therefore, that the canons were forced u^oii /he council by Pope Innocent IIH The Rev. Dr. Murray, in his examination before the Com. non's committee, p. 223, when asked, " Will you be so good as to explain the nature of the authority of the Pope?" replied, "he is the executive power of the church ; his office is to enforce .he observance of the canons." I would remark, that the Pope possesses also a dispensing power. — The Maynooth class-book informs us, " That the Pope may, according to circumstances, dispense even with the aws of a general council, whenever a legitimate cause shall arise." — P. 360. Mr. Butler states, "That, m the opinion of all Roman Catholics, it belongs to the Pope in extraordinary cases to act in opposition to the canons." Do not these statements sufficiently demonstrate the supreme sower exercised by the Pope, both in council and out of council? Mr. Maguire was offended by my reference to the council of Basil, i ask, was the council of Basil ever regarded as a general council? Bellarmine (de Eccles. Milit. c. 16.) remarks, " That the council of Basil was at first a true ecumenical council and infallible, but afterwards became a schismatical conventicle, and of no au- thority at all !" Again, Bellarmine says, (De Roman. Pont. 1. ii, c. 11.) " The council of Basil, by common consent, and with the legate's concur rence, concluded that a council is above the Pope, which is now rightly 'udged erroneous." It is a fact, that there is no standard of the Roman Catholic faith in general use in this country. Dr. Doyle, speaking on Ihis subject, says, "Besides the articles enumerated in the creed of Pius the fourth, there are others to be received as of faith. These are defined in the sacred canons, of which some are received entire, some in part, and of which no account can be obtained from the formularies to which the Roman Catholic bishops have referred to as authentic."- Dr. Doyle's Evidence before the House of Lords, p. 1 80. So much for Dr. Doyle's opinion upon the subject. As we have seen that great uncertainty exists with respect to general councils, I ask again, (as Mr. Maguire has not solved the question) whether the character of the council is to decid« the orthodoxy of the doctrine, or the orthodoxy of the doctnnfi to decide the character of the council ? If the former, who is iQ 54 THE DIVINE RIGHT decide upon the characteristics of a general council? If th orthodoxy of the doctrine is to decide the character of th council, why is not the council of Tyre, held A. 13. 535 received as general, as well as the first of Nice, both having been alike called by imperial authority? Mr. Maguire has tolc* us, that a council approved by the Pope is infallible. Then thfe decrees were fallible before the Pope confirmed them. Foi instance, the decrees of the council of Trent were fallible, unti they received the sanction of the representatives of the Pope at *he council ? It is admitted, that a council without the Pope i3 faUiblo, and that the Pope per se is also fallible. Again Ptlr. Maguire remarks, that the decrees of the Pope, assisted by a 'ew bishops are infallible, when " received by the universal church." I am desirous of knowing what is the meaning of " the universal church.'' I presume that it signifies the Roman Catholic hierarchies in Ireland, in Spain, and elsewhere. These bodies are confessedly fallible. I wish then to know by wha process decrees set forth hy fallible authority become infallible when received by fallible bodies of men. Again, Bellarmine speaks of general councils, which are to be altogether rejected and of general councils partly to be received and partly to be rejected ; and also remarks that several things in councils allowed to be general, were foisted in by heretics. We musi therefore have another infallible tribunal to decide, what coun- cils are really general, and what passages in them are the inter- polations of heretics ! Some councils, according to Delahogue, are but partially received in some countries, and wholly admitted in others. For instance, that of Constance. Some doubt of the ecumenicity of the first council of Lyons. (Delahogue, p. 448.) The fifth Lateran council has been doubted of, accord- ing to Bellarmine, non quasdam sessiones, not as to some ses- sions, but in toto, altogether. Further — If I admit the church of Rome to be infallible, then I must acknowledge its decisions as divine. But two divine traditions, which must necessarily come from the same source, cannot possibly contradict each other : yet the second council of Lateran (Can. 6.) prohibits the marriage of ecclesiastics, on the ground of immutable and inherent holiness. The canon remarks — " When they ought both to be, and to be called the temple of God, the iressels of the Lord, the shrine of the Holy Ghost, it is unworthy that thei ihould become the slaves of chambering and imcleanness." Such is the language in which the council speaks of marriage. But what says the scriptures 1 ** Marriage is honourable in all, and the bed undefiled, but whoremTnaei* und adulterers God will judge." Heb. xiii, 4. OF PRHATE JUDGMENT. 65 On this subject the Bible is directly at issue with the church of Rome, therefore she cannot be infallible. — Again, permit me to ask, were I to grant for the moment, that the church of Romo is infallible — is there not much danger, les n?istakes should o< cur in the interpretation of the meaning of her councils] We have argued on the claims of the church of Rome to infallibility. I have appealed to scripture, reason, common sense, and facts. How shall we decide, whether Mr. Maguire's opinion on the subject, or mine, be correct? If I find a church contra^ dieting itself, I have prima-facie evidence that she is fallible. — The council of Constance deposed three Popes, who attempted to sit together in the chair of St. Peter (which was well nigh broken, as Fuller says,) and appointed another Pope. On the other hand, the council of Florence and Trent have raised the authority of the Pope above a council. Here is a palpable contradiction on the authority of the Pope. — Again, the counci) of Ephesus decreed — " That it should not be lawful to utter, write, or compose any other faith than that which had been denned by the Nicene Fathers ; and that, if any darec to offer any other creed, if ecclesiastics ^ they should be removed from their offta (dienos esse; if laics, that they shoxdd be anathematized.^^ — (Labb. et Cosa. Cone. torn, iii, p. 668.) Here you observe that the counci] of Ephesus deposed ecclesiastics and anathematized laics who should compose any other faith than that which has been defined by the Nicene Fathers. Compare the JVicene Creed with that of Pope Pius, and you will find the latter differing from the former in many particulars, and containing many articles not to be found in the Nicene Creed. I, therefore, without hesitation conclude, that we have "the church" of one ag^e contradictino^ "the church" of another age. Again — the second Nicene council declares, hat one reason for worshipping the image of Christ is, that he is .lot sensibly present with us, but only in his Divinity ; — Act iv, p. 305. And the epistle of Germanus, received by the council, says, that he is not present " aaj,««T^xwg" bodily. It also anathe malizes all who assert thai Christ was not circumscribed as to hih humanity, I ask, are not these opinions plainly opposed to the doctrine of transubstantiation ? But the church of Rome now receives the doctrine of transubstantiation. Again, therefore, we have "the church" of one age against "the church" of another age. Let these contradictions go before the world, and that world will come to the conclusion that the church of Rome is not infallible. Believe me, it is this claim to infallibiiity, which will give the death-blow to the church of Rome. She dares not alter a single tenet ; her doctrines are written as with a diamond ■^ -they are engraven on tables of brass, and she canna reforur 6* 68 THE 2iVINE RICHT I therefore repuat that her vain assumption of hi^ bihty will, ik de dispensations of Pr">vidence, give her the death-blow b^ which she shall fall. If then, there be no infallible tribunaJ in existence, must we not hi under the necessity of exercising ouj: ^r^^'.rci^ judgments. i^^hen we talk of the right of private judgment, it should be understood that we mean no^ that every man is justified in putting any explanation that fanc} may suggest on the word of God. — We must exercise our judgments as accountable beings, according to the rules of common sense, and the a':>alogy of scripture, with due submission to the moral restraints arising from the opinions of men of sound understanding and piety. — Do we say that a man who exercises his judgment on the con- tents of any work which he may peruse, is justified in adopting the idle imaginations of his own brain as the meaning of the author ? No — we instantly i eject such an absurd opinion. But in reading the scriptures we are not only to exercise our judgment with the same care which we would bestow upon other volumes, but as beings accountable to God^ and as deeply interested in the concerns of an eternal world. These are considerations by which a man is solemnly called upon to exercise his judgment upon the subject-matter of the inspired records — these are rules by which, I conceive, he is to be guided in that exercise. The misinterpretation of the law of the land is no justification for the commission of illegal acts ; nor will the misunderstanding of God's blessed word, on the great fundamental truths of the Christian system, afford any security to error, but will expose us to the wrath of the great Eternal. I now come to my direct proofs of the right of private judgment. Truly it is an extra- ordinary question ; Am I justified in employing my intellectual faculties ? Why are faculties bestowed on men, if they are not to be exercised? If I am not to exercise them, is not my accountability destr.> /-ed ? The church of Rome must allow Der own votaries to exercise their private judgment on ihe proof s of her authority. They must lay the foundation of their system on private judgment ; and if they can lay the foundation, why should they not be competent to raise the superstructure ? If they must exai. ^ne the basis, why should they not be allowed to exercise their fi- culties upoa the nature of the edifice which rests upon it? Relgion is a personal matter, "^t is written in the 5^'ord of God : " Every man shall bear his own burden." — Gal. vi, 6. "Every one of us shall render an account to God Jor Aimsc//."— Rom, iiv, 12. The idea of an infallible tribunal requires me to give up the exercise of my faculties, in opposition to the natural <5onstitutioy or PRIVATE JUDGMENT 61 ©f the humap. mind. I cannot believe any thing, except on evidence. Who formed the mind? The Deity. If the exercise of my judgment, therefore, coincides with the natural constitution of the mind, then to exercise that judt^jment must be my noble prerogative — must be my bounden duty. Gentlemen, put together these observations, and you cannot avoid coming to the plain and evident conclusion, that there is no infallible tribunal Aie we not, therefore, thrown back upon our own judgments . \^ eigh the considerations in subservience to which the judgment should be exercised — the moral accountability of man, the voice of common sense and reason — and will you not join issue with me, and assert, that the exercise of private judgment is the birth- right of every son and daughter of Adam 1 [J\Iy\ O'Connell being obliged to retire upon 'professional business^ the Chair was taken in his stead by Mr. Hugh 0^ Connor.] Mr. Maguire. — Mr. Pope has commenced by making a very long complaint that he had it not in his power to reply to me yesterday evening. It was decided by the chair that he had no right to reply ; and if the time specified in the regulations was expired, wiiy should he make the demand ? By what magic could he transfer that right to himself, when chance gave me the opportunity of speaking last? With regard to what has been advanced by Mr. Pope from Fra Paolo, respecting the council of Trent, I at once deny the authority of such a man. Mr. Pope introduced yesterday much irrelevant matter, which had nothing to do with the question of the infallibility of the church of Rome ; and this day he has advanced but one or two reasons for the faith which he himself professes. He says, that I have not PjVoved my church to be the church of Christ; I already said, that the question, then before us was, not whether the Catholic church was the church of Christ, but whether Christ had established a church on earth, and endowed it with the pre- rogative of infallibility'? The Protestant churches, divided as they are upon the most essential points, can lay no claim to infallibility. But one church claims to be infallible, and but one church possesses any pretensions to the title. No other church has even the semblance or outward appearance of infallibility. To prove that Christ established an infaUible church, I quoted '^rious texts of scripture. Mr. Pope seemed either to be afraid r ashanried to recur to scripture on the subject of private judgment. I showed yesterday that what was meant by the church of Christ, was all the churches in the world holding communion with the See of Rome, which was deemed the mother and matrice of all Christian churches, as St. Cyprian calls it. All the oburches m that communion form lie gf^nem 68 THE DIVINE RIGHT term of the church of Christ. Mr. Pope again emieavoured to draw a distinction between the Catholic church and the church of Rome, I have already shown the term Roman was applied to the Catholic church in order to distinguish her from the churches which the heretics set up in opposition. The Deists, no doubt, will feel obliged to Mr. Pope for the argument he has advanced relative to the salt. This argument was most vaunt ingly put forward by Voltaire against the Divinity of Christy and the infallibility of his Apostles. That celebrated infidel, with blasphemous flippancy, declared, that Christ was a great block- head to compare his Apostles to the salt of the earth, as at argument of their infallibility, and undertook to prove that the salt can lose its essence, and consequently that Christ wai ignorant of chemistry^ and his Apostles, by their Master's own comparison, proved to be fallible. But his shallow and ridiculou:< arguments were triumphantly refuted by Christian divines. Now, if Mr. Pope can demonstrate that salt may lose its savor, he will establish a position equally fatal to the infallibility of the Apostles, and to the divinity of Christ himself Thus will he elfectuate a cordial union between the representative^, of Voltaire and the followers of the Rev. Mr. PDpe. CatholinG. however, despise the argument of the refined blasphemer, tr prove that salt may be decomposed, and abhor the system (c. which its origin is traced. — The Catholic has no need to exami] le the definitions of general councils — there are few indeed wbo could accomplish that task, If he be once satisfied that tie church of Christ cannot lead him into error^ he, like St. Augusti/i, rests with security his faith upon her authority. She proposes the dogmas — he readily gives his assent. Now, in order to convince himself of the infallibility of his church, he has only to refer to the scripture. He finds multiplied in the sacred volume evident promises, which, if they prove not infallibility, are words ivithout meaning or substance. Christ says to his Apostle. "Thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church, and the gates af hell shall not prevail against it." — Matt, xvi, 18. "The church is the pillar and the ground of truth." — 1 Tim. iii, 15. "He that does not hear the church, let him be to thee as the Heathen and the Publican."— Matt, xviii, 18. " I will send you the Spirit of Truth, to teach you all truth." — John xvi, 13^ " I will send you another Paraclete, to abide with you for ever." — Johl jdv, 16. "I shall be with you all days, even to the end of the world," — Matt Kxviii, 20. If the Roman Catholic be not convinced from those texts ttiat Christ has established an unerring church to guide the ignorant, and to whom her children are bound to yield obedience, I desire to know how can private judgment enable him to decide upon eihf^ OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 6S texts of scripture, not half so strong, and assuredly not h%lf so obvious, Mr. Pope says, that all Reman Catholics must examine vi.e various councils of his church before he can prudently mak'^- an act of faith. The reverse, however, is true. Mr. Pope might just as well assert, that the lower order of Protestants should not doubt of CathoUc faith, unless they were able to prove from the acts of council that the Catholic church is not infallible ; and thits I imagine, he will scarcely admit. The faith of Ronnan Catholics rest upon the promises of Jesus Christ to his church, which promises they conceive are sufficiently explicit to satisfy the most sceptic mind. Tt is easier for a Catholic to ascertain this simple truth, viz: — Did Christ promise that his church shoula not fail 1 — than for a Protestant to inquire and scrupulously examine into every doubt, and difficulty, and argument. The private judgment of the ignorant Catholic leads him to yield his assent to the authority of that church which has formed the largest society of Christians since the coming of the Messiah. And when he adds to the authority of this church, the corresponding authority of the Greek church, which differs from his own in no article of faith, save the procession of the Holy Ghost, he feels his motives of credibility confirmed, and recognizes a safeguard for his own conscious ignorance. On the contrary, how can illiterate Protestants, thousands of whom cannot even read, ascertain whether the New Testament be an inspired work? whether such a text were spoken by Christ himself, or by an inspired disciple ] Is every ignorant peasant able to know that any particular book of scripture is inspired by the Holy Ghost? ^an the lower order of Protestants, [and it was for the poor fifecially that Christ instituted his church) — can the ignorant and illiterate amongst the Protestants, who cannot have recourse to the authority of that church to which Christ gave the deposit of faith — that church which, in what is called the dark ages, lehen a single Protestant was not to he heard of, preserved the copies of the Bible, and that noble translation which St. Jerome accomplished, fourteen centuries before the Reformation — I ask, will the humble Protestant, when deprived of such assistance, be able to prove the word of God ? If not, and it is plain he cannot, then ' vana est praedicatio vestra, vana fides ejus' — ' vain is your preaching, and vain his faith.' As soon as the Roman Catholic ascertains the true marks of Christ's church, and finds those marks to belong exclusively to the Catholic church, he is at onre satisfied — he believes it is inspired by the Holy Ghost, and he rests firm in his faith. The Catholic church has remained for 1800 years- it has defied all the efforts of persecution — it has survived the ik^eck and shcMsks of time, and will defy> till the erd of the worl4 70 I'HE DIVINE RIGHT r11 the heretics^ who may rise in opposition to it. This povei that is upheld by the finger of God alone. Mr. Pope has said, that Innocent the Third forced the canons upon the third Lateran council. He brought them ready framed to the council, and because, after they were debated^ they were approved of by the council, therefore he is to be considered as having forced them on the council. Aci ording to this rule, any one who should originate or introduce a measure in the House of Commons that might afterwards happen to be passed into a iaw, should be considered as having forced it on the house, though the measure had been regularly debated and approved of. It might as well be said that the regulations for this meeting, which had been framed by Messrs. Lawless and Singer, and which were subsequently approved of by us, had been forced upon us by them. Mr. Pope's assertion, that the Pope is able to dispense with the decrees of councils, is an unworthy quibble. He quotes Delahogue to prove that the Pope has the power of dispensing with the canons of councils, but these are canons which relate to mere discipline. The council of Trent, for example, decreed that no persons should marry within four degrees of kindred; yet every bishop can dispense in that degree of consanguinity. I have already explained to you, that the decrees of councils in matters of discipline are not unalterable ; but they are immutable in matters which regard the deposit of faith. It would be foolish and ridiculous to contend that the head of the church should not have it in his power to dispense with the rules and regulations of discipline which may be enacted from time to time, and prove expedient or otherwise according to circumstances. The Pope is able to dispense with the ecclesiastical law ; but neither the Pope jior a general council can change an article of faith. I here challenge Mr. Pope to show me where any one of the eighteen ecumenical councils differs from the remainder in a single particle connected with faith ; I have already defied him to do so, and he has not been able to discover a scintilla of difference between them in matters of faith. He has had recourse to the council of Basil ; that council was, at first, regularly convened by the Pope, but when it had assembled to determine upon doctrine, the emperor introduced into it a phalanx of Arian bishops. The orthodox bishops refused to sit with them, and adjourned to another place. The Arian bishops proceeded to hold their cabaK and is^sued their decrees, and fulminated censures agains the orthodox bishops. The council was ecumenical in the commencement of its sitting, but it was forced to adjourn on account of the rabble of Anans iRtroduc»er Hardt informs us, that others besides divines and grave secular men attended Constance during the council — to wit — barbers, three hundred and six, players, jesters, three hundred and forty-six, pastry-cooks, three hundred and twenty-five, and harlots, seven hundred ! ! ( Vid. Herm. Von Der Hardt de Rebua Univ^ersalis ConciJii Cor fttaritinensis, Tom. v, et Gerardi Dacheri t 74 iiiE DIVINE RIGHT Constantinensis Histonam Magnatum in Constan. Cone. e\ MSS. Vindobonensi CEesareo.) The character of the coiinci of Trent is drawn by one of its members^ Duditheiis, bishop of live churches, who writhig to the emperor Maximiliian II gives this account : "We daily saw hungry and needy bishops come to Trent ; youths for the most part which did begin to have beards, (grave and sage divines!) given over to luxury and riot, hired only to give their voices as the pops PLEASED. They were unlearned and simple yet fit for their purpose in regara ^f their impudent boldness. In one of the early sessions of the council, when there were present only forty-eight bishops ; they decreed the authority of the Vulgate, of tradition, and of the Apocrypha. — Father Paul, who was never excommunicated that I am aware of, says : •' Some thought it strange that five cardinals and forty-eight bishops shoulc have so easily defined the most important and principal points of religion, which till then, had never been decided ; giving canonical authority to booka considered uncertain and apocry^phal ; rendering authentic a translation, differing fi'om the original iexf, and instructing and prescribing the^inanneT of understanding the word of God. J^Tor was there amongst the prelates any one worthy of attention from his learning. There were some lawyers, learned, perhaps, in that profession, but unskilled in rehgion — a few theologians, but these of less than ordinary talent, the greater number gentlemen, or courtiers; and as to their dignities, some were only titular — the greater part, bishops of 80 small a place, that considering each to represent his own people, it could not be said that one thousandth part of the Christian world were represented. Is it not an insult to common sense to suppose, that you could for a moment regard assemblies, composed of such characters caTjable of deciding infalhbly upon articles of faith, and oi • 'ightening the world upon the great truths of salvation 1 No • —never can I entertain such an extravagant, such a monstrous aosurdity. The light of the nineteenth century, believe me, wil^ pour its mighty rays upon the church of Rome, and expose it ir all its naked deformity to the world. My friend has told us, that wc may exercise our private judg ment upon the notes of the Bible, provided they refer not to matters of faith. It is not always easy to distinguish between matters of faith and other articles. But what shall we say as to morals ? At a full meeting of the Roman Catholic board, held in Decern ber> 1816, the notes of an edition of the Douay Bible, which had just appeared, were pronounced by a gentleman who has just left the chair, as containing damnable doctrines. The sam« mdividuai declared, that he would not continue within the paid of the church of Rome, if those notes were not publicly disavowed The Roman Catholic hierarchy have not hcwever protested agamst them. I would ask in this place, does not the opinion, that notes are indispensably necessary for the right understanding •f the sacred volume^ imply, that the word of man is raor© iotel OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 75 Kgible tnan the word of the living God 1 Mr. Maguire observed that Protestants also have notes appended to their Bibles. Surely a Protestant does not act inconsistently with his principles when he consuhs a commentator. I may avail myself of the light which a fellow-raan throws upon a passage of scripture, without deeming him infallible. My friend has again asserted, that his translation is the genuine version. Is his version genuiup, when it contradicts the original? I submit to the leained world, to decide, whether the Douay version be more correct than the Prot^^tant Bible. I have already referred to the passage relative to Jacob worshipping his staff. Is " pen- ance'' a correct rendering of the word " w£7«rot«,'' which obviously signifies a change of mind? I shall be told, perhaps, that the Vulgate renders " fjeKxtoelp^^ " agere penitentiam." But who is so ignorant of Latin, as not to know, that "agere otiuni'' signifies " to be at leisure ;" "Agere vitam," " to live ?'• and so I would translate " Agere penitentiam," " to repent." It is worthy of remark, that Delahogue does not numbei among the eighteen general councils, the council of Jerusalem, as the Roman Catholic divines designate the assembly at Jeru- salem. Let my friend adduce the same proofs of the inspiration of councils, as those which the xipostles exhibited, and then shall we bow down to their authority. I am asked how the poor man is to decide whether the Bible be the word of God ? I w^ould premise, that the right to do a thing and the power to io it, are, very different. I may have a right to go to the East Indies, and yet be unable to undertake so long a voyage. Therefore I again repeat, that the right to do a thing, and the POWER TO DO IT, ARE VERY DIFFERENT. I am asked, hoW the poor man is to decide whether the Bible be the word of (xod ? As to the poor Protestant or Roman Catholic, when 1 present them with a copy of the Scriptures, they will probably be found to be already in possession of some general notion of us inspiration. I shall take a still more extreme case : I shall consider the situation of a person in a distant country, who hag bijen ;;}reviously altogether ignorant of the existence of the word of life — illiterate, but capable of reading. I present him witb the sacred scriptures, and remark, that a perusal of their con- tents will convince him that the volume has proceeded from God* The man feels himself to be a sinner, and a depraved creature ; he witnesses daily proofs of human mortality, but unacquamted wilh the scenes which lie beyond the grave, peoples them with the visions of his own distempered imagi- nation. The inspired records meet the circumstances in which he is placed, by making known peace and pardon through 3 Saviour's blood, and bv throwing a flood of light over b*a p^^ 76 THE DIVINE RIGHT sent and even^sting destinies. Surely if we can disco\er the 8xist?nce of God from the works of his hands, we may doubt- less expect, if the Bible have come from Him, that it contains such proofs of its divine origin, that the sinner shall be con- strained to acknowledge " God has spoken of a truth," and to say cf the Bible, as the woman of Samaria said of th*^. Redeemer, " Come, see a man that told me all that ever I did ; is not this the Christ?" The inspired volume penetrates the inmost recesses 'jC the heart, lays open the secrets of the sou' discovers a man to himself, and carries its own witness that it has emanated from the Fountain of Light. I would also remark, that the written word is not the only means which God has provided for the instruction of man. He has also appointed the preaching of his Gospel. The individual who has received the knowledge of salvation through the medium of oral instruction, finds no difficulty in receiving the sacred oracles as an inspired volume. He approaches them with a spiritual appetite, and experiences the word of truth to be the life and comfort of his soul. " As well," will he exclaim, " as well might you endeavour to per- suade me, that there is no light nor warmth in the sun, as to tell me, that no spiritual consolation flows from the doctrines con- tained in this blessed volume." This is an extreme case — I have met it ; but permit me to say, that there are innumerable proofs of the authenticity, integrity, and canonicity of the inspired volume — -and I am veady, when called upon to ^*"te them. I now ask Mr. Ma- guire, by what mode he wouia prove to an individual in circum- stances similar to those which we have been considering, that ^e Bible is a divine revelation ? Mark this question Mr. Ma- ffuire^ and let me have an answer. Is it, let me ask, the case, that infidels and atheists are chiefly found among the Protestant poor ? Need I reply in the negative? Who have been the authors of heresies? Dupin informs us — " If there be obscure and difficult parts in the Bible, it is not generally the simple who abuse them, but the proud and learned who make a bad use of them. For in fine it is not the ignorant and the simple who have forme^d heresies in perverting the word of God. — They who do so, are gentrdly bisko'ps, piiests, learned and enlightened persons. So that so far from knowing \>y experience, that the reading of the scriptures is dangerous to the simple and the ignorant, one may say, that we learn therefrom that it seldom causes any but the learned to fall into error, and that the simple have generally found there nothing but what is edifying and instructive,^^ —Dissort prelim, sur la Bibl«: 6. i, C.9. Par. 1701. Cardinal Bellarmme writes as ioliowss : " Heresies originate with men of the upper rank rather than with persong belonging to the inferior classes. Beyond a doubt almost all authors ofheresiei have been either bislwps or presbyters (or as some would perhaps translate it, pnests,) Heresies are therefore to be considere i as the factions of leading CF PRIVATE lUDOMENT. 77 ©en, without whom there would be no popular revolts in the chun h,'' — 1>« Romano Pont 1. i, c. 8, ultima editio ab ipso Authore Recognita. Colonia fol. 1620, tom.i, p. 527. The people, I maintain, are the safest defositatiies of God's blessed Word. Ecclesiastics may be tempted to per- vert it ; the poor are not likely to sufler such a temptation. If therefore, the liability of the sacred scriptures to perversioi., furnish a just reason for withdrawing the inspired volume fror^' any portion of the community, it should be taken from ectles!-- astics who have abused it, and put into the hands of the poor and the unlettered. The church of Rome, where she is dominant, may succeed by the strong hand of ecclesiastical despotism in repressing the outward expression of opinion. Have you never heard of Jews abroad, in order to avoid persecution, entering the priesthood, and while celebrating mass, cursing the power which obliges them to act in opposition to their conscience ? The Rev. Joseph Bianco While, who was chaplain to the king of Spain, now a clergyman of the church of England, and who hved in the com- munion of the church of Rome, twenty-five years in sincere submission, and ten in secret rebellion against her authority, in his •' Evidence against Catholicism," 2d edit. p. 7, writes thus— *^ At the end of a year from the preaching of this sermon — the confession b painful, indeed, yet due to religion itself — / was bordering upon atheism. If m/ case were singular, if my knovvledse of the most enlightened classes of Spain did not furnish me with a multitude of sudden transitions from sincere faith and piety to the most outrageous infidelity : I would submit to the Kambling conviction, that either weakness of judgment, or fickleness of character had been the only source of my errors. But though I am not at liberty to mention individual cases, I do attest, from the most certain know- ledge, that the history of my own mind is, vnth little vai'iation, that of a greal portion of the Spanish Cinergy, The fact is certain; I make no individual chari^e ; every one who comes within this general description may still weai the mask, which no Spaniard can throw ot] without bidding an eternal fare- well tO his country." The church of Rome may look in some measure fair anc! uniied ; but within, the system is full of dead men's bones and all uncleanness. I now call upon Mr. Maguire to inform us, by what mode the poGi man can know according to his views, tb^t the Bible is the book of God. Mr. Maguire. — I wish Mr. Pope would afford mr^ ^ometliing tangible to comment upon. I fling back his Protestant and Huguenot authorities. I was not a little astonished to h^ar Mr. Pope quote that a{ ostate, Blanco W^hite, as an authority against the Catholic chup^h. I assert that the man who lived for ten years, according to his own testimony, an atheist a 7* 7b THE DIVINE RIGHT heart, is no worthy of credence, when testifying against tin Roman Catiiolic church. Mr. Pope has again quoted from Dr. Delahogue ; but when he proves that Dr. Delahogue has writtt.-n any thing contrary to CathoHc faith, he will certainly have achieved much. Mr. Pope nas endeavoured to make a point about the word /usravoLa, It is the Greek word for doing penance, and it i^ used in the passage quoted from the sacred volume, in reference to the men of Nineveh, of whom Christ says " the men of Nineveh shall rise in judgment with thia generation, and shall condemn it ; because they did penance at the preaching of Jonas :" the Protestant translation has it ** because they repented." Our Saviour in that passage alluded to the repentance of the men of Nineveh — what was that repent- ance ? They did penance in sackcloth and ashes ; they fasted for three days ; and they did not even suffer their cattle to eat any thing during that period . and we find it recorded in the sacred volume, that their repentance, or penance, disarmed the A^rafeh of God. FastiDi^ and praying are thrown overboard now- a-days, when we have the liberty of the gospel. Pampering the body is now the plan, and good works are scouted as being things of supererogation. It is only in the Catholic church we find fasting ynd praying practised. Mr. Pope says, that a number of harlots came to the council of Trent, aod be quotes Fra Paolo, an historian than whose authority he could not produce worse. I could relate disgrace- ful facts of another church, matters which rest not upon the ipse dixit of a partial historian, but which are well known to have occured. I shall not, however, insult this meeting, nor pullute my lips with the recital of such filthy impurities. It was, to say the least of it, a breach of good manners on the part of Mr. Pope towards the ladies who are present, to introduce the scandalous frabrication of that faithless historian. I will not disgrace my situation here and in the church, by descending to such arguments. I could, if I pleased, quote much to you about Henry the Eighth, and the Virgin Elizabeth. I could tell you matters of fact with regard to those patrons of the refoirnatior^ — and, indeed, I might, by the relation of a few facts, take ample revenae upon my antagonist. Mr. Pone talks of there having been hungry bishops at the council of Trent • — that is a charge that cannot be made against the Protestant bishops of the present day, who have got the tithes and the green acres. I v. ould warn the Protestant Dishoos and clergy, who are in possession of the good things., how they allow the principle which Mr. Pope advocates to spread throughout the land. If every man is to be allowed to think for himself on matters of faith, it will then come to hi OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 9 RSfeed, why do we pay j£^800,C00 a year for the maintenance of an useless clergy ? " Let us fling away the tithes," it will be said — these men have, on their own showing, no right to dictate to us on matters ot^ religion — and as we do not want them, why should we be so enormously taxed for their support." Such will be the consequences, if the Protestant clergy, instead of o[>posing, actually countenance and support the principles ad\ ocated by Mr. Pope. What says a Protestant Clergymrr, the Rev. Mr. O'Callaghan, upon this subject 1 " When Mr. Pope and Dr. Singer, men indeed of high character, and by fer the ablest advocates of the Bible Society, at least in Ireland — when men of this description, dangerous in proportion to their great intellectual and literary calibre, are led away by the prevailmg delusion, and not ashamed tc tell the world that ' the right of an ignorant labourer to read the Bible, involvea his right of interpreting it* — why is the church silent ■? Why does she not address them in her proper organ, if such still exist, to the following effect: — * Reverend brethren, your argument is fallacious, and it is our bounden duty to tell you so. Most true it is that a poor labourer has a right to read the Bible for the health of his soul, and to bathe in the sea for the health of his body. His right to bathe is as clear as his right to read — his right to go into the water also iinphes his right to swim ; but if he swim very imperfectly, or not at all, we hope you will allow that his efforts to swim would be danger- ous, nay, fatal, and that he should not proceed more than chin-deep. " You friends of Christianity beware of Bible Societies every where — lyou friends of peace and good-will among men beware of Bible Societies, and other proselytizing associations, especially in Ireland ? Remember their great principle that has nearly extinguished Christianity in what is called Protestant Germany — be wise in time, farewell! !" Mr. O'Callaghan, a gentleman of talents and extensive inform- iCJon says, that the right of private judgment is not recognised m the church of England. Here we have a Protestant ecclesi* astic arrayed against the doctrine which is preached up by Mr. Pope, who is a Protestant, but not an ecclesiastic. Mr. Pope has spoken of infidelity being a consequence of Popery. I hold in my hand a sermon preached by the Rev. Mr. Rose in the c dlege of Cambridge, and dedicated to the bishop of Chester ; ia this sermon he thus describes the state of Protestant Germany :— " From the state of Protestantism in Germany, a stronger, and perhapt more important lesson is offered on that subject, which is said to form the base and the boast of Protestantism — the right of private judgment. The territle evils resulting in the German church from its exercise, are the 8ir. ngest practical proof of the wisdom and necessity of restraining it Among the German divines it is a favourite doctrine that it is impossible there to'ild ha.ve been a miracle, and the words of scripture are examined and fcioed into any meaning but their ov/n. By some the miracles are said to be, that mythology which must attend every religion to gain the attention of thi multitude; by some the common and well known ribaldry of the infidel IS unspa^mgiy used ; by one or more, high in station in the church, some Br ifice, and probably magnetism has been, even within the last ten years, suggested ; others go so far as to attack the whole booy of the prophets as Impostors, in most outrageous and revolting terms. This docrnne is taught Oy divinep from the pulpit — by professors from the chairs ol theology — it ii 80 THE DIVINE RIGHT addressed to the old to free them from anc ent pnyiidices, and to the vonns as the knowledge which can make them truly wise. Ihis abdicatfoii ui Christianity is not confined either to the Lutheran or Calvinist profession, but extends its baneful and withering influence with baneful force over each. It is curious to observe in what way they get rid of all miracles. Professoi Paulus, in his Critical Commentary assures us, that the man with the with- ered hand had only a luxation of the shoulder, which Jesus perceiving puUe« it into joint." Professor Schultness explains this miracle as follows : " The man had a severe rheumatism ; Christ observing that his blood wtLl much moved, by the indignation with which he heard the question of tii« Pharisees, said to him in that favorable moment, "Stretch out thine hand;* the man attempted to do it, and was healed because that extraordinary excitement had removed the impediment under which belaboured. When Chript restored sight to the blind man, the poor fellow had such weakness in his eye-lids, that he could not keep his eyes open. Christ observing that he never made the attempt to open them, said to him, ' Thou shalt open thine eyes ;' the confidence of the man was so great, that makmg the attempt with ail his might, he opened his eyes. Christ never walked in the waves, but on the shore, or he swam behind the ship, or he walked through the shallows. The daughter of Jairus was not dead, because Christ himself said 'She sleepeth.' When Jesus said to Peter, 'Thou slialt catch a fish, and find in his mouth a piece of money,' the meaning is, before you can sell it for so much, you must open its mouth and take out the hook. At Cana in Galli- lee, Jesus gave a nuptial present of very fine wine, with which, for a joke, he filled the water-pots of stone. The paralytic was an idle fellow, who for thirty years had moved neither hand nor foot. Christ asked him ironically, 'Perhaps thou wouldst be whole?' This irony stirred him up ; — he forgot his hypocrisy." But let us for a moment look at home ; see the numerous sects spread throughout the land — the Seekers, the Jum.pers, the Methodists, the Southcotonians, &c, &c ; all differing more from each other, than does the Catholic from the Protestant church. They afford a rare specimen of that chaos of reform, that Babel of interpretation, which is generated by the exercise of private judgment. A question has been put to me, as to the means by which 1 would attempt to convert the pagan ; I will tell you in plain terms the course I would adopt. 1 would present him witi the Bible ; he would ask what book that was ? I would tell him that it was inspired by God, and left by him to man as a help towards the salvation of his soul, and to instruct him in doctrint and morality. He would then inquire by what means I knew that this was the book of God. I would, in reply, address him as a rational man ; I would tell him that the author of that book had descended from heaven — had tak *n upon him \ne figure of mortal man — that he declared himself the Messiah of God, and the Redeemer come to save the world, and that he proved his Hivine mission by the most astonishing miracles that ever yei were w :ought. He would then ask, how did I know those facta occurred, and that such miracles were performed I wf^ulc OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 81 appeal to the positive evidence of coritemporar} writers, ^%lv^Ql for the moment I should not consider inspired. I would appeal to the scripture as an historical record. I would show that il po£:^essed historical truth — that the Jews never controverted its accuracy. I would, in fine, appeal to the common consent oi marikind, to the inhabitants of distant and different nations, subject to different passions, manners, and habits, speaking quite dilfcrent linguages, and having no communication, verbal of written. I would ask him, was he ready to believe, that all thos') individuals, historians, and nations, had conspired to attest a deliberate falsehood, to impose upon the whole world, and o{ course upon their children, and children's children, a book purporting to be the work of God, but in reality a book of lies, falsehood, and false miracles ? xis soon as I convinced him that Christ wrought the miracles, attributed to him in that book, (and how could he doubt these miracles, when they were admitted botn by Jews and Gentiles?) I would point out to him the many clear, manifest, and obvious texts in scripture, by which a church was proved to be founded and established by Christ, and endowed ivith authority to teach^ and the most solemn assurances thai it would never teach error. I would prove from clear and obv^^us texts ^f scripture, and more clear and obvious texts could not be quoted in support of any doctrine of the Christian religion, that the church of Christ could never teach error to manl'iind. He would then have only to examine these texts as to thj alleged authority of the church, and, this one truth admitted, all his doubts and difficulties upon these points would instantly disappear. The quibbles and objections raised by the deists agamst the sacred volume would vanish in a trice ; and con- scious of his own incapacity, and having no alternative but to submit to authority, or by renouncing authority to reject ah mysteries, he would follow the church, as a safe and certain guide But how would Mr. Pope convert the pagan. Mr. Pope woufd tell iiim that the Bible is the book of God. The pagan will naturally ask him, how does he know it to be such ? Mr. Pope, in reply, would appeal to a certain illumination of the spirit — a iath*>r uncertain standard, it must be allowed, for a poor ignorant uncGMverted pagan. It is an argument, to say the least of it id al surdum, Mr. Pope must then have recourse to authorities. This is aJ I want. If he receive the Bible as the work of God, upon authority, then he establishes the necessity of authority in the Christian world. If then, he says that he cannot otherwise prove me inspiration of the sacred scriptures : then I ask him, how can an act of supernatural faith be founded upon human fellible authority. The infidel, on the contra: y, when converted W THE DIVINE RIGHT hy a Catholic, receives in baptism a divine habitual grace wiiereby he is enabled to beheve in the auihority of the church, from the passages which I have already cited, and which prove me existence of a church, and its infalhbiHty. I defy Mr. Pop€ to produce passages half so clear in support of any single doctrine of Christianity. Did he produce any passage so cleat in support of his rule of faith? St. Paul tells us to avoid a heretic, as 'being condemned by his private judgment.'- Proprio judicio condemnatus, is the language of the Latin Vulgate ; and it is admitted by many learned Protestants, to be the best trans- lation of the scriptures extant. Even St. John tells us not to salute a heretic, " nee ave ei dixeritis." Will Mr. Pope convince any one of the inspiration of the scriptures, but on human authority alone. Now, " faith comes from hearing, and hearing from the words of Christ." Mr. Pope's faith is therefore grounded on human authority, and not on divine inspiration. The Socinian comes to Mr. Pope, (and here I would solicit your particular attention to this point,) and says, I agree with you in your principle of private judgment — I agree with you that the scriptures are the inspired word of God ; but you, Mr. Pope, have corrupted the sense of the scriptures. You put upon them an interpretation which they will not, cannot bear. You admit articles of faith which are opposed to the scriptures, and contrary to common sense. You hold in common with me that there is no way of judging or interpreting the sacred scriptures, except, according to private judgment, or, in other words, common sense. Again, you say, that a woman conceived an infant through a supernatural agency. Here also is a romantic inter- pretation, quite impervious to reason and to common sense, lou should, (concludes the Socinian,) you should understand >'[ those texts in a figurative sense. Mr. Pope will then recur to various passages of scripture to prove the divinity of Christ ; but when he urges his interpretation against that of the consistent Socinian, the latter will contend for his equal right to interpret (hem ; and he will justly inquire, is no man but Mr. Pope to be allowed to exercise the right of private judgment ? I have ae good a right to believe in the existence of an infallible church, and the Socinian as good a right to maintain his own interpreta- tion, and reject all mysteries, as Mr. Pope has to believe in his principles. When Mr. Pope endeavours to urge his interpreta- tion on the Socinian he abandons his own principles. Mr. Pope has no right to blame any man for having exercised his private judgment. Or is that a privilege to be exercised exclusively by the *' saints" and the *' elect?" Let Mr. Pope get out of the predicament if he can. If he can clear up that difficulty, he will uideed be a ' Magnus Apollo.' Let him quit quibHing OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 88 about councils and come directly to the word of God — ^* No prophecy of scripture is made by private interpretation.** 2 Peter, i, 20. I challenge Mr. Pope to show how a Protestan can make an act of faith. But the Catholic who believes iu the church established by Christ, founds his faith upon the authority of that church. All difficulties vanish before him,— the atheist or the deist may start several objections which he cannot answer, but *^ the church is the solution of all difficulties." Mr. Pope inquires how I can get out of the vicious circle, in which he says I am involved, by proving the existence of the church upon the authority of the scriptures, and proving the authority of the scriptures upon that of the church. Mark my answer. — I prove the authority of the church by passages of scripture, not denied by Mr. Pope, — by passages of scripture which are held in common by all Christians. I presume Mr. Pope believes in the four gospels : now I appeal to the four gospels, and to the first epistle of St. Paul to Timothy, to prove that Jesus Christ endowed his church with the glorious privilege of infallibility. Mr. Pope admits the four gospels, and St. Paul's epistle to be genuine. Having proved therefore the authority of the church from those books of scripture acknowledged by Mr. Pope ; I then prove upon the authority of that church already established, the inspiration of the other books which are not acknowledged by Mr. Pope. Where now, gentleman, is the vicious circle ? I have another method of breaking this magical ring — of opening this vicious circle — I will reveal it, in the hope that the ''^ circle"^ ^ will never be proposed as an argument against the Catholic church again. I take the book of the New Testa- r\Q\\i in my hand, and for a moment, not considering it to be flspired, I produce it as a genuine and faithful historical relatioti of the occurrences of the times in which Jesus Christ lived. I learn from this book that a man appeared then upon earth, who called himself the Son of God : I find it there recorded that he performed innumerable miracles in the open day, and in presence of his most inveterate enemies — that he raised a man called Lazarus to life, whose body was nearly rotten in the grave, and that he performed many other and extraordinary miracles, " If I had not (says our Lord,) done among them the works that no oth*:r man hath done, they would not have sin in them.'' — (John XV, 24.) I find from this historical relation that Christ established a church upon earth, to which he made ample and extraordinary promises — that he would remain with his church all days, even unto the consummation of the world — that he would send the Paraclete to guide it in the way — that he would build it UDon a rock — that it would be the pillar and the ground of truth, and that the gates of hell shall never pre rail against it. I taka 84 THE MVINE RIGHT this as a mere history, and if we are to adrri istory, I find u there recorded, that Christ proved his missicn by numerous miracles. I thus prove the avAhoriiij of the church upon the authority of ChrkVs miracles attested by the strongest historical evidence — to wit, the historical evidence of the scriptures, and [ then prove that the scriptures are inspired upon the authority of the church. There is the solution of what Mr. Pope calls a vicious circle. But I feel confident, that Mr. Pope will tind av rather a hard matter to extricate himself from the circle in whictl I Lave him enclosed. Mr. Pope — Mr. Maguire has not spoken of the Rev. Joseph Blanco White in the most complimentary terms. I beg to assure Mr. Maguire, that those who are personally acquainted with Mr. White, describe him as a worthy and excellent man. I could name a gentleman who is not very far distant from this platform, a reformed priest, who has published the nature of the conversation which, he asserts from his own knowledge, is interchanged when priests meet together. I shall not pollute my lips by mentioning it. As to the repentance of the people of Nineveh, I would ask, is God satisfied with the ext( rnal expressions of sorrow 1 Does he not say, " rend your hearts and not your garments, and turn to the Lord your God P' With the character of Henry the Eighth I have little to do. Providence 'tis true, employed him as an instrument, for the accomplishment of important purposes. Henry, indeed, denied the Pope's supremacy ; but there is no reason to doubt that he died a Roman Catholic in principle. Mr. Maguire has eulogized IMr. O'Callaghan. Mr. O'Callaghan, I must be allowed to say, is not the organ of Protestant opiiiion. I grant that infidelity exists in Germany ; but I would ask, what is the difference between the state of so iety in that country and in Spain? Infidelity in the latter country is afraid to give utteiance to its opinions ; \i^ Germany it speaks out. Is it not more honorable to profess scepticism, than to cloak beneath the garb of hy- pocrisy an atheistical heart ? I shall reserve my observatior;^ :^n the divisions which Mr. Maguire remarks, exist among Pro- testants, till we come to the subject of unity. In proof that the Bible is the word of God, my friend closes it, and appeals to ext3rnal evidence — to the universal consent of mankind ; and requires the individual to believe on his iesiimonij^ that the univer- sal consent of mankind is in support of the inspired records. In order to discover the universal consent of mankind, is the pagan, I would ask, to read all the histories that exist 1 Does Dot Mr. Maguire,, in truth, appeal to the private judgment )f th*- man? Does he not adopt that node of reasoning which L« OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 8J professes to condemn? Is it not apparent that Mr. Maguire will have a much more troublesome task than I shall have ? I have not to prove the infallibility of any church. I let the Bible speak for itself. Mr. Maguire ridicules the idea of an internal illumination, and asks, how can a man know whether he pos- sesses that inward light? I answer, " The fruits ofthe Spirit are charity, joy, peace, patience, benignity, goodnesa, love, amity, mildness, faith, modesty, continency, chastity." — Gal. v, 22, 23. Where the fruits of the Spirit are, there the Holy Spirit dwells " If any man will do the will of G od, he shall know whether the doctrine be of God or not," says the Saviour. — John, vii, 17. My friend asks, how can a man make an act of faith upon human authority ! I answer, I do not make an act of faith on human authority, while I maintain that Mr. Maguire does so. Mr. Maguire observes, that he would first regard the scriptures merely as an historical record and that as such they will con- vince his judgment that his church is infallible. I must be allowed to assert, that in thus appealing to the gospels as merely historical authority^ and building upon them, as such, the infalli- bility of the church of Rome, Mr. Maguire acknowledges that her claim to infallibihty rests only upon human authority. Su that Mr. Maguire makes an act of faith in the infallibility of hi» church according to his own views, merely upon hu?nan authority, I am sure that the Roman Catholic Hierarchy will be much indebted to Mr. Maguire for this disclosure. As to grace being necessarily conferred at baptism, it is mere assertion. In proof of the opposite opinion, we have only to refer to the conduct of children. Do we discover every child who has been baptized, evincing the influence of divine grace in his temper and conduct? By no means. The existence of the immoral practices of which children are guilty, is a direct refu- tation of Mr. Maguire's position, that every child receives grace at baptism. Mr. Maguire says, that no doctrine is so clearly proved in scripture as the infallibility of the church of Rome. Million! are of a contrary opinion. Had God really revealed the infalli- bility of the church of Rome, we can scarcely imagine but thalt he would have made it known in such broad and legible char- acters, that he that runs might read it. I should like to know, where the Pope is mentioned in the Bible? 'Tis not an act of saving faith, to believe merely that a book has proceeded from God. I exercise saving faith, when I exercise it upon the truths of salvation contained in the scriptures. I make an act of faith, not on the testimony of man, but on the authority of God. I behave the blessed truth, "the blood 8 86 THE VIVINE RIGHT of Jesus Christ clcanseth from all sin,' because I see such m intrhisic glory in the scheme ot redemption, as convinces me that God is its author. With respect to the pagan, I have shown you, that he can receive the Bible as inspired, without which none but a divine person could be adequate. How does Mr. Maguire endeavor to convince the Socinian 1 By the authority of his church. *' I deny in toto," replies the Socinian "her infallibility; how can I argue with you, wio refuse an appeal to common sense, to scripture, and to fact , for all these overthrow the supposed infallibility of your church?' On the other hand, I entertain some hope, that arguing on the principles of private judgment, I shall be enabled, under the divine blessing, to convince the man who will not listen to Mr. Maguire. I argue upon authority — the sacred scTiptures — which the Socinian Mmiis ; Mr. Maguire argues with him on giound which he will not acknowledge — ♦**« iofallibilitj cf thf uhurch of Rome. TF PRIVATE JUDGMENT 87 Mf. Maguire has asked, now couid an ig? jrant Prote&tanJ icrlbrm an act of faith? Blessed be God; many poor can do so. God hath chosen not a few individuals who are " poor w this world, to be rich in faith, and heirs of the kingdom.-' Mi, Maguire has referred to a passage in Peter. It runs thus, »* No prophecy of scripture is made by private interpretation/' Douay, 2 Pet. i, 20, (tJm^ sTuXvasatg,) or, as it mav be trans* lated, " no prophecy of scripture is its own intrepreter ;" we are to intrepret prophecy by the analogy of scripture. Can we imagine that St. Peter did not wish those whom he addressed, to give attention to the scripture, when in the 19th verse he says, " We have the more firm prophetical wor(^, whereunto you do well to attend^ as to a light that shineth in a dark place?' Whom does the Aposile exhort ? His epistle is not addressed to ecclesiastics exclusively, but " to them that have obtained equal faith with us in the justice of our God and Saviour Jesus Christ." And it is worthy of notice, that in the second epistle, in which the words that we are considering stand, there is no mention whatsoever made of any ecclesiastical officer. In the Apocalypse I find the following passage, — " Blessed is he that readeth and heareth the words of this prophecy,^^ Mr. Maguire has referred to the Apocrypha. It is remarkabii* that Mr. Maguire and his church should, on the canonicity of the Apocrypha, be at issue with those whose authority he pro- fesses to venerate. In the fourth century, we have the cata logues of Jerome, secretary to pope Damasus (in Praefat ad Libr. Hegum sive Prologo Galeato,) and of Rufinu?, (Expositio ad Symb. Apost.) most accurately agreeing with the Protestant eanon,^ and rejecting the Apocrypha. Rufinus writes as follows ! "Tills, then, is the Holy Spirit, who in the Old Testament inspired t!» .aw and the prophets, and in the New the gospels and the Apostles. Whcrt>' fore the Apostle says, that *all scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine.' — 2 Tim. iii, 16. It will not, therefore, be impropei to enumerate here the books of the New and Old Testament, w hich we find by the monuments of the Fat lers to have been delivered to the churches as inspired by the Holy Spirit. A.nd of the Old Testament, in the arst place, are the five books of Moses, Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, Deutero- nomy. After these are Joshua, the son of Nun, and the Judges, together $vith Ruth. Next the four books of the kingdoms, which the Hebrews reckon iwo, the book of the Remains, which is called the Chronicles, and two books of Ezra, which by them are reckoned one, and Esther. The prophets arc Isaiah, Jeremiah, Ezekiel, and Daniel, and besides one book of the tweJ'\, prophets. Job also, and the Psalms of David. Solomon has left three b^'oka to the churches, the Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, and the Song of Songs ; with these they conclude the number of the books of the Old Testament. Of the New there are the four gospels of Matthew, Mark, Luke, and John; thu Accts of the Apostles, by Luke ; fourteen epistles of the Apostle Paul ; two wistles of the Apostle Peter; one of James, the brother of tha Lord and TO THE DIVINE HIGHT Apoiille ; one of Jude ; three of John ;" the Revelation of John. These are the volunnes which the Fathers have included in the canon, and oiJt of which ihey would have us prove the doctrines of our faith. " However, it ou^ht to he observed, that there are also other books which are not canonical, but have been called by our forefathers ecclesiastical, aa the VV'isdorr/ of Solomon; and another, which is called the Wiadom of the son of Sirach, and among the Latins is called by the general name jf Eccle- siasticus : by which title i? denoted, not the author of the book, but the quality of the writing. In the same rank is the book of Tobit and Judith, and tl*^ bookn of th^ Maccabees." — In Symb. Apost. ap. Cyprian in App. p. 26, 27 et ap. Hier m. t. v. p. 141, 142. St. Jerome, secretary to Pope Damasus, writes thus — '^Tlie Hebrews have two and tw^enty letters ; and they have as manf books of divme doctrine for the instruction of mankind. The first book is called by them Bereshith, by us Genesis ; the second is called Exodua the third Leviticus ; the fourth Numbers ; the fifth Deuteronomy. Ti*****^ are the five books of Aloses, which they call Thora, the Law% "The second class contains the prophets, which they begin with tno oook of Joshua, the son of Nun. The next is the book of Judges, with which they join Ruth; her history happening in the time of the Judges. The thiid is Sanmel, which we call the first and second book of the kingdoms. The fourth is the book of Kings, or, the third and fourth book of the kingd'^ms^or rather of the Kings ; for they do not contain the history of many nation:?, bui of the people of Israel, only consisting of twelve tribes. The fifth is las *h; the sixth Jeremiah ; the seventh Ezekiel ; the eighth the book of the lv.\AYe Prophets. "The third class is that of hagiographa, or sacred writings : the first of which is Job ; the second David, of which they make one volume, called the Psalms, divided into five parts ; the third is Solomon, of which there are three books; the Proverbs, or Parables, as they call them, the Ecclesiastes, and the Song of Songs ; the sixth is Daniel ; the seventh is the Chronicles, con- sisting w4th us of two books, called the first and second of the Remains ; the eighth is Ezra, which among the Greeks and Ijatins makes two books ; the ninth is Esther. " Thus there are in all two and twenty books of the old Law ; that is five books of Moses, eight of the Prophets, and nine of the Hagiographa. But some reckon Ruth and the Lamentations among the Hagiographa, so the-e will be four and twenty. " The prologue I write as a preface to all the books to be translated by rae n-om the Hebrew^ into Latin, that we may hioio that all the books which an not of this number, are to be reckoned apocryphal: therefore, "V\ isdom, which is commonly called Solomon's, and the book cf Jesus, the son of Sirach, and Judith, and Tobit, and the Shepherd are not in the canon. The first book of Maccabees, I have fcmd in Hebrew ; the second is Greek, as is evident from the style." — In Prol. Gal. seu. Praefat. de Omnib. Libr. V. T. Tom. i, p. 317—322. ed. Bened. "As therefore, the church readeth Judith and Tobit, and the books of the Maccabees, but does not receive them among the canon- ical scriptures ; so likewise it may read these two books (the book of Jesus, the son of Sirach, and the Wisdom of Solomon) for the edificati )n of the people, but not as of authority for proving a^.y doctrine of rehgion " — Prnef m libr. Salom. t. i, p. 938. 939. I state upon the authority of Josephus and Bellarmine thai the Jews never received the Apocrypha. — (Joseph. Cont. Apion, I. i, c. 8. ap. Euseb. Eccl. 1. iii, c. 9, 10. — Bellarm. Lib. i, De Vcrbo Dei, c. 10.) It is also worthy of notice, that thero are Cinatradictions in the Apocrypha to the canonical books. I an OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 89 inclined to suspect, that one reason which induces the church of Rome to admit the Apocrypha, is, that they contain a passage or two which savor of purgatory. In Maccahees (1. vi, 16 — 2. i, 16. ix, 28.) we are informed that king Antiochus died three times over ! ! In 2 Mace, xiv, 42, suicide is commended. Thf. author of the second book of Maccabees concludes in the fol- lowing manner : *' I also will here make an end of my narration ; which if I have done \%eil, md as it becometh the history, it is what I desired ; but if not so perfectly, 't must be pardoned me." — xv. 39. Does such language intimate that the author believed that he had written an inspired book? External and internal evidence will prove that the Apocrypha is not canonical. It is a well known fact, that in the time of Jerome, the Roman church did not receive the epistle to the Hebrews as canonical, while all the chuiches in the East received it. — She receives it now. Wha shall we think of her consistency? St. Jerome observes, that "Although formerly all the churches in the east did receive the epistles U the Hebrews as canonical, yet it was not received as canonical in the Latin (or Roman) church." — In Js. c. 6. Et Ep. 29. ad. Evag. Tom. iii. Jerome did not submit to the judgment of the church of Rome He says, "Although the Latin (or Roman) church doth not admit this epistle ai canonical, we notwitnstanding do receive it." — Ibid. My friend has referred to the passage of St. Augustin — " I would not believe the gospel except the authority of the Catholic church moved me thereto." We are informed that St. Augustin, at the head of a number of African bishops, wrote letters to the Pope of Rome resisting the claim of appeals made by three Popes. — (Cone. Afiic. apud. Surium. p. 59.) We may rest assured, therefore, that in the passEige which Mr. Maguire has cited, Augustin did not refer to the authority of the church of Rome, an authority which he him- self opposed. Permit me to make a fevy observations on the passage tc which Mr. Maguire has called our attention. It is probable that Augustin speaks hypothetically, not in »*efeienc€ to his then state of mind, but as if he was yet halting between Manichean principles, and those of the gospel, using crederem tro credidissemy commoveret pro commovisset, a change of tense riot unusual with some of tke fathers. I beg to give you the views of some eminent Roman Catholic writers upon this pas- sage : some refer the saying of Augustin, not to the present church but to the church in the lime of the Apostles. Thus Durandus de St. Sour^am after having quoted the words oi Augustin, observes, " Tliis passage which treats oTthe approval of the sa iptures hy the cAurc4> 8* 90 THE DIVINE RIGHT applies soleiy to the church in the times of the Apostles, which was filled with the Holy Spirit, and besides saw the miracles of Christ, and heard his doctrine, and on that account was a fit witness of the things which Chrisf both did and said."— Durand in 3 Sent. Dist. 24, a. i, fol, 169, Again, Gerson, commenting on this passage of Augustin, observes . "By the cnurcfj, Augustin means the primitive assemblies of those who kad seen and heaid Christ, and had been his witness." — De vita Spirit, inirr.ar. Lect. 2, corol. 7, part 3, fol. 322. The view of the celebrated cardinal De Aliaco is as follows : (In lib. Sentent. art, iii, fol. 49, 59.) After having observed that "the principles of theology are the truths of the sacred canon, because from them IS made the ultimate solution of theological discourse," He remarks, in reference to this very saying of St. Augustin. " It is not proved by the authority of St. Augustin^ that he believed in the gospel by the authonty of the church as a principle of theology^ by which it coula bt: proved theologically, that the gospel is time, but only as the first moving cause v;hich led him to the faith of the gospel. As if he or any other had said, I would not trust in the gospel, if the sanctity of the church, and the miracles of Christ had not moved me, in which saying, although there be assigned some reason for a belief in the gospel, it is not entirely a first principle." These quotations will serve, I trust, to throw some light upon the passage. I would beg to remind my friend, that if it were not capable of an easy and natural explanation, the Bible, and the Bible alone is the religion of Protestants. The testimony of St. Augustin is of no weight beyond the boundaries of truth. I have shown, however, that the meaning of Augustin's words \s different from that which Mr. Maguire ascribes to them ; and the comment of Augustin himself on the fourth chapter of John (Tract xvi, 23,) seems beautifully to elucidate his meaning : — " The woman first told the Samaritans, and they believed upon her testi- mony, and asked the Saviour to remain with them. He remained two days, and more believed. And when they had believed, they said to the woman, " We now believe, not for thy saying, for we ourselves have heard him, and know that this is -indeed the Saviour of the world," first, by report, after- wards by the presence of Christ" — " Primum per famam, postea per prae- eentiam." Augustin adds : " So now it happeneth with those who are out of the church and not yet Christians. Christ is taught by Christian friends, as it were by the woman, that is by the church's instruction. They come to Christ and believe by the report ; and many more and with more confidence beheve, that he is the Saviour of the world." The mere testimony of man may be the first exciting cause of drawing the mind tow^ards the scriptures ; but does that testi- mony therefore become infallible ? Does a man, ivho receivei the record that God has given concerning his Son^ though his fttlention may have been first attracted to the inspired records by ^J^e tostimony of a fellow-crenture, exercise an act of faith on OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 91 human authority ? By no means. Were all the churches and all the inhabitants of the world to assert, that a particular volunio was a revelation from God, if that volume contained an immoral co-le, palpable contradictions, or statements, plainly derogatory to the character of God, I could not receive it as divine. Mr. Maguire — My friend commenced by asserting that Christ did not pronounce his Apostles infallible, because Judaa betrayed his master. This fact only proves that he did not pro- n.ise diem the quality of impeccability, but by no means proves tiiat he did not promise them infallibility in matters of faith. I'hough Judas betrayed his master, he did not deny the faith- he committed the sin for money, and he supposed that his master svould escape from his enemies. Though he betrayed his mas- ter^ he was guilty of no breach of faith. I called on Mr. Pope (o show how a Protestant, literate or illiterate, can make an act of faith or of belief in the divine inspiration of the sacred scriptures. Mr. Pope says that the language of the scriptures carries about it internal evidence sufficient to convince. Are those, to whom he gives the scriptures, learned enough to discover this fact? He talked of an internal illumination, and how a person upon a sudden comes upon the light of the gospel. Is there a scholar present who does not feel that Mr. Pope has not approached \he difficulty 1 How will the poor and the illiterate ascertain *:he truth of scripture from the manner in which they are con- veyed ? May not the poor and ignorant man continue, as St. Augustin did before his conversion, to laugh at the sacred volume] But after his conversion, St. Augustin tells of the veneration he paid to that noblest of all works, the sacred scriptures. St. Augustin, be it remembered, was converted by the preaching and teaching of St. Ambrose, and not by reading \he Bible. How will the new convert from Paganism receive \he grace of the Holy Ghost? The grace of the Holy Ghosl \s not communicated until after baptism has been conferred. Look at Cornelius the cepturion. If in his moral habits and ^ood life he exhibited a portion of God's mercy, he did nol receive the visible marks of the Holy Ghost until after his bap- tism. Nor did the Samaritans exhibit the marks of that divine grace, till they were baptized. It would be more difficult to bring home to the conviction of a pagan the proofs of thai internal evidence of the scriptures of which Mr. Pope speaks, than the proofs of their inspiration. Mr. Pope wants to prove the inspiration of the scriptures to the pagan, by a thing v/hich IS in itself more difficult of proof. With regard to the Socinian, how does Mr. Pope act? "I lay down," says he, "certain lexts of scripture — they are wrongly interpreted by the Sociniaa j 98 THE DIVINE RIGHT but I did not force his judgment." Mr. Pope, thank God cannot force the judgment of any individual ; but my observa tions was, that Mr. Pope could not urge any interproiation a all upon the Socinian, without violating the principle of private judgment. The Socinian may retoj-t on iV"r. Pope, and tell nim that his interpretation of thj scriptures is false. The Soci- nian may say, '' I exercise my reason, and you surely will not find fault with me for doing so. The position that three make one, and one makes three, is perfectly above human comprehen sioii. Do you require me to admit things which are quite inconceivable ? You do not, of course, desire that I shoulc abandon my reason, and as to internal evidence ? — it is a thing neither known to you, nor to any one else." Such would be the answer of the Socinian to Mr. Pope. I, on the other hand* might not be able to convert the Socinian, but he could not say that I contradicted myself. I would deny to the Socinian the right to interpret the scriptures by private judgment. That would be leaving the word of God dependent on the whim and caprice of every individual. The word of God, I maintain, depends for its interpretation on the church — that church which is the collection of the churches of the same communion, scat- tered through the world — that church over which Christ appointed St. Peter to preside, giving to him the keys of the kingdom of heaven, promising that whatever he loosed on earth, should be loosed in heaven, and whatever he bound on earth, should be bound in heaven. Have all those churches conspired through- out ail ages to give a wrong interpretation to the scriptures ? or have they conspired to give a false meaning to any particular text 1 See the unanimous consent of different and distant nations on the subject. Is not that unanimous agreem.ent, a better proof of the truth of the interpretation, and of its having descended from the Jlpostles, than the varying and capricious judgment of each individual? Mr. Pope does not. say that ho is infallible, yet he endeavours with all the presumption of infal libility to force his interpretation of the scriptures on the Soci nian. Compare Mr. Pope's interpretation with the agreement of all nations — with that guod vniversa tenet ecclesia. Here are many churches and different nations all agreeing in a particular interpretation and specified articles of faith, for eighteen hundred years. Are not their opinions more worthy of adoption, than the whims and follies of individuals ? My friend has quoted some of the holy Fathers — I would advise him to act as Luther did, and throw them overboard. The Fathers, he will find, are quite against him. I could quote thirty diflferent Fathers, who strongly condemn the exercise of private judgment. St. An- gustin, in his book Contra Fausturi 11, tome vi, p. 183, savs OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 93 "These, so many and so great ties bind the believing man to the Catholic church. The consent of nations ; the regular succession of bishops from Peter, to whom Christ committed the care of his sheep, down to the present bishop of Rome ; lastly, the name of CathoUc itself But unless the aiithoritv of this church induced me to it, I would not believe the Gospel. As thenl obey those who say to me, * Believe the Gospel ;' so why should I not obey them when they say to me, 'Beheve not the Manichaeans.' " " This church, moreover, the divine authority commends, and as it canrwt deceive us, he who fears to be imposed on will consult the church, which without any ambiguity, the scriptures establish." — Contra Cresconium Lib. , tom. 7, p. 168. And again — "Do thou run to the tabernacle of God, hold fast to the O'ltholic church ; do not depart from that rule of truth, and thou shait be protected in the tabernacle fi-om the contradiction of tongues." — Ennarratio tertia in psalmum 30, tom. viii, p. 74. I quote from genuine editions of the Fathers. I do not advance corrupted passages. Let Mr. Pope show me in a genuine edition any passage in which St. Augustin refused to hold communion with the church of Rome. Mr. Pope, in urging his interpretation of the scriptures upon the Socinian, would never succeed. The Socinian would say, '' T have as good a right as you, Mr. Pope, to the exercise of my private judgment, and reason is on my side.'' I might not be more feUcitious in my attempts to convert the Socinian. I would not, however, contradict my own principles. I would refer him to the consent of mankind through many ages. I would shame him, if he were a reasonable man, into conviction. I would take the Socinian by the throat — Mr. Pope could not even take him by the heels. Has Mr. Pope explained how it happens that Protestants must remain in many instances actual infidels, for several years after they have arrived at the age of discretion. The Protestant child cannot receive the Bible on the authority of Mr. Pope. When •^e opens the sacred volume, he finds passages in it which may ►nake him believe it not to be the work of God. There are more passages to be found in it of that description, than Mr Pope could point out in what he considers the Apocrypha. But I hold the book in which they are found to be of divine inspira- tion ; and if I cannot understand them, I resign my judgment to the church. But the Protestant child must remain an infidel. For to doubt of Christir qity, is absolute infidelity. The Roman Catholic cnild, when baptized, receives the aid of the Holy Ghost. He promises at baptism to obey the church ; and I proved the object of his obedience entitled to it. But the illu- mmation of which Mr. Pope speaks, never can be proved. It ia adapted only to sublimated imaginations. It is unfortunate that Mr. Pope appeals to the Bible to decide our controversy — for he Bible is a dumb judge. Our Lord says to his apostles — " Go ye therefare, and teach all nations ; baptizing them in the name of the Father, and -jf the Sjn, and of the Holy Ghost Teaching Hieni U 94 THE DIVINE RIGHT observe arl things whatsoever I have commanded yon ; and behold I am wit-i you all dajs, even to the consummation of the world." — Matt, xxviii, 19, 29 Again — '*Go ye into the whole world and preach the Gospel t> everj creature. He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved ; but he that beheveth not, shall be condemned." — Mark xvi, 15, 16. Here our Lord plainly tells us, that he who receives th<^ii preaching, when baptized shall be saved. Yvliere is the objeci of |Ir. Pope's faith] He cannot make the mere book the object of his faith. He cannot invest the translators with infallibility. He will not surely give that title to Beza, and others. Every thing in the Protestant church, and in Mr. Pope's la/ church, is fallible. How can an immoveable structure bo raised upon a moveable foundation? Mr. Pope illustrated one of his arguments, by placing one book on the top of another The illustration may be appropriately and happily applied in thi^ instance. Here are two books, which we shall suppose to represent the scriptures and private judgment. The Protestant child must read the scriptures upon the authority of private judgment, and vice versa^ he must sustain private judgment upor* the scriptures. He must capsize one to support the other. \i the Protestant church be liable to error, how can any man confide his faith in it? And even if the church be supposed fallible, would it not be cruel to deprive the poor and ignorant of their only guide, they themselves being anable to investigate. Buil Ihe Catholic church being infallibbj, the Catholic rests his faith with security on its authority. The consent of mankind for many ages is in support of the Catholic church. A single witness may be suborned, but millions cannot be bribed. I propose the following syllogistic argument to Mr. Pope, in reference to his faith. That faith cannot be divine which is founded upon human authority — now his faith is founded upon human authority, therefore it cannot be divme. There is a wonderful coincidence between the opinion of Luther, and the opinion of Mr. Pope, respecting the Apostles. They want to do away with the infallibility of the Apost'es, and they confound jnpeccability with infallibihty. Luther, in a German work, which I hold in my hand, and in another translated into Latin by Jonas Justus, at Luther's own request, speaking of the Apostles and Fathers, says — " The Apostles were great sinnerS; ignorant men, and precious rogues," or in the original. " Die Apostel seynd auck grosse Siinder geweszt, unde gute, grobe, grosse schaelck." He says, "Even Paul himself was not so sure of his doctrine, and often doubted, whether he preached the truth or not." '^ St. Jerome was a heretic" — " St. Chiysosloni was a prattler," and ridiculing the intercession of saints, 1 f dares to blaspheme his God : " I beseech you, oh 1 my deai OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 95 little devil, that you intercede with God for me ; my dear little devil, pray to God for me." I now call on Mr. Pope to make the Bible speak, and thus decide the difference between us. If he does not do so, accord- ing to his principles, Christ has appointed a dumb judge to decide upon all differences between man and man. But our Saviour knew human nature too well to leave every individual to follow his own whim and caprice. If man be thus sent adiift without any certain guide to direct him in the way of salvation, it would be rather hard that he should be called to an account on the last day. I ask if Mr. Pope had an estate at stake, would he not employ a lawyer to direct him in his difficulties, would he not, instead of exercising his own private judgment on the Act of Parliament, leave it to the interpretation and decision of his legal adviser? He wisely relinquishes his private judg- ment and he saves his estate ; what does St. Paul mean when he speaks of " captivating every understanding?' — 2 Cor. x, 5. Innumerable are the evils which result from depriving the lower orders of that authority upon which alone their faith can be founded? Mr. Pope says that the declarations of Christ are obvious and plain. I wish to know by what means the Pro testant can ascertain that they are the declarations of Christ, Le* Mr. Pope quit the foolish doctrine of internal illumination tirius appealed to internal illumination — so did all the heretics — »o did, in latter times, the celebrated Johanna Southcote ; she announced herself as pregnant of the Messiah, and a whole swarm of English parsons were among her followers and be- lievers ! This doctrine, which Mr. Pope advocates, tends t(? the utter destruction of civil society and ecclesiastical regime, I would rather endure the despotism of a Ferdinand, than admii a principle so contradictory to common sense — a principle sc well calculated to rend asunder the ties which unite man to man, and to disolve the social system altogether Mr. Pope. — -My opponent, I must be allowed to observe, has substituted assertion for argument. He has said, that it is more difficult to prove the internal evidence of the scriptures, thav their inspiration. I brought forward the internal evidence iv proof of their inspiration. Mr. Maguire has asserted that a mar? must be baptized before he can receive the Holy Ghost. In the 8th chapter of the iVcts of the Apostles, we read that Philip before he acceded to the wish of the Ethiopian eunuch, who requested to be baptized, said, ^ If thou believest with all thy heart; thou mayest ;" the eunuch answered, " I believe that Jes'Uf Christ is the Soc of God.'' A man cannot exercise an act o^ faith, before he receives the Holy Ghost ; for *' no mnt 96 THE DIVINE RIGHT can say tha( Jesus is the Christ, but by the Hi ly Ghost.** eunuch, therefore, must have beeu under the influence of Holy Spirit, when he niade this art of faith. After he had znadt \U " they went down to i^Vie^ water, both Phihp and the eunuch, and he baptized him." He isays, that it is contraiy to my system to urge any meaning of scripture against the conviction of the Socinian, / " it would interfere with the exercise of his private' judgment. '^ave already noticed his sophism, but the obser- /ati')n maj' ,y be returned upon Mr. Maguire. Does not the church of Rome act in contradiction to her principles, when arguing with the Socinian ? JVfust she not allow him to exercise his judgment upon the proofs which she brings forward in support of her claim to infallibility? My friend observes, that no man can force the judgment of another. I am convinced of the truth of the remark. But the church of Rome endeavours to force the judgment, and calls on men to act inconsistent with their reason] He says that I am opposed to the whole world. I stand here as an advocate of the great principles which genuine Protestants maintain in common, and as a protester against the errors to v>^hich they are in common opposed. Athanasius declared himself to be alone against the whole world, when Pope Liberius signed the Arian creed, and the condemnation of Athanasius. — (Dupin, Eccl. Hist. 2 vol. p. 62, 1697, Lond. —Baron, tom. 1, 939, ad ann. 357, No. 46, Mayence 1611.) My friend has stated that I brought forward corrupted passages of the fathers. Was it honorable in him to make such an asser- tion, particularly, when he will have an opportunity of cc>nsulting ^he quotations ? I beg to say, that I have examined in the «)iginal with some care the passage from Augustin upon which n.y friend has so long dwelt ; and I find that Augustin makes ifse of the expression " Catholicis laudantibus evangelium" com- mending the gospel — *' vituperantibus Manichaeum" — expres sions which throw considerable light upon the passage. My "«* remain atheists until they arrive at the years of discretioB. I be^ ^'*ogelher to deny the truth of the assert) )n. Much, I admit, devolves on parents and pastors. Their authority I recognize; but authority is one thing INFALLIBILITY ANOTHER. Is not a Roman Catholic child ^iccisely in the same circumstances'? I must be permitted tc deny, that chiidien always receive grace in baptism, and appeaJ lo scripture in support of my opinion How does the Roir.ati Catholic child receive the doctrnes of his churchy if not upon IIm OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 9? state^ment of the parent or the priest, a child being quite incapable ot exercising its reason on the proofs of the infallibility of the church of Rome? In first of Corinthians, 12th chapter, there is a beautiful comparison. An analogy is there drawn between the church and the human body. The members of the human frame contribute mutually to each other's well-being : — "The eye cannot say to the hand, I need not thy help ; nor again the head to the feet, 1 have no need of you. Yea, much more, those that seem to be the more feeble members of the body, are necessary ; and such as we think Co be the less honorable members of the body, about these we put more abundant honour; and those that are our uncomely parts, have abundant comeliness. But our comely parts have no need; but God hath tempered tile body together, giving to that which wanted the more abundant honour; that there might be no schism in the body, but the members might be mutually careful one for another. And if one member suffer any thing, all the members suffer with it; or if one member glory, all the members rejoice with it." — v. 21—26. The poor believer, who is acquainted with a person of judg- inent and piety, may derive useful information from him ; may receive his testimony ; but in doing so, he does not acknowledge his infallibility. Thus, each member of the church of Christ, contributes to the edification of the whole body; but I deny that Any part or the whole is infallible. Mr. Maguire insinuates that a man cannot know whether he is enlightened by the Holy Spirit. The Apostle says, "If any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of his. — Rom. viii, 9. Again, "Try your ownselves, if ye be in the faith: prove ye yourselves: know you not your ownselves, that Christ Jesus is in you, unless perhaps you be reprobates ? — 2 Cor. xiii, 5. Would the Apostle use such language, if it were not possible to discover whether we are influenced by the grace of God ? My friend has reminded us, that *' Faith cometh by hearinaj, md hearing by the word of God." It is true that the readirig of the scripture is not the only mean by which faith cometh, as history and experience testify. The kingdom of God is promoted ^Y preaching also ; but preaching must be found to accord with the word of God, — otherwise there can be no saving faith produced. It i« the first time I heard that Beza was a translator of the Bible in the time of James I. Mr. Maguire, as occasion requires, asserts, that the Bible •upports the church, and vice versa, that the church the Bible. There is no departure from my principles in first exercising my judgment on the proofs of revelation, and subseqently appealing to revelation in confirmation of the right of private judgment. Mr. Maguire says, that it would be a pity to deprive the poor man of his belief, that the Bible is the word of God, by telling him that his church is not infallible. I ask, are poor Protes- lante, wUo deny the infallihiiity of the church of Rome, as unac- 9 -i^d ♦Je DIVINE RIGHT quainted with the contents of the revelation ns the poor be "ns^ing to the church of Rome ; or do they doubt the genuinen* w, and authenticity, and inspiration of the scriptures] Let exp^^rience and fa^t testify and answer these quetitions. Faith, we are again told, cannot be divine, if it rests upon the testimony of man. On my principles, ray faith rests not upon the testimony of man, but of God. Truth is revealed by God in the sacred volume, and I exercise faith upon that truth. My fp'^nJ, on the contrary, would have us to exercise an act of 'aitn in the infallibility of the church of Rome upon the autboritj of the scriptures, regarded merely as an historical narrative. .Mr. Maguire's quotations from Luther are probably of a similar description with the extract which a Roman Catholic Priest lately gave in a sermon, from the table-talk of Luther, that " Moses was a hangman." The German word, in more polished phraseology, signifies an '* executioner ;" and it is plain from the context, that by the word " Moses,'* Luther intended to designate the JSIoral Laio, which acts as an execu- tioner to those who seek to be justified by their obedience to its demands. What was the conduct of the Apostles? Did they domineer over the faith of the primitive Christians 1 "Not for that, says the Apostle Paul, we have dominion over your faith, but are helpers of your joy." — 2 Cor. i, 23. When the Bereans contrasted with the scriptures the preach- ing even of an Apostle, are they condemned for not having implicitly received his testimony? No, St. Luke, in the seventh chapter of Acts, and eleventh verse, writes, " Those were more noble than those of Thessalonica, in that they received the word with all eagerness, daily searching the scriptures whether these thingi were so.^^ Here we find the Bereans exercising their judgments on the Old Testament, in reference to the preaching of an inspired Apostle ; and not only is there no censure passed upon them, but, on the other hand, a high eulogium pronounced upon their conduct. My friend has quoted the passage—** If an angel from heaven preach any other Gospel unto you than that which you have received, let him be accursed." Gal. i, 8, 9. la not this a direct appeal to us to exercise our judgment upon th€ doctrines of a preacher, even though he should descend ^om heaven, irradiated with all the brightness of angelic glory? My friend's analogy between an appeal to the church of Rome and tc Judges, to Parliament and to the house of Lords, falls to the ground ; for neither Judges, nor Parliament, nor house of Lords are infallible. Judges can only take cognizance of the outward act« but the c huicb of Rome would extend its contro' »ver th« OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 9i^ mind and conscience. Judges must not be paities in the causes which come before them, lest they should be biased by interest But the Pope, and his undefined church are a party in the hon« ours and emoluments which result from their claim of infallibility. We perceive, therefore, that there exists no analogy. Mr, Ma» guire has quoted, as if from scripture, the words, " captivating the understanding." I do not remember such a text. Mv friend has stated, that the principle of private judgment has led to the deposing of monarchs. I have before remarked, that the principle should be exercised in accordance with sound sense. On the other hand, I shall prove that Popes considered them- selves justified in deposing sovereigns. I would ask, was it the right of private judgment, or the pretension of infallibility, which led Gregory VII, to depose Henry, Emperor of Germany! Gregory's decree runs thus — *' On the part of the Omnipotent God, I forbid Henry to govern the king- doms of Germany and Italy. I absolve all his subjects from every oath which they have taken or may take to him ; and I excommunicate every pi^rson who shall serve him as king. — (Lib. v, Ep. 24.) Gregory IX, made the following announcement in the thirteenth century — **Be it known to all, who are under the dominion of heretics, that they are Bet free from every tie of fidelity or duty to them ; all oaths, and soiC;.nn engagements to the contrary notwithstanding." — (Lib. v, Tit. 7.) The Maynooth Class-book informs us, that — " The Pope passed sentence against the Emperor Frederick upon a chai ^e of having violated a treaty of peace, and also upon a vehement suspicion of ne*t3S). The words of the sentence were these : — 'Inasmuch as we, though tin worthy, do stand in the place of Jesus Christ on earth, and to us it was said. ill the person of the Apostle Peter, whatsoever thou bindest on earth shall be oound in heaven,' we having previously used diligent deliberation with our brethren and the holy council (the council of Lyons, received as general at Maynooth) concerning the above, and many other nefarious excesses, do declare the aforesaid prince to be bound in his sins, to be a cast-away, and deprived of all honour and dignity ; we denounce him, and deprive him by this sentence, absolving his subjects from their oaths of fidelity, ajid by our apos' tolical authority, strictly enjoining, that no one shall hereafter obey hi.m aa emperor or king." Here are examples of the head of the church, by the exercise of his authority, deposing kings ; and in one of the instances adduced, asserting that the proceeding was sanctioned by a general council. On the other hand, I assert, that whenever an .individucd in the exercise of his judgment has co-operated in deposmg a sovereign, he has abused the faculty. 1 argue not for the abuses of private judgment. If I find the exercise of private judgment to accord with the voice of the God of Nature and of Revelationp I maintain that the charges ( f my opponent ar# 100 THE DIVINE RIGHT evciled not against me, but against the Lord of Lords and King of Kings. Is it logical to argue from the abuse of a thing against its use I Every blessing may be perverted. Learning, health, and liberty, may be abused ; but are we, therefore, to prefer the iron grasp of tyranny to the sweets of freedom ; and are ignorance and debility to be substituted in the room of science and of health 1 One word more — the doctrine of infal- libility militates against the promises of divine wisdom made to them that seek it. The Psalmist says : " Open thou mine eyes that I may behold wondrous things out of th^ law." — cxix Ps. 18. " Thy word is a lamp to my feet, and a light to my paths." — cxix Ps. 105. "If ye then being evil," says the Saviour, "know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more will your heavenly Father give his Holy Spirit to them that ask him." — Luke, xi, 13. " If any man lack wisdom," says St. James, " let him ask of God, who giveth to all men liberally, and upbraideth not, and it shall be given unto him."— i, 5. If I am to bow implicitly to the dictates of the church of Rome, why do I want wisdom ? Why should I exercise my judgment by " proving all things and holding fast that which is good ?" Monstrous contradiction ! In truth the very fact that God has vouchsafed to us a revelation of his will and character, evidently implies, that man should exercise his judgment upon its contents. I would say in conclusion, therefore, let us all, clergy as well as laity, vindicate the right of private judgment. The priests, as well as the laics, must answer at the bar of judgment. They cannot give account for us. Wo to those who f-^llow the direction of ecclesiastics implicitly. It is written, "The blind and the leaders of the blind shall both fall into the ditch." I fear that quotations from the Fathers are calculated rather to ^ eaken the impression, which I trust has been made upon youi conscience. As, however, a few minutes remain, I shall occupy them by reading you a few extracts. St. Augustin says, that " The manner of expression in which the holy scripture is framed, although It is to be penetrated but by few, is accessible to all. Those plain things which it contains, it speaks to the heart of the unlearned and learned, hke a familiar friend, without disguise. That mind which is inimical to this doc- trine, is either erroneously io;norant that it is most wholesome or loathes the Bjedicine from disease." — Epist, 137 ad Volusiaiium. Again, " God has bowed the scriptures even to the capacity of babes and rick lings, as he hath in another P&alm, he bowed the heavens and came down." For the exposition of passages which cannot be explained bj a comparison with other parts of the sacred volume, Augustio*« rule isv not to consult an infallible church, but "Let everv one interpret according to his own senae^'* " pFOUi ^isque voloerit* — Lib, de unit Ece. t, I& OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT. 101 8t» Chrysostom says, ** AH necessary things are manifest*' — Horn, in 2 Thes, 2. St. Basil says, •*The hearers that are instructed in the scriptures must examine the doo lines of their teachers ; they must receive those things which are agreeable lo scripture, and reject what are contrary to it." — In Moralium Regula 72^ m initio. Mr. Maguire — This, perhaps, is the most importaHt half hour of the discussion. It remains for this assembly to say whether Mr. Pope has at all attempted to get out of the diffi- culty — to wit, how a Protestant child could make an act of faith upon the inspiration of the scriptures. All Mr. Pope's argu- ments went to show that the scriptures are the word of God. Is there an individual present who does not entertain a similar opinion ? That belief is a common principle between us. I only want to show that the Protestant child cannot know the scriptures to be the word of God, by the rule which Mr. Pope endeavours to establish. — Mr. Pope places the child under cir- cumstances which render it impossible for him to make an act of faith. Would it not be better for Mr. Pope to show how the Protestant child could make an act of faith, than to treat us to a sermon on the Bible, quoting St. Augustin as to its utility — a thing which I surely never denied. I trust in heaven I shall never forbid the reading of the holy Bible, under proper circum- stances. St. Augustin speaks of the perusal of the sacred scriptures being useful to children ; does he thereby constitute* them as infallible authorities to decide upon its meaning? The aan who recognizes an infallible authority, believes in articles ^ faith which he could otherwise never ascertain of himself whether they came from God, or were committed to writing by men inspired by him. I have shown that Christ left a sure and certain guide to direct mankind. If God had not appointed a guide to direct man, he would have left the mass of mankind involved in ignorance and error. If the Bible contain divi?ie truths, of what utility would it be to the ignorant, if they pos- sessed not the means of ascertaining whether it be ihe work of God '? Mr. Pope has not shown how the ignorant can ascertain whether the Bible be the word of God. If the Bible exclusiveh contains the word of God, will Mr. Pope show us from the Bible, the procession of the Holy Ghost — baptism with the sign of the cross— consubstantiality — and that infants may be bap- tized contrary to the practice of Christ and his Apostles? I understand that Mr. Pope indeed is a dissenter frc^m the church of England on those points. But that fact alone proves thai there is no unity of doctrines amongst Protestants^ and ih»l 102 THE DIVINE RIGHT while tlie Bible teaches one Protestant to believe one thing, il Reaches a second Protestant to believe another thing. There are many articles of faith admitted by Protestants, not to be found in the Bible. Will Mr. Pope show me from the Bible, an authority for changing the Sabbath? Mr. Pope said the Apostles broke bread on that day of the week. Why, the Apos- tles broke bread upon every day in the week. That was an ex(i(;niely weak and foolish argument to introduce to justify such a change. It appears that Mr. Pope imagined he had caught me in an historical error. He says I have quoted Beza as one of those who translated the Bible in the reign of James I. I deny the fact — I accused Luther, Beza, and others, of wilfully corrupting the Bible ; but not the Bible as translated in James Ps reign. Would Mr. Pope insinuate that there were no other translations prior to that time ? Has he never heard of one by Luther — one by Zuinglius — one by (Ecolampadius, &c, &c1 Latimer corrupted the text, and bid defiance to all authority — •o did Cranmer, and Henry YHI, — he who, after leading a bad '.ife, when his end approached, thought only of saving his soul, and accordingly returned to that church where certainty and truth were alone to be found. But Mr. Pope has given up Henry \ HI, Luther, and Cranmer, — he scarcely defended Beza ; and he ventured not to whisper a word hi support of Zuinglius, who received his doctrine against transubstantiation from a spirit, aJi he says himself, nescio an albo, vel nigro. Mr. Pope talks of a Catholic clergyman having misquoted Luther, in asserting that Luther called Moses a hangman. Mr. Pope says he only calls him an executioner. What is an exe- cutioner but a hangman 1 I deny that Mr. Pope interprets the German text correctly. I have the original work of Luther, in German, here on the table, and the celebrated Pichler says that the word employed by Luther does mean hangman. As to Mr. Pope's arguments respecting the deposing power assumed by some pontiffs — I never said the Popes wfere infalli- ble. Moreover, Christ did not combine the quality of impecca- Dility with the prerogative of infallibility. Judas did not lose his faith when he betrayed his master — and Christ says to Peter,— " But I have prayed for thee that thy faith fail not ; and thou being once eon verted, confirm thy brethren." — (Luke, xxii, 32.) Infallibility and impeccability are not then inseparable, as Mr. Pope would maintain. Out of nearly three hundred Popes, there are only eleven whose conduct and lives can be airaigned as absolutely criminal. Who is there here that has not com- mitted sin ? Let him who is spotless throw the first stone. We hear enough of " saints" in these days — but we know thai ow Saviour compared the Pharisees to white-washed sepulcl^'^es OF PRlVAir. JUDGMENT. 103 It is easy enough to assuAiva thv^ appearance of sanctity, a jd ta put on a puritanical face. I again ask Mr. Pope how the Pro- testant child can be led hy internal evidence to make an act oi faith, and that too upon the Bible, before he can know that it is the word of God 1 I repeat the question which I have already urged respecting the Socinian. Does not Mr. Pope violate th€ principle of private judgment when he endeavours to force his interpretation of the scriptures upon the Socinian ? Has nol the Socinian as good a right to attack the private judgment of Mr. Pope 1 If I could not convince the Socinian of the divinity of Christ by the authority of the church, I would not, at all events, go in direct opposition to my avowed and well known principles. I would force upon him the general agreement of nations which ascribes to Christ the establishment of a church, and of an infallible guide. As I said already, I would shame him into conviction, by appealing to the consent of nations, all differing from each other on other subjects, and yet agreeing in this point — I w^ould prove that the vox Populi was here truly the vox Dei. I would show him the voice of God in the church, und that he was, therefore, called upon to obey. If I left him unconvinced I would enjoy this advantage over Mr. Pope, that he could not charge me with self-contradiction. But the diffi- culties which Mr. Pope would have to encounter with the Soci- nian are insuperable. The Socinian would say, that he could not conscientiously believe that a God could suffer death — he would not allow it, because he would say it was against reason. In vain w^ould Mr. Pope adduce against him the evidence of the Bible. The Socinian would appeal to the grand charter of gospel liberty, the rig^ht of private judgment. If the Bible can be interpreted by private judgment, I should like to know from Mr. Pope, with the aid of his internal illumination, what is the meaning of that passage in Zacharias, where the prophet says, *' upon one stone there are seven eyes." I should also like to know from him, w'hy did God forbid fish to be offered by the Jews in sacrifice 1 And why did God command the Jews nol to wear drugget ? Can Mr. Pope interpret these difficult .las- 9agt!s ? Are there ten Protestants here who will give the s-ame interpretation to any one text of scripture? Will it be said, that Jhe Holy Glijst can infuse the spirit of contradiction. Every heretic may have recourse to this rule of private judgment, and by it justify his err3rs. It is good for society that obedience be rendered to human power — why not also to spiritual power '^ If a fallible authority is to be obeyed by man, when he is not able to live by himself, a fortiori^ he should yield obedience to an infallible authority .n the great and important concern of his salvation. If temporal power be not established in society, 104 THE DIVINE RIGHT neither order nor regularity will exist. A similar authoiiti should exist in the spiritual society instituted by Christ. Ifi* be a fact, that the church of Christ could teach error, then the more perfect dispensation of the Son of God, did not leave us any thing equal to the Jewish synagogue, which, until his com- ing, did not err in the faith. And yet Mr. Pope will have it, that the church of Christ has erred. Mr. Pope will not yield his assent to that which is borne out )jy the general consent of many and different nations from the first era of Christianiiy. The principle which Mr. Pope advocates are those upon which Arius and Eutyches, Cerinthus, and all other heretics, ground their defence. They are the principles which inspired the wild men and women in Germany, who danced naked through the streets, shouting aloud that the king- doms of the earth were given unto them, with an army of fifty J'housand to make good their claims. These are instances, I wil) be told, of the abuse of private judgment, but they are abuses necessarily flowing from the principle itself. I would ask, when the principle is once granted, where is the guarantee against ts abuse. Is it to be unlimited in its nature ; or will Mr. Pope venture to draw out the line of demarcation ? Or rather, will he not — must he not, to be at all consistent, allow every individual to do as he pleases ? Jesus Christ is the real high priest— the corner-stone of his church, and the Apostles and their successors are the super- structure, teaching and preaching, through the guidance of the Holy Ghost, " And I will ask the Father (says our Saviour to his Apostles) and he shall give you another Paraclete, that he may abide with you for ever." — John, xiv, 16. I shall again put the question (which I have so often repeated) in due form to Mr. Pope, and if he be a sincere lover of truth, I expect an answer from him in plain and obvious terms. I call upon him to point out in what manner a Protestant child, before he arrives at the years of discretion, can make an act of faith or how he can ascertain the authority of the scriptures 1 H« must remain a doubter, and consequently an infidel, flut the Catholic has but one single, solitary fact to establish, namely, the authority of the church ; in arriving at that, he is at liberty to exercise his judgment, but when he has once ascertained the fact, he yields to the church unlimited obedience in matters oi faith. But the Protestant possesses no such means to enable him to make an act of faith. All great writers have seen this difficulty. It was acknowledged by Claude in the ceUjbrated discussion with Bossuet, and he endeavoured to throw it back on Bossuet, as Mr. Pope has attempted to do with me. THE DOCTKINE OF PURGATORY. 105 But I have shown that the CathoHc can make the act of faith, ifter he has ascertained the simple fact of the church's authority. While the Protestant must ascertain that every single text o/ scripture is inspired, and that all are preserved pure and uii changed, as they were originally written by the Apostles. The Protestant must travel through this impracticable inquiry, there- fore it is impossible that he can make an act of faith. While. on the contrary, the Catholic has simply to ascertain the author- ity of the church, and then to yield obedience to it. It was for that purpose Christ left us his church upon earth ; and St. Petei says of the scriptures — "In vhich there are some things hard to be understood, which the un learned and unstable wrest, as also the other scriptures, to their own perdi- tion.''— (2 Peter, iii, 16.) It is manifest, then, that there must exist an authority to direct us in the interpretation of the sacred volume. I beg to conclude this da.y^s discussion, by apologizing for the many disadvantages under which I labor. I am not able to engage your fancy by language shining and sparkling as a bottle of champaign. I possess not the powers of oratory to catch the feelings, and to lead captive the understandings of my auditory. If truth did not combat on my side, how is it possible that a man like me, who cannot boast of much learning — who has been foi years engaged in the laborious duties of the mission, and totally estranged from the pursuits of literature, could meet and oppose» by sound arguments, the reasonings of a man hke Mr. Pope, who has devoted his hfe to the study of this subject, and whc has nothing else to occupy his attention. Third Day. — Saturday, April 21. SUBJECT.—** The Doctrine of Purgatory ^ At eleven o'clock the chair was taken by Admiral Or.ivBft liid John O'Brien, Esq., of Elmvale. Mr. Pope rose, and called on Mr. Maguire for his proofs nl the doctrine of Purgatory, Mr. Maguire. — Gentlemen, I appear this day at the bar oi pubhc opinion, to defend a doctrine in which we are all equally concerned — that there do exist prejudices against that doctrine amongst many of my Protestioit countrymen is too notoriouii 106 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. to be questioned. If I should be happy enough to remove anj^ of them, it will be doing much for your salvation, and will afford me sincere pleasure. If this doctrine of purgatory be once removed, — if this most consolatory dogma be discarded v-you must then resort to the dreadful alternative of believing that the moment the soul is departed from the body, it is either plunged »br eternity into the depths of hell, or borne triumphantly by the angels of God into the realms of endless bliss. Is there any person here so presumptuous as to say, that he expects with confidence, the moment of his dissolution to appear before a merciful but essentially just Judge, white as the snows of hea- ven, and pure as the angels of God ] I wish any man who may possess it joy of such confidence — most assuredly it is not mine. Before I proceed to my direct proofs of purgatory, (for I only deal in direct arguments) I may here remind you, though per- haps I am not strictly in order in so doing, that I proposed yesterday three arguments to my learned friend, at which, as appears to me, he has scarcely condescended to glance. I asked him what was the last resolution of an act of faith in the m\nd of a Protestant. I called upon him to explain to the ss tisfaction of the meeting, how a Protestant on taking the Bible *n''o his hands, could make an act of divine faith upon the abso- lu>e inspiration of the sacred scriptures. I called upon him to «how, by what means he could make any rational impression upon the mind of the Socinian, who admits the scriptures, and \v)'0 also admits the right of private judgment in common with M \ Pope. I wanted him to show how he would impress upon iht' mind of the Socinian, that fundamental doctrine of Chrj.s- Saaity — the divinity of Jesus Christ. The moment Mr. Pope M empis to press his particular interpretation on the Socinian, vb } latter claims an equal right to choose his own interpretation ol the text — he tells Mr. Pope, that he is violating the principle of private judgment, and that he should not monopolize and appropriate to himself, that which was every man's birth-right. He asserts, moreover, that his interpretation is more rational than that of Mr. Pope, who proposes a doctrine (he will say) opposed to human reason, and to common sense. When, there- fore, Mr. Pope should propose to the Socinian, doctrines above human comprehension, he justly claims his own right of private judgments he weighs all mysteries in the scale of human reason, and taxes Mr. Pope with a violation of his hereditary right. I asked Mr. Pope, how he could, with the Bible in his hand, convert the benighted pagan? The latter in search of truth, takes up the scriptures, reads therein severa^ passages, which, to a mind not endowed with spiritual light, may appear to sane- Uon the most desperate crimes : he is beset on all sides by tht THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORf. 10? objections of deists and atheists — of Voltaire, Diderow, Rous- seau, Julian the apostate, Celsus, Porphyry, &c. And if St. Augustin had to write four large volumes to reconcile the four evangelists, is it not plain that the half-converted infidel must have recourse to the authoiity of the church, to solve all his diflicuUies, and remove his doubts? or, if he would not trust to that authority, he must be able to explain away all the objections of the deists — to compare and examine every passage in the Bible ; he must prove the authenticity, the integrity and tho inspiration of the scriptures, — and here is a task, which I hum- bly conceive Mr. Pope himself is not adequate to perforni. The.se are the three points which I have repeatedly urged upon (he attention of Mr. Pope, and which he has not met to the satisfaction of this meeting. 1 now come to my direct proofs of Purgatory. I shall first state what is the doctrine of the Catholic church on the subject. According to the Roman Catholic faith, w'e believe that after the Almighty God has forgiven the sins actually committed by man, as to the eternal punishment a temporal pumshmeat may be annexed by God as the effect of sin, and may remain after the eternal punishment has been remitted. This temporal penalty may be inflicted in this life, or may be inflicted in the next. Thus, after the fall of Adam, though his sin was washed out b\ faith in a future Saviour's blood, still death remai-^ed as the tem- poral punishment and consequence of the original sin of Adam. When David was guilty of the double crime of adultery and murder, and when the prophet Nathan announced to him, upon the authority of God himself, that his crimes were forgiven by ' \.e Lord of Hosts, he at the same time annexed to the forgive- ness of the eternal penalty a temporal punishment, for he declared 10 David that his adulterous offspring should not live. David wept bitterly^ — he bedewed the sheets of his bed with tears, ar.d he besought the Lord that his child might live ; but the child died, and this was a temporal punishment annexed to the sin, after the eternal had been forgiven. Catholics do not hold that there is any particular fire in purgatory. The church has not taken upon herself to determine where purgatory exists ; — all she has defined in the council of Trent, which is very explicit on the subject, is, to pronounce it an article of faith, that there exists a third place, where the soul of some go after death, and where they are detained by Almighty God, till they are purified and prepared for heaven. That, after a certain detention there, through the mercy of God, and the prayers and suffrages of the faithful on earth, they are received into heaven. This is a plain dogma. It has nothing to do with racks, tortures, or fires, or many other things with which, no doubt, in the mjads of sctm 108 THE DOCTRINE t F PURGATORY. present, the doctrine of purgatory has been heretofore associated It now remains with you to see what are the proofs of purgatory, and what the motives of credibility which induce C-othoHcs to believe in that doctrine. The first text I shall quote to yoii is from 8t. Matthew, ch. v, ver. 25, 26. "Make an agreement with thy adversary qirckly, whilst thou art in the way with him ; lest perhaps the adversary deliver thee to the judge, and t\tt* judge deliver thee to the otficer, and thou be cast into prison. Amen, 1 sav to thee, thou shalt not go out from thence, till thou pay the last farthing," It is very clear that the woids here ** whilst thou art in the way," mean whilst in this life ; and that the expression which follows, " lest thy adversary deliver thee to the judge, and the judge to the officer, and thou be cast into prison,'' from whence there is no release till the last farthing shall be paid, means, lest ihou shalt be overtaken by death, who comes like a thief in the night, and be cast into purgatory, where the last farthing shall be paid — that is, all your sins must be expiated by suffering:, before you shall be re'eased, and admitted into the regions of bliss. I pretend not to give a particular description of the place to which the sacred text alludes, but I leave the passage to make its due impression upon the mind of every honorable Protestant. The next passage I shall cit-e is from St. Matthew, ch. xii, ver. 32, 36. "And whosoever shall speak a *vord against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him; but he that shall speak against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be forgiven hin;, either in this world, or in the world to come. But 1 say unto you, that every idle word that men shall speak, they shall render an account for it in the day of judgment." Here our Saviour makes the utterance of a single idle word a sin to be accounted for at the day of judgment. Is the suppo- sition violent that a man may suddenly expire after the expression of an idle word. That idle word does not constitute a mortal Mn sufficient to damn him for ever ; it is that species of sin to which the prophet alludes when he says, that the just man falls seven times a-day. He could not be a just man if these were mortal sins. If then a man be suddenly carried off in an apo- plectic fit, and cannot enter heaven on account of the utterance of a single word, where does he go! I beg leave to refer you to the 1st Epistle of St. Paul to the Corinthians, iii, 8, 12, 13, 14,15. "Now he who plantcth, and he who vvatereth are one. And every one shall receive reward according to his own labour. Now if any man build upon this foundation, gold, silver, precious stones, wood, hay, stubble; ever) man's work shall be made manifest ; for the day of the Lord shall declare it, because it shall be revealed by fire ; and the fire shall try every man's work of what sort it is. If any man's work abide which he hath built thereupon ; he shall receive a reward. If any man's work b irn he shall suffer loss ; but be himself shall be saved, yet so as by fire." I may here remark, what I shall pr< ve — that of seventeec THE DOCTRINL OF PURGATC RY. 109 holy fathers of the 2d, 3d, 4th, and 5th centuries, frorn whose works I shall hereafter give you ample quotations, there is not one, with the exception of two, that does not refer to the foregoing t3xt in proof of the existence of purgatory. I shall only say that if any passages shall be adduced from scripture, against purgatory clearer than this text, which is manifestly in support of that doctrine, I will then acknowledge that I am wrong. 1 •hall next refer you 3o 2d Corinthians, i, 11. *' You," St. Paul says, " helping withal in prayer for us ; that for this gift obtained for us by many persons thanks may be given by many in our behalf.' St. Paul here begs the prayers of the Corinthians— -these prayers, it is true, were for the living — and / therefore am not for contending that this text is a clear one in favor of purgatory. But if prayers for the living be justifiable and proper, I cannot undersand why prayers for the dead should be condemned. Again, 1st Peter, iii, 18, 19, 20. "Because Christ also died once for our sins, the just for the unjust, that he might offer us to God, being put to death indeed in the flesh, but brought to life by the spirit. In which also he came and preached to those spirits who were in prison ; who in time past had been increduk^us when they waited for the patience of God in the days of Noe, when the ark was a building; in which few, that is eight souls, were saved by water. Here we find a prison spoken of, into which Christ entered and preached to the dead. Here is a manifest acknowledgment of a third place. The creed says, that Christ descended into hell — surely not into the hell of the damned — for it is recorded, that Christ released those who were detained therein. Will it be shown that the place referred to in this text^ and into which Christ entered has ceased to exist 1 Our Saviour says, Matt, xii, 32, "And whosoever shall speak a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him ; but he that shall speak against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be forgiven him, neither in this world nor in the world to come." Now as St. Augustin justly remarks, in commenting on this passage, if no sin can be forgiven in the world to come, the argument of Christ has lost its force ; and as in that case it would be equally impossible to obtain forgiveness in the world to come for sins against the Father and the Son, as for those against the Holy Ghost, the passage would mean nothing. I shall add to the quotations which I have already given, the following from the 2d book of Maccabees, xii, 43 We find it there recorded, that Judas Maccabeus "Making a gathering, he sent twelve thousand drachms of silver to J?ru- salem for sacrifice, to be offered for the sins of the dead, thinking well and religiously concerning the resurrection." And it is added, "It is therefore a holy and iiholesome thought to oraj Am the dead, that they may be loosed from^ their sin 3." 10 110 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGAT0R7. I am well aware that we shall hear arguments urged against Ihe caiionicity of this book. But I shall only use it as an historical testimony for the present ; and as such it proves, that Judas Maccabeus offered up prayers for the dead, "deeming it a holy and wholesome thought to pray for the dead, that they may be loosed from their sins." As an historical record, it testifies that the practice of praying fioi' the dead existed among the Jews. When Christ condemned the fables and inventions of the Pharisees, why did he not point his indignant censure against this practice, and condemn this portion of the public worship of the Jews as superstitious, or unjustifiable] I would wish much that Mr. Pope would adhere to strict argument and logical deduction. It will be in vain for him to meet direct arguments, drawn from Scripture, and from the practice of tne church during the tirst five hundred years of the Christian sera, by an historical quibble. Such a subterfuge exposes the weakness of his arguments. I shall now proceed to lay before you various quotations from the fathers on the present subject, and I pledge myself to their accuracy and authjn deity. Tertullian says, De Corona Militum, p. 209, "Amonor the Apostolical traditions received from our fathers, we have oblations for the dead ^/n the anniversary day — obiationes pro defunctis annua die faciinus." In his treaties Oti Monogamy, cap. x, p. b5b^ he thus advisea a widow — *'Pray for the soul of your departed husband, entreating repose to him and participation in the fir^st resurrection — making oblations for him on tlie anni- versaries of his death, which, if you neglect, it may be truly said of you, that, f B far as in you lies, you have repudiated your husband." And addressing widowers, he says, exhortatio ad castitateni, cap. ix, " Reflect for whose soul you pray — for whom, you make annual oblations. Pro cujus spiritu postules — pro qua obIa.tiones annuas reddas." The holy Father and Martyr, Cyprian, who lived in the 2d century, says, "Our predecessors prudently advised, that no brother departing this life §bould nominate any churchman his executor; and should he do it, that no oblation should be made for him, nor sacrince oti'ered for his repose — of which we have had a late example, when no oblation was made, nor prayer in his name offered in the church." — Epist. i, p. 2. And again — *'It is one thing to be a petitioner for pardon, and another to Arrive at glory ; one to be cast into prison and not to go out from thence till the last farthing be paid, and another to receive at once the reward of faith ftnd virtue ; one, in punishment of sin, to be purified by long sufTering, and pursed long by fire — and another to have expiated all sinss by (previous; luffering; one, in fine, at the day of judgment, to wait the sentence of thi Lord ; another to receive an immediate crown from him." — Epist. cv, p. lOSk THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY, 111 Oi gen (Homily 6. in Exod. tome ii. n. 148), says, "He that is saved is saved by fire ; so that if he has in him any triing ot iie nature of lead that the fire may purge, and reduce it till the mass leco nt pure gold. Gtui salvus fit per ignem salvus fit ut id ignis decoquat, et resolvat For the gold of that land which the saints are to inhabit is said to be pure, 3ind AS 'the furnace trieth gold, so doth temptatation try ihe just.' — Eccleg. 27. We must then all come to this proof, 'for the Lord sits as a refiner, (Mai iii, 3,) and he shall purify the sons of Levi.' But when we sliall arrive at that place, who shall bring many good works, and little that is evil; this evil the fire shall purify as it does lead, and the whole shall become pure gold. FJe that takes with him more of lead, sufferiS the fire more, that he may be refined, and what little there is of geld, after the purification, remains. Bu* should the whole mass be lead, that man must experience what is written: *lhe Bca covered them; they sank as lead in the mighty waters.' — Exod. xv, 10. Sin in its nature is hke to that matter which fire consumes, and which th'^ Apostle says is built up by sinners, who upon the foundation of Christ build wood, hay, and stubble.' — 1 Cor. iii, 12. Which words manifestly show, that th^re are some sins so light as to be compared to stubble ; to which, when fire is set it cannot dwell long — cui utique ignis illatus diu non pv^test immorari : that there are others like to hay, which the fire easily consumes, t)ut a little more slowly than it does stubble ; and others resemble wood, in which, according to the degree of criminality, the fire finds an abundant substance on which to feed. Thus each crime, in proportion to its character, experiences a just degree of punishment. " When we depart this life, if we take with us virtues or vices, shall we receive rewards for our virtues, and those trespasses be forgiven to us which we knowingly committed; or shall we be punished for our faults and not -eceive the rewards of our virtues? Neither is true: because we shall suffer tor our sins, and receive the rewards of our good actions. For if on the foundation of Christ you shall have built not only gold and silver, and precious stones, but also wood, and hay, and stubble, what do you expect, when ine same shall be separated from the body ? Would you enter into heaven with your wood, and hay, and stubble, to defile the kingdom of God ; or, on account of those incumbrances, receive no reward for your gold and silver, and precious stones? Neither is this just. It remains, then, that you be committed to the fire, which shall consume the light materials ; for our God, to those who can comprehend heavenly things, is called a consuming fire. Hwi this fire consumes not the creature, but what the creature has himself Vjuilt — wood, and hay, and stubble. Frst, therefore, we suffer on account of our transgressions, and then we receive our reward." — Homily, xvi, in Jerome, tom. iii. I have here thirty- five quotations from Origen, all to the samt) effect, and m every one of which he alludes to the text of St. Paul relative to the hay, wood, and stubble, and the consequent purgation by fire. Eusebius of Ctesarea, who belonged to the Greek church, describing the funeral of the emperor Constantino the (rreat, Ih s writes — "In this manner did Constantius perform the last duties in honour of hia father. But when he had departed with his guards, the ministers of God, iorrounded by the multitude of the faithful, advanced into the middle space, and with prayers performed the ceremonies of divine wot3hi| : the blessed prince, reposing in his coffin, was extolled with many .^raises ; when the people in concert with the priests, not without sighs and tea^ , offered prayeri k) heaven for his soul ; in this manifesting the most acceptable service to t 112 THE DOCTRINE OF PUKGATORT. religious pnnce. God thus gave him a place near the bodies of the hoN Apostles, in order that he may enjoy their blessed fellowship, and in theil temple be associated with the people of God. He would thus also be admittea to a participation in the religious rites, the mystic sacrifice, and holy suffrage! of the faithful."— De Vita Constant. Lib. xi. Arnobius, the master of Lactantius, and rhetorician at Sicca, in Nuinidia, who lived about the end of the 3rd century, thus writes : " Why were the oratories (of the Christians) destined to savage destruction wherein prayers are offered up to the sovereign God ; peace and pardon ar« implored for all men, magistrates, soldiers, kings, friends, and enemies, roi THOSE WHO ARE ALIVE, AND FOR THOSE WHO HAVE QUITTED THEIR BODIES?' St. Basil " The words of Isaiah, * Through the wrath of the Lord is the land burned, (ix, 19,) declare, that things which are earthly shall be made the food of a punishing fire to the end, that the same may receive favour and be benefitted.' * And the people shall be as fuel of the fire.' — (Ibid.) This is not a threat of 5xtermination, but it denotes expurgation^ according to the expression of the apostle ; ' If any man's works burn, he shall suffer loss ; but he himself shall be saved, yet so as by fire.' — (1 Cor. iii, 15.) — Com. cap. ix, Isaiah, Tome i, p. 554. " ' And the light of Israel shall be for a fire.' — (Isaiah x, 17.) The operative powers of fire are chiefly tw o — it enlightens and it burns. The first is cheerial and pleasant — the second bitter and afflicting. The prophet adds, 'and ht shall sanctify him in a holy fire, and consume the glory of his forest as grass.' He here shows the nature of the fire — it enhghtens and purifies. But how does this fire puiify, if it consumes ? Truly, since our God is called *a con- suming fire,' he will consume the wood, and what vices arise from matter which adheres to the soul in the flesh, not in the spirit. And when the fire shall have consumed all the wood of sin, as it does grass, then that matter oeing destroyed, which was fuel to the chastising fire, the prophet sayu, 'The burnt mountains shall repose, and the hills, and the thick forests, ani the consuming fire shall cease that fed upon them.' " — Ibid. p. 563. I do not envy Mr. Pope, if he deem his private judgment superior to the texts which I have quoted, and to the judgnient of the holy Fathers for five hundred years. 1 defy him to answer the following syllogistic argument : — Either the Fathers, at the period when they wrote, published that which was the estabhshed belief of the Catholic church, or they did not? If they did publish what was the doctrine in their time, then such doctrine must have been true, since the church is acknowledged on all hands to have been pure in the primitive ages of Christianity? If the Fathers published that which was not the established doctrine of the church, why did not the pure church protest, and not sanction error by her silence ; and why did not the heretics protest, against whom those doctrines were advanced ? Mr. Pope rose and said, — My learned adversary commenced his observations by addressing himself to our fears. He spoke of the dreadful idea of being hu»rried instantaneously, either into tke presence of Infinite HoHness, or into the regions of eterna WQ* la order to alleviate thDse fears, he proposes to us the fire oi THE DOCTRINE OF FURGATORY. 113 purgatory ; of thu purgatory, in which the church of Rome lells tts, that some souls have been confined for more than a thousand years. My friend has adverted to the questions which he pro- posed yesterday. As my answers are already before tb public who can decide whether they are satisfactory, I shall not follo\^ Mr. Maguire through his devious ramblings. I shall mere}} observe, that he has this morning brought forward several argu* ments, in addilion to those which he advanced yesterday, employee by infidels in their denial of the inspiration of the sacred scrip* tures. How did Mr. Maguire act yesterday? Instead ol coming in a manly manner to the real question, he confined me to an extreme case. He asked me, by what mode I could convince an ignorant man that the Bible is the word of God ? In reply, I enquired by what arguments he could convince him. Tou have heard the answers of both. 1 remarked, that in de- monstrating to the illiterate man, that the scriptures were divine, I would appeal only lo the internal evidence^ which commends Itself to the conscience, as having the impress of divine truth engraven upon it. I again ask, did not Mr. Maguire as well as myself appeal to the private judgment of the individual? Mk Maguire would refer to the universal consent of mankind ! ( would ask, must not the ignorant man, in order to decide wheth )\ this universal consent exists in support of the sacred volurre, must he not wade through the many tomes of the Fathers ? I, therefore, again submit, upon whose part the greater difficulty exists, in convincing the ilhterate person that the Bible is divine '* In order to show, that, while the eternal punishment of sin is for- given,its temporal punishment may remain, my friend has referred us to the cases of Adam and David. I readily admit, that wbile the Lord forgives the sins of his people, he frequently chastens them in this life^ when they act inconsistently with their profes- gion, and cause the adversary to blaspheme. The Lord says, "When my people forsake my law, I will visit their transgressions with 8 rod ; nevertheless my loving-kindness will I not utterly take from him, nor suffer my faithfulness to fall. — Psalm Ixxxix, 30, 33. "The lord chastens those whom he loves and scourges every son wiiorr he receives." — Heb. xii, 6. But I would ask, because God, in his infinite wisdom sees fit, when his people depart from him, to visit them with trials in this life* does this fact furnish any reason for supposing, that the Deity will extend that punishment into another world? By no means ; there is not the slightest ground in scripture for an opinion, altogether so unworthy of the character of God. My friend observes, that the church of Rome has not defined the nature of the fire of purgatory. Cardinal Bellarmine, however, Xates, that the damned, and the souls in purgatory are tormented 10* tl4 THE DOCTRINE OF FURGATORY in the same fire, and yet Mr. Maguire has informed us, that the doctrine of purgatory is a most comfortable doctrine! ! The Reverend Gentlen an has quoted the fifth of Matthew and 26th verse. It certain y appears to me strange, that a doctrine of such importance should, in the very first instance be made to res* upun a parable, the very explanation of which, as given by M. Maguire himself, proves that it is parabolic. I shall now examine it, and set before you its true meaning. The passage runs thuSf "Make an agreement with thy adversary quickly, whilst thou art in the way with him, lest perhaps the adversary deliver thee to the judge, and the judge deliver thee to the officer, and thou be cast into prison. Amen, I say unto thee, thou shalt not go out from thence, till thou pay the last farthing." I argue thus ; if the uttermost farthing be paid, then are the sins of the individual not pardoned ; for where the uttermost farthing is paid, there can be no pardon wanting; and on the contrary, if the sins are pardoned^ then is the uttermost farthing not paid. My friend talks of the honesty of his views and intentions, and of his candour in giving his opinions : I trust, that I can appeal with equal confidence to the integrity of my conduct. My view of the passage before us is, that the punishment, of which our Saviour speaks, is eternal in its duration. The Re- deemer appears desirous of showing in the parable, that there van be no hope of escape from that place, which he designates "^ prison," to that individual who dies in the rejection of the g<^spel. Several considerations are fitted to show us, that the punishment of which the Saviour speaks, is everlasting. The glory of God is infinite ; our debt, if not remitted, infinite ; the sinfulness of sin, infinite. Even according to the standard of this world, an offence is considered to rise in magnitude, In proportion to the dignity of the individual against whom it is committed ; a libel upon the character of a private person, is treason when committed against a sovereign. The God against whom we have rebelled, is King of Kings, and Lord of Lords ; our sins, therefore, being committed against infinite Majesty, unless blotted out in the atoning blood of Jesus, must for ever remain against us, and call down an interminable retribution. I shall quote a passage from a note in the Douay Bible, which fully justifies the view that I have taken of the expression, ^^ until thou hast paid," ivhich implies thai it shall never be paid. The comment is on Matt, i, 25. *' ' Till she brought forth her first-born son.' — From these words, Helvidma fend others heretics most hnpiousiy inferred, that the blessed Virgin Mary had other children besides Christ. But St Jerome shows, by divers examples, that this expression of the Evangelist was a manner of speaking usual among the Hebrews, to denote by the word untily \ fiich is to be tried in this fire, and not his soul. The minister of the gospel is not to add to its fundamental truths, but to preach it in all its native simplicity ; while the man who corrupts it with false philosophy, and builds upon it wood, hay, stubble, if ht holds the head Christ Jesus, will be saved, yet so as by fire ; tha* is, with extreme difficulty. My friend referred to the first of Peter, iii, 19, 20. "Christ also died once for our sins, the just for the unjust, that he migit offer us to God, being put to death indeed in the flesh, but enlivened in the spirit, in which also conning, he preached to those spirits which had been some time incredulous, when they awaited for the patience of God, in the days of Noe, when the ark was building, wherein a few, that is eight souls, were saved by water." — Douay Bible. Mr. Mag'uire is aware, that according to the church of Rome, only two descriptions of persons go to purgatory ; those who die in venial sins, or those who die absolved from the guilt of mortal sin. In Roman Catholic catechisms, mortal sins are enumerated. The character of those persons who perished in the flood, as described in the book of Genesis, proves that they died in mortal sin : "God seeing that the wickedness of men was great on the earth, and tha all the thoughts of their hearts were bent upon evil at all times, it repentea him that he had made man on the earth." — vi, 5. Again: — "The earth was corrupted before God, and was filled with ini- quity, and when God had seen that the earth was corrupted, for all flesh hao corrupted its way upon the earth, he said to Noe, * The end of all flesh ia come before me ; the earth is filled with iniquity through them, and I will destroy them with the earth.' " — 11, 12, 13, and 14 verses. My opponent cannot say that they received absolution ; they despised Noah, a preacher of righteousness, and were over- whelmed in the flood, the guilt of mortal sin being fixed upon their heads. Mr. Maguire says, Christ went and released those people out of prison. Look to the text. Did we even suppose that the passage referred to purgatory; it is merely said, that He preached to the spirits, but there is no mention whatsoever made of theif having been delivered. My view of the passage is this : Christ was raised from the dead by the power of the Holy Ghost, in which spirit he preached to the Antediluvians ; to the spiriti Bv q)ohxxL " in prison ;" (not which were in prison, as the Douay Bible renders the expression,) either in the spiritual prison ot ungodliness, when Noah preached, or else in the prison of hell, when Peter wrote. Christ, through the instrumentality of Noah, preached before the flood. The Holy S])irit, though not so abundantly vouchsafed till the Christian dispensation, was always with the church of God. The view of the passage entertained bi an authority which Mr. Maguire res')ects, coincides with mw*« THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 117 f he ^ enerable Bede, who lived more than one thousand years Ago, gives us the opinion of an early Father, perhaps Athanasius, jn this portion of scripture. *'He who in our times, coming in the flesh, preached the way of life to the world, even He himself also came before the flood, and preached to them whc were then unbelieving, and lived carnally ; for even he, by his Holy Spirit, was in Noah, and in the rest of the holy men which were at that time, auu by their good conversation preached to the wicked men of that age, that they might be converted to better manners." — Ful. in Loco. sec. ii, p. 806. My friend refers to the second of Maccabees twelfth chapter. I have already shown that this book is not canonical. I shall again refer to the fourteenth chapter, 41st and 42d, verse in which it will be seen, that suicide is commended. " Now, as the multitude sought to rush into the house, and to break open the door, and set fire to it, when he was ready to be taken, he struck himself with his sword, choosing to die nobly, rather than to fall into the hands of the wicked." Is the eulogy of such conduct in consistency with the spirit and precepts of the word of God? Consult another of the Apocryphal books, and you will find one Apocryphal book con- tradicting another. In the third chapter of Wisdom 1st to 4th verses, we read, — " But the souls of the just are in the hands of God, and the torment of death shall not touch them ; and their departure was taken for misery, and their going away from us for utter destruction ; but they die in peace. And though til the sight of men they suffered torments, their hope is full of immortality." Would the writer of the book of Wisdom have intimated, that their death wa,s falsely taken for misery, if they must first pass through the torments of a purgatory 1 Would he have said, that they are in peace ? Here is W isdom against the second book of JV[accabees. I would ask, did the individuals mentioned in the twelfth of Maccabees, for whom prayers were made, die in mortal sin ? I hope that my friend allows, that idolatry is a mortal sin ; they were guilty of it. " They found under the coats of the slain, some of the donaries of the idols of Jamnia, which the law forbiddeth to the Jews, so that all plainly saw, thai for this cause they were slain." — 40. Thus, regarding the Apocrypha, merely as an historical rela lion, and meeting my learned antagonist on this ground, as the) contain palpable contradictions, why should they be made the foundation for even an historical truth. I must, however, advert lo other matters. I am ready to prove the genuineness, authen- ticity, and canonicity of the scriptures, if the question be pro- posed to me in a manner becoming a scholar; but I have been shut up, as is evident, to an extreme case, that of the pooi ignorant peasants My friend has quoted lai^t^it^ from tiM 118 THE DOCTRINE OF I URGATORY. Fathers. I beg to remark, that M. Trevern, lately promoted from the bishopric of x\ire to that of Strasburgh, (I need noi add, a Roman Catholijc divine) honestly admits, that Jesua Christ has communicated no revelation to us concerning purga- tory, and observer — " Flad it been necessary for us to be instructed in such questions, JesuF wouH doubtless reveal the knowledge of them ; he has not done so ; wi nan, therefore, only form conjectures on the subject, more or less probable." — Discuss. Amic. Vol. ii, p. 242. The celebrated Roman Catholic Bishop Fisher inform us, that — "In the ancient Fathers, there is either none at all, or very rare mention cf a purgatory : that by the Grecians it is not believed to this day: that the Latins, not all at once, but by little and httle, received it, "pedetentim," step by step ; and that purgatory being so lately known, it is not to be marvelled that in the first times of the church there was no use of Indulgences, seeing these had their beginning, offer that men for a while had been affrighted with the torments of purgatory.'"'' — Roffens Assert. Lutheran Confutat. Artie. 18. Cardinal Cajetan observes — "If we could have any cc-tairty concerning the ongin of indulgences, 'i( would help us much in the disquisition of the truth of purgatory; but Wh HAVE NOT BY WRITING ANY AUTHORITY, EITHER OF THE HOLY SCRIPTUREt, OR ANCIENT DOCTORS, GREEK OR LATIN, WHICH AFFORDS US ANY KNOWLEl Gg THEREOF." — Cap. 2, de Indulg. And Alphonsus de Castro writes, " jyfant/ things are known to us, of which the ancients were altogether ig iv> rant, as purgatory, indulgences,'''' ^c, — Adv. Hoeor. L. 12, Tit. Purg. f. 25 »j. We have Cyprian, Tertullian, and various other quotatioAw from the Fathers, overturning those which have been adduc-ed by my friend, did time permit me to repeat them. But I woiila briefly ask, why did Polycarp specially treat on the resurrecti oit of the dead, and yet wholly omit the doctrine of purgator/ t (Epist. ad Philip. § 11, v, ii.) Why did Ignatius assert, that only two states in the future world, a state of death, and a staie of life, are set before us ; so that every one who dies, goes to his own proper place ; and why did he not make the slightest allusion to a purgatory, if he believed in it ?- — (Ep. ad Magnes. § V.) Why did Athenagaras write a treatise on the Resurrect (ion of the Dead, and yet make no mention of purgatory ?-— De Resurr. Mort. in Oper. pp. 143 — 219. Cyprian says^ — "When once we have departed hence, there is no longer any place foi repentance — no longer any effectiveness of satisfaction. Here life is either losi or held ; here we may provide for our eternal salvation by the worship of God and the fruitfulness of faith. Let not any one be retarded, ei*'^er by sins of by length of years, from attaining to salvation. * 4 * * ♦ To him who believes, a salutary indulgence is granted from tho Divine pity ; und immediately afti-^ deeih he passes to a blessed immortality.^' •^^ypriiin ad Demetrianj (k 193. THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. lit Tcrtullian counts it injurious to Christ to hold Ibat such as ire called home by him, are in a state to he piled. He says, — "We wrono; Christ, when we do not with equanimity hear of those who are numraoned hence by him, as if they were to be pitied." — Lib. de Patient, c. 9. Mr. Maguire. — You will easily perceive, gentlemen, thai this is an important discussion. My adversary has endeavoured to explain away some of the texts — I shall only remark, thai with regard to these texts, he may have his private judgment, and I have mine. There are two or three which we never shall givt? up — in respect to the others, we shall not relinquish the doctrine of the church for the first ages, and adopt the opinion of Mr. Pope. He says, that a man will be detained in purga- tory for one thousand years — that is not the doctrine of the Catholic church, and I never said it was — it is absurd in this manner to meet direct arguments by unfounded suppositions. The church has pronounced no decision as to the length of time that souls may be detained in purgatory. If a soul remain there but for two minutes, the doctrine is as fully established, as if is remained there foi two thousand years. My arguments are founded upon scripture and reason, and upon the authority 0[ the universal church. Mr. Pope has asserted, that a Roman Catholic, in making an act of faith, builds it upon private judgment. — The Catholic has only to exercise his private judgment upon the scriptural proofs of the authority of the church. That once established, the Catholic is enabled to make an act of faith upon Divine authority — the Protestant never can make an act of faith until he clears up all the sophistries and cavillings of the deists. The Catholic once admitting the authority of the church, rests satisfied — he laughs to scorn the objections of the infidel, and founds his faith upon the immoveable word of Christ. We exercise our private judgment to ascertain the authority of the church. But the moment we have that fact satisfactorily established, all our doubts and difficulties vanish. Mr. Pope then, all this while ha? '>een building castles in the air, and conjuring up the phantoms of his own imagination, for the mere purpose of laying them again. Similar arguments, to those which he has advanced, were urged by Porphyry, and Julian the apostate — by Rousseau, Diderot, and Voltaire, who set their own private judgments against the authority of the Catholic church, and some of whom, cm their death-beds, sought to be reconciled to her communion. Mr. Pope has enlarged upon the wonderful blessing of being justified through the merits of Christ. I trust, that I am a Christian from conviction, and although the profession of it is not as frequently w> my lips as on those of others, I hope to be justified througk 120 THE DOCTUINE OF PURGATORY. the merits of Christ. I allow no merits but his. He is tbf source aud fountain of all merit. That is the doctrine of the Catholic Chuich, and it is a point of our doctrine, regarding which Protestants are much misinformed. We do adnJi^ that the saints can beseech Christ, and interfere by their prayers in our behalf — but we deny that they have any merits of their own — they have none, except through the Redeemer. Jesus Christ—- he is the Divinity — the spring — the source whence every thing must come. It was through his infinite merits he saved the world. Does Mr. Pope, in the hearing of bishops, dare to stay the arm of divine and omnipotent mercy, in his explanation of the sin against the Holy Ghost? Are we not told, that whoever invokes the name of the Lord shall be saved? Is it impossible that a man who has committed the sin against the Holy Ghost, who has denied the known truth, may not, after the revolution of sixty years, suppose, repent sincerely of his sins, obtain the par- don of a merciful God, and be saved ? Shall it be said, that the gates of heaven would be closed against a truly repentant sinner? Tertullian was condemned for asserting, that the church had not the power to absolve from the sin of apostacy, and from the sin against the Holy Ghost, lertullian was excluded from the Catholic church in the second century, because he promulgated such a doctrine. Mr. Pope says, that by paying the last far- thing, is meant paying in this world. [Mr. Pope.— What I stated was, that if sins be forgiven in purgatory, the uttermost farthing cannot be paid there — if the uttermost farthing hepaid^ sins cannot he forgiven in purgatory.] Mr, Maguire. — You evidently say that the payment of the uttermost farthing is confined to this world. By what right can you deny that it may not also be paid in purgatory ? If it be paid in purgatory, then sins are forgiven there. If it be paid m this world, then souls go direct to heaven, which I never denied The necessity of purgatory to ail, forms no portion of the beliel of the Catholic church. Thousands may go to heaven without going through purgatory. But if a man should die in venial sin, God is too merciful to consign his soul to eternal damnation^ He will purify him, and take him to himself. God, in his mercy •viil listen to the prayers of the faithful on earth, for those who are placed in such circumstances. The Catholic church, there- fore, receives the article of the communion of saints. I sh«ll not attempt to force it upon Protestants — but let them look ic tnd examine it in the creed. My learned friend, Mr, Pope, has frequently referred to th« merits of Christ's blood. IVo one is more readv to plead th» THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORT 121 efbcacv of the Redeemer's blood than I am ; but instead of introducing its glorious merits every moment in a public discus- sion, I reserve it for more solemn occasions. When I behold a sinner afraid to pray, I draw his attention to the infinite mercy of God ; and when the unfortunate man, overwhelmed with the weight of his sins, is on the point of sinking into despair, I awaken his hopes, and arouse him to a sense of his duty, by pointing to the blood of the Lamb, shed for the redemption of man. Mr. Pope says, that the fire mentioned in scripture is merely probationary. I am at a loss to know in that case what our Divine Lord meant by casting into prison until the 'Uttermost farthing should be paid, which had not been remitted *' while in the way,'- that is, in this life, but which should be discharged " in the prison," that is, in the next life. A confusion of ideas seemed to pervade the mind of my friend while addressing him- self to this point. To the man who sincerely seeks the truth, the grace of God is given to guide and to direct him. But the influence of grace would not have led my friend into the erroneous interpretation which he endeavoured to affix to this passage of the scriptures. Mr. Pope has stated correctly the doctrine of the Catholic church, with respect to the persons who go to purgatory. The doctrine of the Cathohc church is this : — A man who has committed sin, but who has received absolution — whose heart is penetrated with a sincere contrition for his sins — who has firmly determined never more to offend, and is resolved to make resti- tution to God and to his neighbor, — such a man may go to heaven directly after his death. But those who have altogether wasted their time here — who have neglected to perform the -ecessary duties in the way of co-operation for the pardon which tney have obtained through the merits of Christ — must be purified in a third place before they can enter the kingdom of heaven. Mr. Pope has said, that Christ preached to those who were in prison, but did not release them. I have heard the assertion with astonishment. Surely, if Christ went to preach, he would not los^ the effect of his mission. Christ went to announce to the spirits in prison the glad tidings of redemption, to make known to them his victory over sin and death, and to bring them with him to that paradise which he had promised to the thief upon the cross. Where Christ is, there is paradise. The prison was paradise while Christ was there. With regard to the private opinions of theologians, which Mr. Pope has cited as making against purgatory — even if they did so, (and I trust his quota- tions are not unfairly taken) I shall merely say, that I am now stating the doctrine of the Catholic church. Mr. Pope haa quoted the book of Wisdom, as if it contradicted the book of 11 1S2 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORI Maccabees. I shall just read to you the entire p.issage refen^d o, and you will judge whether it is at all contradictory to the book of Maccabees : "But the souls of the just are in the hand of God, and the torment of death ehall not touch them. In the sight of the unwise they seemed to die, and their departure was taken for misery, and their going away for utter destruc- tion ; but they are in peace. And though in the sight of men they suffered torments, their hope is full of immortality."— iii, I — 4. Here the book of Wisdom merely states that the souls of he just go to glory — and so they shall. Does that contradict the doctrine of purgatory ? Thousands may go to heaven without going to purgatory — and those who go there, are only on their passage to salvation — so there is here no contradiction whatever. Mr. Pope has quoted a passage from the 2d book of Macca- bees, as if it sanctioned murder. It merely eulogizes the soldiers who died bravely in the defence of their country. Is it murder the writer recommends, when he praises Judas for fighting nobly ? With regard to what Mr. Pope said respecting the Idols ; I grant that those who were slain had committed mortal sin, but was it impossible for them to make an act of sincere contrition before they expired, or in the paroxysms of death, to ook to the blood of the long expected Jesus ? Was it not lawful on that supposition, for Judas Maccabeus, who was a charitable man, to offer up prayers for their repose ? Granting that a third place did exist, was his conduct inconsistent with that doctrine ? It is quite impossible for Mr. Pope to prove that *he book of Maccabees is not canonical. He has quoted Bishop Fisher against me ; It would indeed appear extraordinary if Bishop Fisher, who died a martyr for the Catholic religion — who was put to death by Henry VIII, along with the chancellor, Sii Thomas Moore, because he would not deny the Pope's supre- macy — should state what was contrary to the universally acknow* ledged doctrine of the church. I shall not follow the example of Mr. Pope, and volunteer unmanly allusions i? the established church of England. I am not leagued with ihose pretended friends who conspire her overthrow. I would not conspire to destroy even the temporalities of that church. In her spiritual and apostolic claims, she com.es nearest to our own. Mr. Pope has asked me, why did not Polycarp, who was one of the early Fathers, speak of purgatory? This is a curious negative argument. I might as well conclude, that because a certain historian has not mentioned a certain fact, therefore it never occurred — though vouched for by several other credible and contemporary narrators. There is no mention made by any early historians (the Christian writers excepted) of the «iiracl63 of Christ, unless in one passage in Josephus. Thai THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORF. 123 passage has been exploded by critics as not authentic ; — am 1, then, from such premises, to conclude that these miracles never were performed ? I shall now read to you the passages from the Fathers, .n reference to the doctrine which forms the subject of discussion Jhis day. Pertullian says We have oblations for the dead in the anniversary day." And to widowers he writes, "Reflect for whose soul you pray — for whom you make annual oblations.' St. Ephrem of Edessa, in a work entitled his Testament ihus proceeds ; " My brethren come to me, and prepare me for my departure, for mj strength is wholly gone. Go along with me in psalms, and in your prayers j and please constantly to make oblations for me (-rrpoacpopag.) When the thirtieth day shall be completed then remember me; for the dead are HELPED BY THE OFFERINGS OF THE LiviNG. Now listen with patience to what I shall mention from the Scriptures. Moses bestowed blessings on Reuben after the third generation. — (Deut. xxxiii, 6.) But if the dead ara not aided, why was he blessed ? Again, if they be insensible, hear what the Apostle says, ' If the dead rise not again at all, why are they then baptized for them.' — (1 Cor, xv, 29.) If, also, the sons of Mathias (2d Mace, xii,) who celebrated their feasts in figure only, could cleanse those from guilt, by their oflTerings who fell in battle, how much more so shall the priests of Christ aid the dead by their oblations and prayers." — In Testament, tome iii, p. 294, Edit. Vossil. p. 371, Edit. Oxonii. St. Cyril, of Jerusalem; " Then (during sprvice) we pray for the holy Fathers and bishops that are dead ; and in short for all those who are departed this life, in our communion^ believing that their souls receive very great relief by the prayers that are offer- ed for them, while the holy mid tremenduous victim lies upon the altar. Thia we will shew you by an example. For I know there are many who sj^y, * What good can it do a soul which is departed out of this life, whether with sins or without them, to be remembered in this sacrifice?' But tell me, I pra\ you, if a king had sent into banishment some persons that had offended him, and their friends should present him with a crown of immense price, to appease his anger, might not the king on that account, shew some favor to the guilty persons? So do we address our prayers to God for those that are dead, though they were sinners ; not by presenting to him a crown, but by offering up to him Christ, who was sacrificed for our sins, that so he, who ia BO merciful and good, may become gracious to them as well as to us." — Mysti- gog. Cat. pp. 297, 298. The fourth council of Carthage, canon 79, tome ii, p. 12C6. Also, the 29th canon of the preceding council of Carthage, ibi- dem, p. 1171 : "Penitents who have carefully submitter! eo the laws of the heads of the church, should they accidentally die on the road, oi by sea, where no asuis- tance could be given, should he remembered in the prayers and offenngs of thi faithful:' St. Gregory of \ysa, (Orat. pro defunctis. T. ii, p. 1066 7, 8.) says — 121 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. "In order that a man might be left to the dignity of free will, and evil at the same tiine be taken from him, Divine will thus devised : He allows him ta remain subject to what himself haschosen, that having tasted of the evil which he desired, and learned by experience how bad an exchange has been made, he might again feel an ardent wish to lay down the load of those vices and moinations which are contrary to reason; and thus, in this liie being renova- ted by prayers and the pursuit of wisdom, or in the next being expiated by the purging fire, he might recover the state of happiness which he had lost. Man, otherwise, must inchne to that side to which his passions tend. But when he has quitted his body, and the difference between virtue and vice ib known, he cannot be admitted to approach the Divinity till the purging fire snail have expiated the stains with wuich his soul was infected. That same fire in others will cancel the corruption of matter and the propensity to evil." St. Ambrose having, in the preceding part of the chapter, spoken of the effect of penal fire on what the Apostle calls silver and gold, and hay and stubble, thus concludes : " * We must all appear before the judgment seat of Christ, that every one may recei/e the proper things of the body, according as he hath done, whether it be good, or whether it be evil.' — (2 Cor. v. 10.) Take care that you carry not with you t« the judgment of God, either wood or stubble which the fire may consume. Take care lest, having one of the things that may be approvedi, you at the same time have much that may give offence. 'If any man's works burn he shall suffer loss ; but he himself shall be saved, yet so as by fire.' ^1 Cor. iii. 15.) Whence it may be collected, that the same man is saved in pj\rt, and condemned in part, (salvatur ex parte^ et condemnatur ex parte.) C^ncious, therefore, that there are many judgments, let us examine all our Actions. In a man that is just loss is suffered ; grievous is the burning of the •a me work : in the wicked man, wretched is the punishment." — Sermon 9.0, oi K Psalm cxviii, t. 2. And in his comnnent on the first epistle to the Corinthians — * *If any man's work burn, he shall suffer loss.' False doctrine, which 4bill perish, is the work that is said to burn, for all bad things must perish. t ',» suffer loss is to suffer pain. And who that is in pain does not suffer loss ? HK\i ' he shall be saved, yet so as by fire,' He will be saved, the Apostle tells Uhy because his substance shall remain, whilst his bad doctrine shall perish, fierefore he said, * yet so as by fire,' — in order that his salvation be not under' stood to be icithout pain. He shows that he shall be saved indeed, but that he shall undergo the pain of fire, and be thus purified ; not like the unbelieving and wicked man, who shall be punished in everlasting fire." In Obitu \'alentini — he says, in an apostrophe to the departed emperor, "Blessed shall you be if my prayers can avail any thing. No day shall Dass in which I will not make honorable mention of you ; no night, in which you shall not partake of my prayers. In all my oblations I will remembei ▼ou.'^ And for the emperor Theodosius, deceased, having mad*j ^ solemn prayer, he thus proceeds : — " I loved him, therefore will I follow him to the land of the living. I will n^t leave him till by my prayers and lamentations he shall be admitted to thi hoiy mount of the Lord, to which his deserts call him. Da requiem perfectam servo tuo The4>doMo: '—Gr^nt, O Lord, perfect repose to thy servant Tbe9i THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 125 Mr. Pope rose. — I shall endeavor rapidly to fellow m) Rever- end antagonist through his observations. I shall prove upon his own showing, that some souls were confined one thousand years in purgatory ; for if those who had been overwhelmed in the flood, were in the prison of purgatory when Christ died, he wiU admit, that the flood was somewhat more than one thousand yp.ars before the death of Christ. (Mr. Maguire here observed, that they did not go at all to purgatory.) With respect to exercising an act of faith, how can any one exercise it on the authority of the church of Rome, without examining the proofs of that autho- rity ? The church of Rome, we are informed, builds her autho- rity upon historical, that is, human testimony. This is somewhat like building castles in the air. My Reverend friend has stated, that there are no merits but the merits of Christ. But, what says the council of Trent ? " If any one shall say, that the good works of a justified person slt^ so the gifts of God, that they are not also the the merits of the justified himself; oi that the justified person, hythe good works which, through the grace of God and the merit of Jesus Christ, of whom he is a living member, are performed by him, does not truly deserve an increase of grace, eternal hfe, and the attain- ment of eternal life itself, (if he shall depart in grace) and also dn increase ol glory, let him be accursed." — (Sess. vi, cap. xvi, can. 32.) What does the doctrine of supererogation mean, if there be no other merits but the merits of Christ l As to the sin against the Holy Ghost, the adorable Saviour (not 1) has said, that it is unpardonable ; far be it from me, to limit the mercy of God ; as far as my humble efforts reach, I would, if possible, preach the gospel to the whole world, publishing free pardon through the blood of the Lamb. My friend has asked, v/hetherthe paymeni of the uttermost farthing refers to earth, or to a future state. The Saviour in St. Matt, is exhorting us to be reconciled on ih( way^ that is, in this world. T admit, therefore, at once that " the uttermost farthing" refers to the future state ; but I have shown, that the passage speaks of everlasting punishment. With respect to the 1st of Corinthians and 3d chap. ; I have already proved that the fire is probatory not purgatorial^ and that it is to try all ; therefore, the Apostle does not speak of purgatory. My friend has stated, that the mission of Christ to the spirits in prison, could not have been ineffectual. I take him upon his own ground ; I ask, did not Christ often preach, without any fruit resulting from his labours ? How few were accually conveited by the per- sonal ministry of Christ. The death of Christ was retrospective as well as prospective. Abraham rejoiced to see his day. Many through the vista of distant ages, beheld the rising of the star oj Jacob, by faith discerned the manifestation of the Son of God, about to offer an atonement for the sins of a ruined world. My friend has said, ^uere Christ js, there is paradise. Did Christ, 11* 126 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. in answer to the prayer of the penitent thief say, " Yes, I wil remember thee ; I will go to purgatory for a few moments, but shall leave thee there, to purge away thy sins.'' 'Tis true, where Christ is, there is happiness, but in heaven happiness supreme ' there the Redeemer shines forth in all the effulgence of his per sonal glories. I have shown that the book of Wisdum is against the second book of Maccabees. He says, that the writer of Maccabees commended bravery — " He struck himself with his sword," is the expression — I ask, was this dying nobly ? The commendation is not that of bravery, but of suicide. (Mr. Ma* guire here requested Mr. Pope to read the passage. Mr. Pope comphed) : " Now as the multitude sought to rush into his house, and to break open the door, and to set fire to it, when he was ready to be taken, he struck him self with his svvord, choosing rather to die nobly,^^ &c, &c. My friend has said, that the idolaters might have repented before they died, I answer, had they repented, they would have thrown their idols to the moles and to the bats : but we read, that they were found under their garments. — (2 Mace, xii, 40.) My opponent has said, that Bishop Fisher was a martyr. This circumstance, I should have thought, would have given greater weight to Bishop Fisher's authority, concerning the novelty of purgatory. My adversary has objected to the negative proofs from Poly- carp and others, as if I brought forward no direct testimony. Hear St. Clement Romanus : — " When once we shall have departed this life, there is no room for us in another, either to confess, or to repent." — Ep. ad. Cor. xi, § 8. Cyprian : — " The end of the temporal life being accomplished, we are divided into the habitations, either of everlasting death or immortality." — Ad Demetrian. Bee. 16 The autaor of the Questions and Answers, attributed to Justin Martyr, writes thus : — " After the departure of the soul out of the body, there is presently made a distinction betwixt the just and the unjust : for they are brou^^ht by the angels to places fit for them : the souls of the righteous to paradise, where they have the commerce and sight of angels and archangels : the souls of the unj'^t to the places in hell."— Resp. ad Orthodox. Gtuaest. 75. Athanasius says — *' That is not death that befalleth the righteous, but a translation : for they are translated out of this world into everla.«ri,ig rest : and as a man would go Dut of a prison, so do the saints go out of this troublesome Hfe, unto those good things that are prepared for them." — De Virgin. Macarius saith — ^ When the holy servants of God remove out of their body, the choniP ol THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 127 tngels receive their souls into their own side into the purer world, and so bring ihem unto ttie Lord." — CEgypt, Horn. 22. Again — " The Lord beholding thy mind that thou fightest and lovest him with thy whole soul, separates death from thy soul in one hour, for this is not hard for him to do ; for he taketh thee away m the minute of an hour, and taketh thee into his own bosom and unto light, for he plucketh thee awa}' from the mouth of darkness, and presently translates thee into his own king- dom ; for God can easily do all these things in a minute of an hour— this provided only that thou bearest love unto him." — Hom. 36. I need not referr to other quotations. Some of the passaged which my opponent has cited, permit me to say, merely speak of oblations for the dead. At an early period in the history of the church, thanksgivings were offered for those who had departed this life in the faith and patience of Jesus Christ. I have followed my friend through some of his ramblings. lie talks of sophistry and quibbling, and expresses his wish to come to strong argu- ments. I would also like to come to strong argument. You will decide whether the proofs of my opponent are fitted to sup- port the quaking foundation on which he stands. I shall now first refer to presumptive arguments against purgatory. It is not probable that a doctrine which makes so wide a distinction between the rich and the poor, should have come from that God who is no respecter of persons, and who has chosen the poor rich in faith, and heirs of the kingdom. This doctrine also savors of inhumanity. I would assist, as far as my ability would enable me, my humblest neighbour, in rescuing from destruction his ox or his ass ; but what shall we say of a system, which, believing that masses can assist souls suffering in purgatory, refuses to offer them, until the ready cash is paid down ! Again the doctrine of purgatory, viewed in the light of holy scripture, is inconsistent with the revealed will of God. St. Paul asks — *' He that spared not his own son, but delivered him up for us all, how shall Ke not with him also freely give his people all things ? — Rom. viii, 32. "As the heaven is high above the earth, so great is his mercy toward thei Uiat fear him." " He knoweth our frame, he remembereth that we are but dust : like as father pitieth his children, so the Lord pitieth them that fear him : the mercy of the Lord is from everlasting to everlasting upon them that fear him^ a id nis righteousness unto children's children." — Ps. ciii, 11, 13, 14, 17a Judgment he calls " his strange work ;" " He does not will ugly afflict the children of men ;" (Lament, iii, 33,) and, if liis peopb are called to taste the cup of sorrow, he sweetens it with many a consoling ingredient by the word of God, and teaching of his spirit. God loves his people with an eternal and unchang- ing affection. And can I suppose, that He who for their sakes spared not his co-equal and co-eternal Son, will consign them to a place of suffering, when they shall have passed through the tniseriet^ of this sinful world 1 Again this doctrine is derogatory 128 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. k> the sacrifice of Christ. If it be a fact, that the one oblatior. on the cross is all-sufficient ; if the promise of the nt w cove- nant runs thus, " thy sins and thine iniquities will I remember no more," " the blood of Christ cleanseth from all sin ;" if i1 be a truth that God " will not give his glory to another," does not the doctrine of purgatory derogate from the sacrifice of Cal- vary ? Hear the council of Trent — " If any shall say, that after the grace of justification has been receive^ the offence is so remitted to the penitent sinner, and the guilt of eternal pun ishment so effaced, that there remains no guilt of temporal punishment to b« saffered either in this world, or in the world to come in purgatory, befort admission can be obtained to the kingdom of heaven ; let him be accursed.* Sess. vi, cap. xvi, can. 30. Oh, my friends, what blasphemy is such language against thai Redeemer who bowed the heavrns and came down amongst us — who lifted off the curse of heaven's violated law, and redeemed the immortal soul by his own blood ! — David says, " As far as the east is from the west, so far hath he removed our iniquities from us : who forgiveth all thy iniquities : who healeth all thy diseases." — Ps. cii, 12, 13. In Isaiah we read, "I am, I am he, that blot out thy iniquities for my own sake, and I wi^l not remember thy sins." — xliii, 25. "I will forgive their iniquity, and I will remember their sin no more." Jer. xxxi, 34. "Thou shalt sprinkle me with hyssop, and t shall be cleansed: thou shah wash me, and I shall be whiter than snow." — Ps. i, ix. " If your sins be as scarlet, they shall be made white as snow : and if they be red as crimson, they shall be white as wool." — Isaiah i, 18. An(^ yet the believer, according to the church of Rome, requires fire to make his sins whiter than snow ! Do I not read, Isaiah xxxviii, 17, "But thou hast delivered my soul that it should not perish: thou hast cast a// my sins behind thy back." Do I not read, John i, 29, "Behold the Lamb of God, behold him who taketh away the sini of thi world." And again, 1 John i, 7, '* The blood of Jesus Christ, his Son, cleanseth us from all sin." And at the 9th verse, " If we confess our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sms, and to cleanse us from all iniquity." In Colossians we read •* You, when )^ou were dead in your sins, and the uncircumcision of yoitf tesh, he hath quickened together with him ; forgiving you all offences."-— ii 14 What gftys the prophet Micah, vii^ 19. THE iJOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 129 • He will turn again, and have mercy on us : he will put away our iniqui ^es ; and he will cast all our sins into the bottom of the sesu" We read that, " Other foundation can no man lay save that which has been laid, which il Christ Jesus." — 1 Cor. iii, 11. The Apostle Paul speaks of confidence — " Their sins and iniquities will I remember no more ; now where remission of these is, there is no more an offering for sin." " Having therefore, brethren, boldness to enter into the holiest by the blood .:>f Jesus, by a new and living way which he hath consecrated for us through the vail, that is to say, his flesh, and having an high priest over the house of God, let us draw near with a true heart, in full assurance of faith, having our hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience." — Heb. x, 19, 22. Mr. Maguire would be justified in censuring confidence, if the believer placed his dependance on his own works for salva- tion : but confidence is warranted, when exclusively built upon the foundation laid in Zion, the obedience unto death of the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. St. Paul says — '* God commendeth his charity towards us, because when as yet v/e were sinners, according to the time, Christ died for us ; much more therefore, being now justified by his blood, shall we be saved from wrath through him ; for if when we were enemies, we were reconciled to God by the death of his Son, much more being reconciled shall we be saved through his* Hfe." — Rom. V, 8, 10. What is the meaning of the Apostle's argument ? ** If when we were enemies we were reconciled to God, by the death of his Son, much more, after we have been reconciled shall we he saved by iiS life.'' I would argue, that if, when w^e were enemies^ God reconcile^^ us to himself, surely he will not consign the sinner to such a placo. of torment as purgatory, after he has become his adopted child, " There is no condemnation to them that are in Christ Jesus," (says Si. Paul, Rom. viii, 1.) ** Amen, Amen, I say unto you, he who heareth my word, and beiieveth him that sent me, hath life everlasting, and cometh not into judgment, but is passed from death to life, — John, v, 24. I say, if there be no condemnation to them that are in Christ Jesus, surely the Deity, who is infinite in justice, would not consign the believer, against whom there is no condemnation-, to the tortures of purgatory. St. Paul writes, " Whc shall lay any thing to the charge of God's elect ? It is God that justi- iietii. Who is he that condemneth ? It is Christ that died, yea, rather, that i 3 risen again, who is even at the right hand of God, who also maketh inter- cession for us. Who shall separate us from the love of Christ ? Shall tribu- lation or distress, or persecuXion, or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or gword : as it written, for thy sake we are killed all the day long, we ar€ accounted as sheep for the slaughter ; nay, in all these things we are more than conquerors, through him that hath loved us. For I am persuaded, that neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor thingi yre^ent, nw tilings to com^, nor heighc, nor depth, nor an/ other creature^ 130 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. shall be a hie to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesiw oui Lord.— Rom. viii, 33, 39. The Douay version of the commencement of the passage which I have read, is absurd. To the question, " Who shall ac- cuse against the elect of God ?" the Douay Bible replies, " God that justifieth :" as if the God who justifies, was the accuser of his elect. And again, to the question, " Who is he that shall con- demn?" The Douay translation answers, " Christ Jesus that died :" as if the Saviour condemned his people. By the way, I may mention, that Griesbach beautifully elucidates the pas- sage, by placing a nriark of interrogation after the expression " God that justifieth," and at the end of the 34th verse : the meaning of the passage will then be — who shall lay any thiRg to the charge of God's elect? Shall the God who justifies them, lay any thing to their charge ? Who is he that shall condemn ? Shall Christ condemn, who died, and having been exalted to the right hand of the everlasting throne intercedes for his people ? I say with Paul, " If God be for his people, who shall be against them ?" If God acquits them, shall the church of Rome condemn theni to purgatory? I shall fill up the few minutes that remain, by reading to you quotations from several Roman catholic writers^ which clearly show, that during the dark ages the state of things was such, that opinions the most monstrous could with facility have been introduced. A bishop of the church, in year 900, thus complains: "So great folly now oppresseth the miserable world, that at this day more ibsurd things are believed by Christians than ever any could impose upon *i«j blind pagans." — Agoberd. Epis. Lug. Lib. de Grandi, &c. Sabellius saith, " It is wonderful to observe, what a strange forgetfulness of all arts dio ajout this time seize upon men, insomuch that neither the Popes nor other orinces seemed to have any sense or apprehension of any thing that might be useful to human life. There were no wholesome laws, no reparations of churches, no pursuit of liberal arts ; but a kind of stupidity, and madness, and forgetfulness of manners had possessed the minds of men." And a little after, — *'I cannot," says he " but much wonder from whence these tragical examples of the Popes should spring, and how their minda should come to be so devoid of all piety, as neither to regard the person which thsy sustained, nor the place they were in. — Enead. 9, Lib. i, 900, PhiL Burgomansis says — " It happened in that age, through the slothfulness of men, that there was a general decay of virtue, both in the head and in the members." — (Ann. 906.) I wonder who the Head was ? And again, ^* These times, through the ambition and cruel tyranny of the Popes, wera extremely unhappy ; for the Popes setting aside the fear of God and his wor- ship, fell into such enmities among themselves, as cruel tyrants exerciai towards one another." — (Ann. 908.) THE DOCTRINE OF PURGAlORY. 131 And Platma, their own writer, in his History of the Popes, ^ives the following account of their barbarities to their prede- cessors, though many years' deceased. "These Popes minded nothing else but how they might extinguish b j K the name and dignity of their predecessors." Sigonius, speaking of these times, about the commencement of the 10th century, calls them — "The foulest and blackest, both in respect to the wickedness of the prin^eg •"id madness of the people, that are to be found in all antiquity." — De Regn. Ital. Lib. 6. Genebrard, speaking of the same time, observes, "This is called the unhappy age, bemg destitute of men eminent for wit and learning; as also of famous princes and Popes. In this time there was scarce any thing done worthy to be remembered by posterity." — Chron. Lib. 4, Gerbert, about the beginning of the eleventh century, gives this brief character of the Roman Church, in his Epist. 40, " The world stands amazed at the manners of Rome." Werner gives this character of these times in these words : " About the year of our Lord one thousand, there began an effeminate time, m which the Christian faith began to degenerate exceedingly, and to dechne from its ancient vigour ; insomuch, that in many countries of Christendom, neitiier sacraments, nor ecclesiastical rites were observed ; and people were given to soothsaying, and withcrafts ; and the priest was like the people." — Fac Temporum. Strong indeed is the complaint of a great prelate. He says — "In the west, and almost all the world over, especially among those who are called the faithful, faith failed, and there was no fear of God am.ongthem. Justice was perished from among men, and violence prevailing against equity, eech on Fourth Dajr THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 135 tngm is coeval with that of the Apostles. Whilst, as for us, we have not yet existed three centuries: since in 1515, both your ancestors and ouri communicated at the same mass: celebrated together the feast of Easter, and lived in perfect unanimity of sentiment. Moreover, the chain of tradition, whose first hnk was attached by Peter and Paul to the church of Rome, has been in such manner preserved amongst you, that, if the Irenoeuses, the Grregories, the Athanasiuses, the Chrysostoms, were now agam to return to the earth, it would be in the church of Rome alone, that they would find that lociety, of which, once, they had been the members.'* Il was such considerations as these thai induced Henry the Fourth of France, to abandon the Protestant, and embrace ihe Catholic religion. — " When this illustrious hero, previously to his conversion, was induced to study the Catholic religion, he proposed, through the medium of Sully, a variety of questions to the Protestant ministers. Amongst others he proposed the following: — * Whether it was lawful for him to become a Catholic? Their reply vz-as : — ' That it was lawful for him to become a Catholic : seeing, that salvation is attainable in the Catholic church.' They added, it is true, ' Our religion is the more perfect ; but still, the church of Rome is sufficient for all the securities of future happiness.' This answer obtained, — the mon- arch now consulted the Catholic prelates and theologians respecting the security of salvation in the Protestant church. But, he could not find one single individual amongst these, that would allow such benefit to exist in tliis society. Whence, he reasoned in this manner with the Protestant ministers : * You pretend,' he said to them, ' that, by continuing in your communion, my religious state is more perfect, than if I were to become a Catholic; whilst, at the same time, you own, that I may be saved in the Cathohc church. Now, the Catholics, on the contrary, all maintain that salvation is not attain- able in your religion ; but that it is confined to the church of Rome. So that, by uniting myself to the church of Rome, I may be saved, both according to your acknowledgment and theirs. Therefore, 1 should be the maddest of men, if, in a business of such infinite importance, I did not take the safest side ; consequently^ I decide in favour of the church of Rome, in which, by the acknowledgment of all the world, and even of the men who are the rrost opposed to each other — my salvation is secure.' " Such was the reasoning, and such the decision, of Henry, riiey were, alike, the dictates of good sense and prudence. The declaration of the Protestant university of Hehnstadt, in the case of the Protestant princess of Wolfenbuttle, who was destined to be married to the archduke of Austria, is similar to !he preceding one of the French reformed ministers, and presents the same kind of inference. The members of the above univer- sity, in the year 1707, were consulted, *' Whether in the consideration of the proposed marriage, the prhictM might, in conscience, embrace the Catholic religion ?" The answer, dehvered in the form of a declaration, was to the following effect : — *' First, that the difference between the Protestant and the Catholic reli« gions is not fundamental. Secondly, that is therefore lawful to pass from tke Protestant to the Catholic cb jrch." Mr. Pope, you will be pleased to recollect, drew a frightfii picture of this same Catholic church, and described some of tb« 136 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. Popes m the dark ages as execrable characters. I will ndt. deny — indeed, I have already admitted, that ther^ were some bad characters among the Popes — but they were few in number. Were there not bad she Popes in England? Mr. Pope spoke of the dissolute lives of the clergy, but h« does not describe more faithfully than does Reeve, in his Eccle- siastical History, the dissoluteness and neglect of morals which brought on the Reformation. A reformation \^as decidedly re« quired, but it was a reformation in morals. Such a reformation as the Almighty would bring about, by the instrumentality of good and virtuous characters. Mr. Pope quotes a passage from Da- vid : " Wash me yet more from my iniquity and cleanse me from my sin." Here is the strongest proof that David had been already forgiven his sins, and his supplication to the Lord to wash him still more^ shows that the temporal punishment of th« sin remains after the eternal had been remitted. David adds — ** For I know my iniquity, and my sin is ahvays before me.'' David well knew the effects of sin- -be was aware, that thougk the eternal punishment due for his iniquities had, through the mercy of God, been remitted, that still he had a further account to render, and that a temporal punishment was still to be inflicted. Mr. Pope has endeavoured to work upon the feelings of his auditory, by continual appeals to the merits of the Redeemer's sacrifice. Did I ever deny that the merits of Christ's blood washed out all sin 1 But who will deny that a moral martyrdowi will render us more acceptable in the eyes of the Redeemer? Who will assert, that if Christ grants favours to us, we should not labour to render ourselves, in a certain degree, deserving of them ] Will not a master be more ready to grant favours to a servant, in proportion as that servant becomes entitled to them by his good and moral conduct? Though I am not, hke Mr. Pope, always dwelling upon the merits of our Redeemer's blood, which should never be introduced but with reverence and awe, yet I am always ready to assert my faith in their infinite and glorious efficacy. Mr. Pope has spoken of the confidence of the true believers — I would remind those who possess such con- fidence to beware. I would tell them, in the language of scrip- ture, to "take heed lest they fall." The inspired writer says. »' that no man knovveth whether he be worthy of love or hatred," and our Saviour says, " Learn of me, because I am meek and humble of heart." If meekness and humility were more pre- valent at the present day, this discussion had never taken place. I have been upwards of nine years in the mission, and I nevei preached a controversial sermon, until I found the Biblicala assailing my flock in all quarters — until I saw wolves in sheep'f clothing, endeavouring to lead them from their faith, and car THE DOCTRINE OF PUKGArORY. 137 iying on their operations vvith a tract in one hand and the rnone)? in the Other — I then found it necessary to stand forward and protect the rehgious principles of that flock, over which 1 was appointed the spiritual guardian and guide. The council of Trent never said, that the merits of the saintj; can avail any thing per se. They merely serve others througl the hlood of Jesus Christ. Christ is the door through which w€ shall enter — He is the vine — we are the branches — and what ever good works we may perform, or whatever merits we ma} possess, are not to be attributed to us, but to that *divine tre€ whence wc spring, and from which we derive our life and nour- ishment. Let every pastor take care of his flock — I do not, in that respect, invade the rights of others. Mr. Pope n^ay say, that he is commissioned to preach to my flock, but I deny the fact. I say that he has no ordinary mission to do so, and he must prove an extraordinary mission by miracles, as Christ and Moses did. If he have an extiaordinary mission, let him giv« us such proofs of it, and I am ready to join with him. I merely wish en this occasion to employ argument, not rhetoric ; and to appeal, not to your prejudices and passions, but to the sober reflections of your understandings. If I shall be able to remove the prejudices of the honest amongst my Protestant countrymen, I shall consider myself as having achieved much. During the heat of the Reformation, it will be allowed that expressions escaped from the exasperated parties on both sides which had better been forgotten. We Catholics may appeal to the learned and honest Thorndyke, who in his "Just Weights and Measures,'' says, "The worship of the Host is not idolatry, for the flesh and blood ol Onriat is no idol to Christians, wheresoever he is worshipped. He that worships the Host believes the Lord Jesus Christ to be the only true God, hyposta- tically united to our flesh and blood ; which being present in the Eucharist in such manner as he is not present every where, there is due occasion to give it that worship in the Eucharist, with which the Godhead in our manhood is to be worshipped with upon all occasions. Will any Papist acknowledge that he honours the elements of the Eucharist for God ? V/ill common sensr charge him with honouring that in the sacrament which ho does not believe to be there ? This is a calumny by which Protestants lead the public by the *j03e." He subsequently adds, " They that separate from the church of Rome, as being idolatrous, art thereby schismatics before God." Mr. Pope has attacked the Catholic clergy for receiving money for saying masses. The Catholic clergy depend for support upon their flocks ; they possess not the tithes and green acres, and the fat of th 3 land. Give them a certain portion o^ the tithes and glebes, and I promise you they will never look to 12* 138 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. me poor, even for the most trifling compensation We read that the labourer is worthy of his hire, and that he who preaches the gospel should live by the gospel. Surely Mr. Pope will not assert the contrary. Mr. Pope. — My opponen has acknowledged, that they who perished in the flood, died in mortal sin. Therefore, according to Mr. Maguire's own shov^ing, as those spirits were confined m the prison spoken of by St. Peter, the prison could not have been purgaj( ij. My friend says, that the onus lies on me to prove that there is not a third place. I reply, that the onus rests on Mr. Maguire to prove the existence of a third place, and also to show, that that third place is purgatory. He asks, if there was the disposition to repent, would not God forgive the sin against the Holy Ghost? Every one who possesses repen- tance towards God, and faith towards our Lord Jesus Christ, is accepted of him; but this sin, whatever it be, appears to inflict the awful punishment of judicial blindness. Mr. Maguire has lumself admitted, that the sin is unpardonable. I do not decide, whether this sin can be committed in the present day ; perhaps, the commission of it was confined to the times of the Saviour — Mr. Maguire alludes to the cases of Lot and of Jephtha. I ynswer, that the scriptures, as a faithful history of human nature, DAUst contain narratives of crime ; but yet, do we ever find the eacred volume speaking of acts of depravity, in language of sanction and commendation? Does the question need a reply? The criminal act is either pointedly condemned in the immediate context of the narration, or by the spirit and precepts of the inspired volume. But what are we to think of the book ol Maccabees, which not merely relates an act of suicide ; but pos- itively commends it ; " Choosing rather to die nobly^ Nicanor struck himself with his sword ?" Is this the authority of inspi- ration ? Is this bravery, to fear to meet death by the arm of another, and choose rather to fall on his own sword ? My friend has alluded to circumcision and baptism. I would say of bap- tism, what Paul said of circumcision : " He is not a Jew, which is one outwardly ; neither is that circurr cision which is outward in the flesh : but he is a Jew which i« one inwardly ; and circjnicision is that of the heart, in the spirit, and not in the letter; »vhose praise is not of men, but of God." — Rom. ii, 28, 29. 1 believe that God will never exclude a sinner from heaven, if his dependance be founded upon the blood of Jesus, though ne be not baptized. Mr. Maguire appears to have a high respect for the Established church. I would refer hirn to her catechism, which says, that " the sacraments of baptism and tho Lord's supper, are gen:rally necessary to salvation." Sb3 doet THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 139 f»ot say '* absolutely and essentially." Mr. Maguiie has said, that the Redeemer made salvation depend upon baptism as a condition. " He that believeth and is baptized, shall be saved, he that believeth not shall be condemned." It does not say, he .hat is not baptized shall be condemned. Taking him on his own ground, I would ask, does he mean to draw a parallel between baptism and the excruciating torments of purgatory, even as conditions of salvation? When the jailer at Philippi asked, what shall I do to be saved ? St. Paul simply replied *' Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved ;" afterwards I admit, that he administered baptism as the initiating right of Christian communion. My friend has referred to the Greek church — the authority of the Greek church weighs but little with me. The statement that the Greeks did not believe in purgatory, was a quotation from Fisher, the Roman Catholic bishop. I omitted to notice one of my friend's quotations fron^ scripture in support of purgatory. The omission was of little consequence, as in truth, the passage is perfectly and altogether irrelevant. I shall read to you the context. " We would not have you ignorant, brethren, of our tribulation which came to us in Asia, that we were pressed out of measure, above our strength, so that we were weary even of life. But we had in ourselves the answer oi death, that we should not trust in ourselves, but in God who raiseth the deaa, V* ho hath delivered, and doth deliver us out of so great dangers ; in whotO we trust that he will yet also deliver us, you helping withal in prayer for us; that for this gift obtained for us, by the means of many persons, thanks may be given by many in our behalf." — 2 Cor. i, 8, 11. The last verse which I have read, is that which my opponent adduced. Here is nothing about purgatory or prayers for the dead ; were the Apostles on earth, or in the world of spirits, when this verse was penned ? Need I offer any further com- ment to show that no connexion exists between this passage and the doctrine of purgatory. The verse is just as much connected with purgatory, as that which is commonly used as the motto of purgatorian societies—- " Have pity on me, have pity on me, at least you my friends, for the hand of the Lord hath touched me." — Job. xix, 21. A short time since I placed in the hand? of a Roman Catholic H Douay Bible, and called his attention to the passage ; and great indeed was his astonishment, when he found that it was uttered by Job, when Job was on earth. My friend asked, why David prayed for the forgiveness of his sins after pardon had been announced to him by Nathan, if his sins were aitogethei blotted out. I answer, the Christian is conscious that the just man falleth seven times a day, and living by faith, requires every moment to cry out. " Purge me with hyssop and I shall be cleun." 140 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORT. by reason of the guilt which he is continually, and 1 may pei- haps say, sometimes insensibly, contracting. Compare the declaration of the council of Trent, on the merit of good worka already quoted, with the sacred volume. The Bible says, " The wages of sin is death, but the gift of God is eternal hfe, through Jesus Christ our Lord." — Rom. vi, 23. Here is the council of Trent against God himself. My friend spoke about confidence ; the confidence of which I spoke waa built upon the blood of Christ. He desired those who stood to take heed lest they fall. I pray that I may be enabled to com ply with the exhortation, God bestowing upon me an humble spirit- My opponent has stated that the Apostle says, " No man knows whether he be worthy of love or hatred." I must confess that I have never met with the passage in the sacred scriptures. Mr. Maguire deprecates the idea of standing here this day. Had I not seen the passage in the Register, which is regarded as the organ of Roman Catholic proceedings, this meeting would never have taken place. With respect to personalities I shall take no notice of them. A passage in the sixth -.^neid of Virgil, as translated by Dry- den, will serve to throw light upon the origin of purgatory. "Nor death itself can wholly wash their stains, But long contracted filth even in the soul remains. The relics of inveterate vice they wear, And spots of sin obscure in every face appear; For this are various penances enjoined, And some are hung to bleach upon the wind, Some plunged in waters, others purged in fires, 'Till all the dregs are drained, and all the rust expires. ****** Then are they happy, when by length of time The scruffis worn away, of each committed crime ; No speck is left of their habitual stains, But the pure nether of the soul remains." One would think that Virgil saw prospectively the purgatory of the church of Rome. Here permit me to make a remark, that I cannot discover, by what process fire, which is material, can purify an immaterial essence. I proceed to demonstrate from the sacred volume, in addition to the arguments which have been already adduced in refutation of the doctrine of pur- gatory, that the souls of believers pass after death immediately to everlasting rest. If the blood of Jesus Christ cleanseth from all sin, then assuredly the man, who has thus been cleansed, is translated at once into the realms of eternal glory. In the fourth book of Kings, (or, as we have it, the second] and twenty-second chapter, it is written, THE DOCTRINE OF lURGATORT. I4l •* Therefore, I will gather thee to thy Fathers, and thou shall be gathcsred to triy sepulchre in peace, that thint eyes may not see all the evils which will bring upon this place." I ask, would such a promise have been made to king Josiah, if the soul was to pass from the trials of this world to the agoni- zing sufferings of a purgatorial fire. In the second of Corin tliians, chap, v, 1st to 8th verse, the Apostle writes : ^* For we know, if our earthly house of this habitation be dissolved, that wt have a building of God, a house not made with hands, eternal in heaven ; for in this also we groan, desiring to be clothed upon with our habitation that E8 from heaven ; yet, so that we be found clothed, not naked ; for we also who are in the tabernacle do groan, being burthened, because we would not be unclothed, but clothed upon, that that which is mortal may be swallowed up by life. Now, he that maketh us for this very thin^ is frod ; who hath given us the pledge of the Spirit ; therefore, having all this confidence, know- ing, that while we are in the body, we are absent from the Lord ; for we walk by faith and not by sight ; but we are confident, and have a good will \o be absent rather from the body, and to be present with the Lord." Would the Apostle have made use of such language, if he believed that he had to pass through a purgatory ? " To be absent from the body" and " to be present with the Loid," we find, are in the case of the believer, according to the Apostle, synonymous expressions : and " in ihe body," and " absent from the Lord," are likewise identified. The Apostle says, in Philippians first chapter 21st to 23d verse : " To me to live 's Christ, and to die is gain ; and if to li\^ in the flesh, this IS to me the fruit of labour ; and what I shall choose I know not ; but I am straightened between two, having a desire to be dissolved, and to be with Christ, a thing by far the better." A passage which is still more direct, is found in the thirteenth verse of the fourteenth chapter of Revelations : " And I heard a voice from heaven, saying unto me, write, Blessed are the iead which die in the Lord, from henceforth ; yea saith the Spirit, that they may rest from their labours j and their works do follow them." Why are those who die in the Lord, blessed ? Is it, that, delivered from the toils of the flesh, they go to purgatory ? Are they blessed, if enduring the intensity of purgatorial fire? No; but through the grace of God, when the summons goeth forth, they are translated from the changes and sorrows of this mortal scene to the regions of eternal felicity. Surely the child of God, instead of in any degree looking forward to the period of his dissolution as the commencement of eternal blessedness, if he must first pass through the lake of purgatorial fire, would doubt- less stand s;bivering on the brink. The people of God whether they live or die, are the Lord's. Would the Apostle assert that the Lord's people are blessed after death, if they had to suffer in purgatoiy on their way to glory ? I have spoked on Mr. Sdaguire's arguments ; [ have considered his quotations from 142 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. scripture, and proved that they do not support the doctrine of purgatory : I have shown that such a tenet is inconsistent with the character of God, and derogatory to the Redeemer's sacri- iuie. We have seen, upon the testimony of holy writ, that the blood of Jesus Christ is perfectly competent for the salvation of sinners : we have seen Fathers against Fathers : I trust, we shall no longer repose impHcit dependance upon them. The Bible, and the Bible alone, as the revelation of God, is the word by which we shall be judged. That word directly shov^ s us, that the soul of the I'cal Christian having been emancipaicd from the body passes immediately to a state of felicity. We have also seen, that the doctrine of purgatory carries on the very face of it a contradiction to the sacred scriptures, in the distinction which it establishes between the rich and the poor. And here I would join issue with one who was well acquainted with the system of the church of Rome, a converted priest : and if I use stro^ig expressions, I mean no offence to the feelings of my Romau Catholic auditors — but I would endeavour to reach the judgment and the conscience. The writer to whom I allude says, " The doctrine of purgatory is of heathen origin, intended to cheat the sim- ple out of their money, by giving them bills of exchange upon another world for cash paid in this, without any danger of the bills returning protested." — Meagher. Spare your smiles, my friends: the subject is too momentouw: it is the salvation of the immortal and never-dying spirit, on which we are discoursing ; it is the honor of EmmanuePj atonement that we are vindicating. Will you not, in agreement with scripture, give your universal verdict against a doctrine which would rob the believer of his peace, which would throw around the glorious attributes of heaven's sovereign, the funeial pall of darkness and abscurity, which would transform a God of love into a God of terror, mingle our paltry "satisfactions" with the agonies of Calvary, and attach to the seamless robe of Christ's righteousness, woven from Bethlehem to the Cross, the tattered vestments of personal suffering 1 As to men of sense, I appeal to the Roman Catholic clergy. Though we differ, still, as a friend, I would say, "take care lest you are not bringing down upon your heads the curses of innumerable immortal spirits." We are all on our progress to an eternal world ; we must ail onward, whether we will or not, to our journey's end ; our pil- grimage will soon terminate, and the exclusive objects of our concern then will be the great realities of an eternal world. Let us then, Protestant and Roman Cathohcs, while we are on the way, look to Jesus, the only hope set before sinners ; let us kisi (he Son, lest he be angry, and the door of niercy be for everclosed THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. \i^ Mr. Maguire. — Gentlemen, after the very pathetic sermon •vhich you have just heard, the feeHngs of many of you must be in no small degree excited. I shall merely observe that I have not come here to preach, but to argue — to examine evidence, and expose sophistry. Mr. Pope has given us a history of witchcraft in the tenth century. — It is but a few days ago tha^ several men were tried in Bible-reading England, for assaulting and nearly killing a poor old woman under the impression that she was a witch. She was supposed t > have bewitched a colt, and she was actually made to go under the colt's tail and pray for its health and prosperity! This occurred in England where there are ten Bibles for one head. Mr. Pope calls the sin against the Holy Ghost an act of judicial blindness. Does he hold that for a sin which a man has committed fifty years before his death, and for which he has sincerely repented, the gates of heaven will be shut against him, and he will be condemned to eternal reprobation ? Is Christ's blood to be of no avail to that repentant sinner? Is such the doctrine of Mr. Pope? I be- seech you all to examine the New Testament, and you will find in almost every page of it, a contradiction to such a doctrine. I may here beg to recall your senses which have been floating upon that magical hemisphere created by the wonderful eloquence of my friend, and direct your attention to the arguments he has advanced. Mr. Pope says that the sacraments of the church of England, namely, baptism, and the Lord's supper, are gen "r- ally necessary to salvation. Mr. Pope should understand the word " generally," as theologians do, to mean that in soma instances the sacraments maybe dispensed with ; for mart)!- dom, in the opinion of theologians, suffices as a substitute for baptism. If Mr. Pope understands " generally," in that sense, 1 quite agree with him. But if he denies that baptism is necessary to all Christians who have the opportunity of receiving itj as a requisite for salvation, I propose to him the distinct text of scripture — " Amen, I say unto you except a man be born again of water and the Holj Ghost he cannot have life in him." If the God of heaven thought fit to appoint a third place foi Iho purifying of souls from sin after their departure from this life, is not Mr Pope guilty of blasphemy, in thus calling the all- mse God to an account ? Christ does not derogate from the efficacy of his own merits by the establishment of a third place ; and the only question is, was there such a place de facto esta- bhshed ? Mr. Pope has argued all through upon the assumption that I believe that all souls should go to purgatory in the iirs< instance — I h Dpe on the contrary, that many go direct to heaveu, 144 THE DO';TRINK UF PURGATORY. and a few comparatively to j/urgatory. Is it not evident, lial if many souls go directly to iieaven, that does not militate against the doctiine of purgatory Because some souls should go di- rectly to heaven, it would be fcolish in the extreme to argue that no suoh place as purgatory existed. T challenge Mr. Po^e to produce a single direct proof from scripture against purgatory. Every passage which he has quoted is perfectly consistent with the existence of a third place. Before I proceed further, let me read to you the following passage from the pen of that candid Protestant divine, the learned Dr. Thorndyke, in his "Just We ghts and Measures." Speak- ing of the doctrine promulgated by Luther, as to the justification by faith only, he says, — "Can it fall within the sense of a Christian to imagine, that he can be restored by a *Lor(l have mercy on me?' No, it must cost him hot. tears and sighs, and groans, and extraordinary prayers, with fasting and alms. Those who assure sinners of pardon and the favour of God, with such means of true repentance, whether it be themselves, or their false teachers, plainly murder their souls," Is not that a strong passage against the Lutheran and Cal- vin istic doctrine of justification by faith only^ which has been adopted by Mr. Pope 1 The inutility of good works is a pleas- ing doctrine to promulgate ; — it ministers to the passions of mankind, and encourages every species of immorality. Mr. Pope talked of Job, and he stated that a Roman Catholic was astonished on his telling him that Job used the following words, while he was in this life : — *'Hav'e pity on me, have pity on me, at least you my friends, because the hand of the Lord hath touched me." I now assert that generally speaking, learned commentators »^ree, that Job there speaks in the spirit of prophecy of himself 1 hen dfsad, that his language related to Jesus Christ, whose death or the cross would redeem them, and that he therein i ilicited the prayers of the friends about him when he departed fiom thijj life. Such is the sense in which I find this passage understood by the learned commentators. But I had nevei quoted the text in support of the doctrine of purgatory, and Mr. Pope is therefore only building castles in the air, for the purpose of pulling them down. Is not the doctrine of Mr. Pope, on the head of justification by faith, directly Calvinistic? He has ap^ peared afraid to express the opinion which he evidently enter* tains, that the blood of Christ is sufliicient alone to save us ; as if ofur Saviour himself had not annexed to the promise of salva- tion, many co-operating conditions, the fulfilment of which is accessary on the part of man — Hear what our Saviour says, ** But if thou wilt enter into heaven k ep the commandments.^^ **Unieas you do penance you shall all likewise oerish-" -Matdiew, xix, 17 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 145 I have already proved that the word ^Bxavoia was used in reference to the repentance of the men of Nineveh, and that repentance we are told in scripture, consisted of the works of penance, fasting, and similar mortifications. I defy any Protestant, who, like Mr. Pope, mamtains the right of private judgment, to prove that the Bible is the inspired word of God. The Protestant must take it upon trust from the Catholic church. They receive the sacred scriptures from a 'jhurch whose authority they refuse to acknowledge. Mr. Pope has again recurred to the origin of the present dis- cussion, and repeated that the passage in the speech published v\ the Register, first gave occasion to it. Mr. Pope has spoken no of that paper being the organ of the Catholic body — that may be true, — but I will here say that the editor of the Register had nothing to do with the speech in question. He should not be held responsible for it, unless it had been given in by the gentleman who furnishes the regular reports for that journal. [ have already disclaimed the accuracy of the report in question. I have on the first day, stated to this assembly, how Mr. Pope's challenge was sent round in green bags through my parish, and that a copy of it was served regularly upon me at breakfast after mass in the presence of several Protestants. Let Mr. Pope employ what arguments he may think fit against my creed. I shall not descend to personalities — even if he make a parcel of crabs crawl across this table, and state that they are souls on their journey to purgatory. I shall not accuse him of person- ality. Mr. Pope forsooth has made a noble discovery. He proves from a passage taken from the sixth book of Virgil's jEneid, that the Catholic church has stolen the idea of purgatory from the pagan mythology. Virgil likewise speaks of hell ' Vill Mr. Pope say that the doctrine of hell has been also stole j from the mythology of the heathens 1 I think I may make him a full present of the notable argument which he has founded upon the sixth book of the -Eneid. Mr. Pope says, that he cannot conceive how the fire of pur* gatovy can act upon immaterial souls. This was precisely the objei,tion started by Voltaire against the doctrine of hell — namely that fire could not act upon the human soul. That celebrated infidel, therefore, contended that the soul must be annihilated after its separation from the body ; and he ridiculed as incou sistent and absurd, the doctrine of future rewards and punish- ments. The shade of Voltaire will, no doubt, feel extremely obliged to Mr. Pope. Mr. Pope eternally recurs to the merits of the Redeemer's bloody in order to throw dust in the eyes of his hearers. There 18 not a nftan on earth places more dependance than I do upon \^ i4b' rHE liatJTRINE OF PURGATORY. Lhe sacred blood of our divine Redeemer. I feel that my etei nal salvation is a doubtful matter, but I hold, with the Catholic church, that the merits of Christ's blood have out-balanced all sin. I believe that millions will be blessed in tfie Redeemer's name. Mr. Pope insists that the doctrine of the utilit) of good woiks detracts from the merits of Christ's sacrifice. 1 1 remains for Mr. Pope to show that sin is sanctioned by heaven : or that because good works are rewarded by our Saviour, he therefor© derogates from his own infinite merits. We believe that all men vho are saved are saved alone through the merits of Christ. As it is not derogatory to Christ to be an intercessor with the Father, neither is it derogatory to Christ to have intercessors under him. Mr. Pope's attempt to throw discredit upon the holy Fathers does not look well for his cause. I beg you to recollect the argument which I proposed respecting the Fathers — and which argument, as Mr. Pope has not condescended to notice it, I shall here repeat — either the Fathers in their writings published what was the acknowledged doctrine of the church or they did not. If they did publish the established doctrine of the church, Mr. Pope must give up the first ages of Christianity, and the first councils, and admit that there never was a period when such doc- trine was not taught by the church. If the doctrines promulga- ted by the Fathers were not those entertained by the chv.^ch, why did not the church then disclaim them, and condemn tLur opin- ions ? Why did not the heretics quote the Fathers, as opposed to the Catholic church 1 Mr. Pope has given some quotations from the Fathers. As soon as the substance of the present con- troversy is drawn up and duly authenticated, I shall repair to the library at Manchester, and there examine the genuine editions^ of the Fathers, in order to ascertain the authenticity and correct- ness of the quotations read by Mr. Pope. The quotations which he has given are taken upon second hand authority. He ha> had them, I believe §bsieiricante manu. My quotations remain uncontroverted and incontrovertible. I would recall the attention of all candid Protestants present to this fact, that I have proved my doctrine by three distinct pas- sages from scripture, which have not been explained by my op- ponent — I have quoted Fathers who adduce the same texts of scripture in support of the doctrine of purgatory. Were Jerome, Augustine, Cyprian, Tertullian, and Origen, down to the fifth century, all wrong in their opinions on this subject 1 Will you prefer the private judgment of Mr. Pope before the unanimous consent of the holy Fathers and the authority of the church ? Dr. Johnson, one of the greatest men that England ever saw, admitted the reasonableness of the doctrine of purgatory. Ht; acknowledged that it was a holy and reasonable doctrir #, and hf THE DOCTRIiSE OF PURGAlORT. I4"i accordingly offered up prayers for the departed soul of his mother. What Dr. Johnson held and acknowledged, few Protestants need be ashamed of. Negative proofs alone were those to which Mr. Pope has had recourse. I have advanced no position in proof of the doctrine of purgatory, which I have not founded upon at least two direct and positive texts of scripture. I have also brought forward the holy Fathers in support of the doctrine which I :iiaintain. 1 have proved that all antiquity concurred in giving the same mean- ing which I now give, to the texts of scripture which I have quoted. It must be acknowledged, even by Protestants, that those holy Fathers, who lived immediately after the Apostles, and many of whom are canonized saints, form a great and powerful authority, as to the doctrines of the church in the early ages o{ Christianity. Mr. Pope will not admit the authority of the church, nor will he give credit to the collective wisdom of tho holy Fathers. We read, that God will render to every man according to his works. If God plunges a man, for an idle word, into hell for all eternity, where will a place be found for Antichrist, or for Nero, Caligula, Domitian, and the other monsters of vice who have disgraced the human form 1 W^here is a place of adequate pun- ishment to be found for them, if a man be condemned everlast- ingly for the expression of a single idle word ] Yet we read in St. John the words of our Lord, that " Unless a man be born again of water, and the Holy Ghost, he shall not enter the kingdom of heaven." Is the doctrine propounded by Mr. Pope consistent with the justice and mercy of God ] Protestants should beware of the doctrine that asserts they must go directly and at once either to heaven or hell. The alternative is a dreadful one, and obviously does not consist with the goodness and mercy of God. It is evident that the texts of Scripture are on my side. Has Mr. Pope quoted a single text directly against the doctrine which I advocate, or in contradiction to the texts whicn I have read to you ] Weigh that fact in your minds. Mr. Pope has attempted to cast discredit upon the utility ol good works. Now I ask him, how can a merciful God punish lat tternally^for had ivorksy if he will give me no credit for my good mea ? I had been led to believe that the giving of even a cup of cold water should have its reward. I have already stated that good works avail not per se, but through the infinite merits of our Redeemei, who will reward the efforts of poor man, to co-operate with divine grace, in the atonement fir his manifest ^ansgressions. <4S THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. Mr. Pope — As to the sermon which my learned opponent accuses me of preaching, it originated from the fact^ that there were no arguments to which I had to reply. He has, indeed, dealt in broad assertions, but not in argument, Mr. Maguire has much objected to the expression, "judicial blindness." He should ren ember, that the constitution of the mind is framed by the God of mind. When we habitually resist the convictiops of our judgments, the darkness of the understanding is mcreased, lo that at length we cannot discover truth from falsehood : this is judicial blindness. If it he the fad that so few go to purgatorij^ as JMr, JMaguire asserts^ then I hope that the number of masses fof souls suffering in purgaivry will be in proportion diminished. J brought forward the passage from Job, as equalling in irrelev- ancy, Mr. Maguire's quotation from 2 Cor. i, 11. My opponent has asserted, that we are indebted for the holy scriptures to the church of Rome. I deny the position. Were there not various churches beside the church of Rome ? Has my friend never heard of the Greek, the Abyssinian, the Chaldean, the Syrian, or the Waldensian churches ? These all possessed the scriptures. To employ an illustration, which I have used on other occasions. If I desired a draught of water, and six or seven streams flowing towards me, should go and plunge my vessel into the nearest stream, I may be thus addressed by the proprietor of one of the nvulets : — " Sir, you are entirely dependant on me for water but you shall not draw it from this stream ; it belongs to me." 1 might reply, " I am not exclusively indebted to you or depen- dant upon your fountain : there are five or six other streams at hand ; you may, if you please, debar me of access to your well, l^f'it 1 can put my bucket into other springs, and take a refresh- hg draught.," Mr. Maguire remarks, that ray observation on the incompe- tt.ncy of material fire to purge an immaterial spirit, coincides with that of Voltaire. I hold, that although a spirit cannot suffer from material substance, it can be taught to suffer by being brought into contact with spirit. When the spirit is re-united to the corporeal frame, then the body may suffer from material lire. My opponent says, that the Fathers in the quotations, which he adduced relative to purgatory, either gave the mind of the church or they did not : if they did not, why did not the church protest mgainst them : if they did give the mind of the church, why is not the doctrine which he says they propound, received ? In reply, I say. that the quotations from the Fathers, -^hich I have adduced in refutation of purgatory, either gave the mind of the church, or they did not : if they did not, why were they not protested against ; if they did, why is not the doctrine received which they flupport? Therefore, we have Fathers against Fathers. THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. 1-19 My opponent asked que:;=tions in the last half hour yesterday nrhen he knew they could not be replied to. lie has said that i have not given my rule of faith. I beg to be permitted to den^i this assertion. 1 again and again stated, that the bibie is my RULE OF FAITH. 1 uever asserted that God suffered. Christ suffered not in his divinity, but in his human nature : and ihe union of deity with manhood, stamped an infinite value upon his sufferings. I shall now proceed to prove the inspiration, canon- icity, integrity, authenticity, and genuineness of the sacred vol- ume. From the short time allowed, I shall be under the necessity of condensing my remarks within a small compass. I would first ask, how does the church of Rome decide upon these ques- tions ? Is it by inspiration ? My opponent, I am convinced, ioes not entertain such an opinion. It is then on evidence ; AND IS NOT evidence TANGIBLE TO OTHERS AS WELL AS TO THE CHURCH OF RoME ? My friend has made an observation to this effect, that I disregarded aggregate wisdom. The asser- tion, permit me to say, is unfounded. I deny not, that in the multitude of counsellors there is safety. Surely the wisdom of a collective body may be serviceable, though not endowed with the prerogative of infallibility. — As to the inspiration of the sys- tem, revealed in scripture : all are convinced that we need a revelation. The light of nature can in no wise discover to us a plan, by which the Deity, in perfect harmony with his unchang- ing perfections, can pardon guilty man. Socrates looked tor such a revelation. The law of opinion is continually fluctuating, and does not furnish animmutable standard of morals. Do we not want something to cheer and console us amidst the vicissi- tudes and troubles of life ? When we look beyond the portals of the grave, do we not require a ray of truth to illuminate the darkness of the tomb 1 By nature we know little of God, little of ourselves, little of our destinies. Here is a volume which purports to be a revelation from heaven. I study it, and find in it a sublime display of the divine perfections, a scheme of redem}>- tKjn perfectly adapted to my circumstances, a perfect code of morals, a system whose tendency is to diffuse happiness on earth, and to smooth the rugged brow of death ; so that the volume bears upon its very front the broad impress of heaven. I find Ihat it has condensed the fragments of truth that are scattered through the world, into a glorious whole. I find that it explains the mazes and labyrinths of life, and brings glory to God in the highest, and speaks peace on earth, good will towards men. Its two great divisions, the Old and New Testament, contain prophe cies which have been fulfilled in the destruction of kingdoms. and in events which history has recorded. The Jews are scat- tered throughout the world, and are s*ill a distinct people. Lord 13* 150 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. Chesterfield, with all his infidelity was obliged to say, that he never could get over the state of the Jews as a testimony to the truth of scripture. From what origin could such a S3''stem have sprung? It could never have emanated from the schools of antiquity. The schools were incapable of discovering the char- acter of God, or of devising such a scheme of morals. Ancient philosophers were, compaiatively, children on the subject of moral obligation. If philosophy could not impai*t such truth, wc must look to some other source, and I find — that source is heaven. What object, I would ask, could the Apostles have had m attempting to deceive mankind ? Was it temporal inter- est? No — they exposed themselves to persecution and death. When, therefore, I find the system which they have revealed, according with the voice of nature, adapted to the circumstan- ces of man, accurately describing his character, and palpably embodying in itself the attributes of Jeho\ah, I cannot avoid asking, " Whence, but from heaven, should men unskilled in arts, In different ages born, in different parts, Weave such agreeing truths, or how, or why, Should all conspire to cheat us with a lie, Unasked their pains, ungrateful their advice, Starving their gains, and martyrdom their price ?" — Drtden. Having made these observations on the inspiration of the sys- tem contained in the sacred records, I beg to remark, that the man convinced that the system is divine, does not experience much difficulty respecting the canon of scripture. The illiterate person never troubles himself upon the subject. He finds a balm for his sorrows in the word of life — a medicine for his soul, drawn from the laboratory of truth, prepared by the great Phy- sician of Souls. As to the canonicity of the sacred volume : what is the evidence respecting any work, such as Virgil oi Horace, but the testimony of the ancients 1 This testimony is infinitely more conclusive in support of the sacred scriptures. We shall commence with the fourth century, (it being unneccb- sary to begin with the writers of a later period) and take you through successive witnesses up to the first century, when we have the five Apostolic Fathers. Allow me to trespass upon your attention by mentioning the names of some of the writers. In the fourth century, we have numerous quotations from the New Testament in the writings of St. Athanasius, Ephiphaniusj Jerome, Rufinus, Augustin, Eusebiiis, and Cyril, Gregory Na- zienzen, Philaster, Arnobius, Lactantius, and others. In th« hird century, we find various passages from the New Testa- r^ent, occurring in the writings of Novatus, Dionysius, Commo- -tfi, Anatolius, Theognostus, Methodius, Phileus, "Victorinust THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORV. 15i Cyprian, Caius, and others. In the second century, Tertullian Clemens Alexandrinus, Theophihis of Antioch, Athenagoras IrenjEus of Lyons, Melito, Tatian, Hegesippus, Justin Martyr, and Papias, contain numerous references to the New Testa.neut This chain of evidence brings us to the five Apostolic Fathers: Barnabas, Clemens, Romanus, Hermas, Ignatius and Polycaip. In the fourh century we have catalogues of the books of the New Testament made by St. Athanasius, (39 Ep. Fest. t. i, p. 961, E. 962, C.) Jerome, (De Stud. Script, ad Paul in. ep. 50, al. 103, t. iv, p. 2, p. 574, ed. Bened.) Rufinus, (Expos. Symb. Apost.) Augustin, (De Doctr. Christ. 1. 2, cap. viii, n. 12, 13, 14, torn, iii, p. 1, Benedict.) and Epiphanius, (Panar. h. 76, p. 941.) most accurately agreeing with the present received canon. If this evidence be sufficient to satisfy every candid man, as to the canonicity of the books of the New Testament, ^hat por- tion of the sacred oracles will enable us to conclude respecting the canonicity of the books of the Oltl. Almost al' the books of the Old Testament are quoted in the New, as may be seen by consulting the short appendix to Canne's Bible. The Jews, as I have already stated, did not receive the apocrypha. The passage to that effect from Bellarmine, is as follows : " Omnes libros quos Protestantes non recipiunt," &c. " All the books which the Protestants do not receive, the Jews also do not admit." — Lib. i, De verb. Dei. c. 10, principio et sect ad locum. In the beginning of the sixteenth century, the Compultenstian Polyglot was published by Ximenes, Cardinal and Archbishop of Toledo, in Spain. In the preface to the reader, there is a special admonition given, that the books o^ Tobit, Judith, Wis- dom, Ecclesiasticus and the Maccabees, with the additions to Esther, which are set forth in the Greek only, are not canonical scripture. The words are these — " But the books without the canon, which the church receives rather for the edification of the people, than for confirming the authority of ecclesiastica* dogmas, are given in Greek only, but with a double interpretation." About this time, the Vulgate Bible with Lira's commentary and the ordinary gloss, was printed at B-asil ; in the preface we *ead as follows : "Since there are many, who because they do not bestow attention upon the uacred scriptures, suppose that all the books which are contained in the Bible, are to b3 venerated with like respect, not knowinghow to distinguish between csinonical and uncanonical books, (which the Jews reckon amongst the apoc- rypha) from whence they often appear ridiculous to the learned, therefore, vve have distinguished and distinctly enumerated, first, the canonical books, and afterwards the uncanonical ; between which there is as much difference, aa between that which is certain and that which is dubious ; f »r the canonicaj book s were composed by the dictation of the Holy Spirit, but it is not known gt wicU time, or hy lohat authors the uncanonical^ oi' i7i ether wards j the apocry* 152 THE DOCTRINE OF PURGATORY. phal btoks ivete set forth; but the canonical books are of so great authority, that wliatsoever is there contained, the church holds as true, firmly and with- out question." Permit me to add, that the Redeemer, who pointedly censured the Jews for making void the word of God by their traditions, would still have strongly condemned them, if they had left out of their canon any part of the word of God. With respect to the uncorrupted preservation of the Old Tes- tament, let us bear in mind the great care with which the Jews preserved it. Philo Judceus informs us, that the Jews regarded the Old Testament with such profound veneration, that they even counted the letters, that they discarded a copy which contained a single error, and would rather lose their hves than alter the original in the slightest degree. — (Philo. ap. Euseb. de. Praep. Evang. lib. viii, c. 2.) How could the Old Testament have been adulterated previously to the Saviour ] The Jews were divided into sects. The Talmudists and the Caraites would naturally watch over their common scripture with jealousy. Could the Samaritans have been prevailed upon to unite with the Jews in corrupting the Pentateuch i After the commencement of the Christian era, the Old Testament was in the hands of Christians as well as Jews. Had the Jews left out any portion of the Old Testament, would they not have omitted the passages which condemned the conduct of their leaders, which speak of the dolatries of the people as sanctioned by their priesthood, and which predict their treatment of the Messiah? but these are stiiJ found in the Old Testament. The quotations from the Old Pe^^tament in the Fathers coincide with the same passages a.s they stand in our Bible ; from this fact also we infer, that tho Old Testament has not been corrupted since their time. Tht^ New Testament has been dispersed in different countries. The ^^ariety of sects which have existed, watched it with such jealous care, that none could have mutilated it. We have many ancien' translations. Drs. Kennicott and Bentley have examin^^^d numberless manuscripts, both of the Old and New Testament. Dr. Bentley, speaking of the various readings, says, " I, for my part, and, as I believe, many others, would not lament, if out o\ the old MSS. yet untouched, 10,000 more were faithfully collected : some o( which, without question, would render the text more beautiful, just andexart ; though of no consequence to the main of religion nay, perhaps, whclly syn- onymous in the view of common readers, and quiie insensible in any modem version."- -Philaleuth. Lipsieus. p. 90. These are proofs which must satisfy every candid inquirer, as lo the canonicity and uncorrupted preservation of the sacred volume. I pass on rapidly to my proofs of the authenticity of scripture, Tbe primitive Christian Fathers, and others were compeUent THE JUSTIFICATION OF THE REFORM IVTION. 15J judges as to matters of fact. And can we believe, that so nnany would have deserted the schools of philosophy, enrolled them- selves amongst the persecuted disciples of Jesus Christ, and have suffered martyrdom itself, if they had not been convinced, upon sound evidence, of the authenticity of the facts recorded in the inspired volume ? With respect to the genuineness of the New Testament : contrast the several books ; mark the coin- cidence between the history of the writers and their respective writings ; observe the style of each — the gospel of St. Luke ig of purer Greek than the others — this circumstance is accounted for by the fact, that Luke was a physician, and consequently possessed, it is presumed, some share of learning. We have many Hebraisms and Syriacisms in the New Testament, by which we know that the writers were Jews ; for their thoughts being transfused into Greek, the diction contracted a tincture from the medium through which they passed. On the other hand, but few of the Fathers knew any thing of Hebrew. Allow me here to remark, that in thus appealing to the mere evidence of historical testimony — I am not departing from my principles. The " modus tradendi," the mode of handing doivn, and the " res tradita," the thing handed down, are altogether different. Cardinal Bellarmine mentions the evidences by which a book is known to be canonical, " first, from the testimonials oi the ancients — secondly, from its likeness and agreement with 'he Other books — thirdly, from the common sense and taste ol Chris« tian people." — De Verb. Dei. 1. c. 10. " He that is spiritual judgeth things," says the Apojde Paul. 1 Cor. ii, 15. Let the man of a spiritual mind, read the apocrypha, and his taste and feeling will nauseate much that i& contained therein ; nor will he find the same spirit in jaem which pervades the books of holv writ. Fourth Day. — Monday, April 23. SUBJECT. — " The Justification of the Reformation Admiral Oliver and Christopher Fitzsimon, Esq., iu die chair. Mr. Maguire rose, and called on Mr. Pope to justify the Reformers. Mr. Pope. — Mr. Maguire has called upon me for a justifica- tion of the Reformers : but permit me to remind you, gentJ emeu, \54 THE JUSTIFICATION OF that I stand up on the present occasion to justify the separatioi from the Church of Rome which took place at the commence- ment of the 16th century. 1 wish it to be distinctly understood that I stand not here to vindicate every act of the reformers : it is the separation from the church of Rome which I am to justify. If I were for a moment to admit (which I by no means do) that the reformers were the most abandoned characters upon earth — if, for argument's sake, I were to make this concession, it would not interfere with the question before us, which is — were the reformers justified in separating from the church of Rome in the 16th century? The reformers, His true, had their failings like other men ; but this is to be accounted for, partly from the natural weakness of human nature, and partly from the influence of the system which they had just abandoned. It is difficult for a per- son, long accustomed to habits of indolence and profligacy, instantaneously to engage in the activities of life — at once to shake off the chrysahs, and stand forth in all the beauty and proportion of moral rectitude. Suppose that you had been con- 6ned in a gloomy dungeon for twenty or thirty years ; when first you are led forth to enjoy the light and liberty of heaven, is it not natural to think, that you could not for some time enjoy the perfect exercise of your visual organs 1 I would justify the separation from the church of Rome upon two grounds : the first is, the degraded moral character DF THE CHURCH OF RoME at the time of the Reformation ; and the second is, the unscriptural nature of the peculiar DOCTRINES OF THAT CHURCH. As to the moral character of the church of Rome, I might only refer you to the quotations ^hich I have already adduced ; but to these I beg to add some others. You will bear in mind that they are the testimonies of Roman Calhoiic writers. Cardinal Baronius says, in the close of the 10th century : — *' What then was the face of the Roman church ? How very filthy, when the most powerful and sordid harlots then ruled at Rome, at whose pleasure, sees were changed, and bishoprics were given, and — which is horrible to hear, and most abominable — their gallants were obtruded into the see of Peter, and made false popes ; for who can say they could be lawful Popes, who were obtruded by such harlots without law ? There was no mention of the electic»\ itr consent of clergy ; the canons were silent, the decrees of Popes suppressed, the ancient traditions proscribed, — lust, armed with the secular power, chal- lenged all things to itself.— ****** ♦ t******** What kind of Cardinals, do you imagine, must be then chosen by those rortn- steis, when nothing is so natural as for Hke to beget like? who can doubt, ut they in all thingt^. did consent to those that chose them ? Who will not easdy believe that they animated them and followed their footsteps ? Who understands not that such men must wish that our Lord would have slepf continually, and never have awoke to judgement to take cognizance ot »>6 jx;^ way to Irte eternal ?" Speaking of the Pope, he says— "That by taking from the diocesans and patrons the liberty of presentation to their benefices, he had stocked th-e church with ignorant and wicked men. How great a number of expectants from tliat time came in, not from their studies or the schools, but from the plough and servile arts, to become parish priests, and obtain other benefices, who knew little more of the Latin, than the Arabic tongue ; who could not read, and, which is a shame to speak of, scarce knew Jl from J5, and yet their immorality was greater than their igno» ranee; for, being educated in idleness, without learning, they followed nothing but idleness, sports, banquetings, brawlings and vain talk : hence is it, that in all places we have so many ignorant, miserable, and wicked priests." — Cap. 13. In the next place, he taxes the cardinals with avarice, unclean- ness, simony, and other vices. He says, " That by their means it came to pass, that no man learned in the scrip tures ; no honest, just, and virtuous persons were advanced to high dignities ; but only ambitious persons, flatterers, buffoons, and men corrupted with all vices; so that they were wholly unlearned, or if they knew something of the imperial laws, or gainful sciences, they never thought of God's law, or of the spiritual learning, in which the people were to be instructed to life eternal — that if any person happened to condemn their covetousness and injustice, if he endeavoured by wholesome exhortations, and by preaching to gain souls, if he nieditated more on the laws of God, than those of men, presently every man's teeth were whet against him, and ready to bite him ; and they proclaimed him a fool, and one unworthy of the priesthood. So that now, (saith he) th« study of the scriptures, and the professor of divinity are become ridiculous to ail men." Of the Bishops : '* That in most diocesses, the rectors or the parish priests paid them a cer- tain price for keeping ***** =ic *. That no man was admitted into the clergy or sacred orders, or any ecclesiastical degree, without rewards, which, saith he, is intolerable; that being youths without beards, and scarce got from und^r the ferula, they obtained a bishopric, knowing as little of thai office, as of the mariner's vocation ; that by their filthy examples they led their fiocks into bye ways, which tended to their ruin." — Cap. 1 1, 12, 13. Again, " What should I speak, (saith he) of the learning of the priests, when it i& visible that scarce any of them can read ? they know not words, and much less things: he of them that prayeth, is a barbarian to himself If any man is idle and abhors labour, if he loves luxury, he gets now a days into the clergr^ and then presently he joins himself to the rest of the priests that are volup- tuous, and live according to Epicurus, rather than according to the laws of Christ."— Cap. 25. "Such (saith he) is the abundance of wicked men m all professions, that there is scarcfly one among a thousand, who sincerely doth what his profes- sion doth require ; if there be any sincere, chaste, sober, frugal person, in any college or convent, who doth not walk in the broad way, he is made a ridicu. lous fable to the rest, and is continually called an insolent, mad, and hypo- critical fellow ; so that many who would have been good, had they lived with good and honest men, are drawn by wicked company into their vices, lesi 3iey should suffer the fore-mentio "ed r ;proaches among their companions."— Cap. 86. THE REFORMATION 157 He then concludes with an apostrophe to the Roman churr.h— ^ •* What tliinkest thou of thine own prophecy, the revelations (£ St. John? dost thou not think they do at least, in part, belong to thee: thou hast not surely so wholly lost all shame as to deny this; look, therefore, into it, and read the damnation of the great whore sitting upon many waters, and there con- template thy famous facts, and future ruin^ — Declarat. defect. Virorum Ec( less. James de Paradise, of Cnartres, who wiote a little after the Council of Basil, says. They who have the presidency in councils on the Pope's behalf when they set ihal matters in the council make against their masters and them, what can be expected from them but that they will withstand the decrees of such councils with might and main, e\\herhy dissolving Xhem, or sowing dissensions in them; and so the thing shall remain unfinished, and wo be driven to return to the olc. wilderness of error and of ignorance. Every body knows this to be most true, unless it be some one happily who is not experienced in times past. The tra- gedy which was acted in our a^e in the council of Basil doth sufficiently prove it, as they knew well who have laid down the story before our eyes. — De Sept Btat. Ecclesiae. 1. Of the 16th century, in which the council of Trent was held, and more particularly of the proceedings there, the complaint5» are still more grievous. " Amongst most of the primate? of our religion, whose example the ignorant people ouglit to follow and be conformed to, there is," saith Picus Mirandula, "either none, or veryHttle service of God, no good life, no shame, no modesty. Justice is declined into hatred or favour, piety is almost turned into supersti- tion, and by all orders of men sin is so openly committed, that very often the virtue of the honest man is made his crime, and vice is honoured as a virtue by them who think the unheard of petulancy and long impunity of their vices to be as walls and enclosures to them." — Orat. ad Loen. X, et Concil Lat, habit. A. D. 1512, Open t. xx, p. 1S26. Staephylus, speaking of the destruction of the city of Rome, which happened A. D. 1527, observes — " Whence is it that this happened ? to ivit, because all flesh had corrupted its ways, we were all citizens and inhabitants not of the holy city of Rome, but of Babylon, that wicked city; of which that of the prophet Isaiah is fulfilled, * How IS the faithful city become an harlot.' Let no man think this prophecy hath been fulfilled already, in the destruction of Babylon or of Jerusalem. No ! future things were present to the prophet's eye, and this the prophet hath declared to us, saying, *the daughter of Zion shall be left desolate, as in the wasting of the enemy.' St. John doth in the Revelations tell us, the daughter of Zion is not Jerusalem but Rome ; and his description of her makes it plain. *For the woman which thou sawest (saith he) is that great city which hath dominion over the kings of the earth,' that is spiritual dominion. She sits, saith he upon seven hills, which properly agrees to Rome, which, upon this account, is styled Septicollis. She is full, saith he, of the names of blasphemy — she is the mother of uncleanness, fornications, and abominations, which are in the earth ; than which words no more particular demonstration of the city can be requisite, seeing these iniquities do almost generally reign, yet here they have their seat and empire. Orat. habit, ad auditores Rotae IVIaii 15, A. D* I might adduce many other quotations, but I shall bring tot- ward only two more. Johannes de Eych, Episcopus Eystatensis, speaking of the corruption of the times of the Reformation, says 14 158 THE JUSTIFICATION OF " The perverted manners by which almost all the ecclesiastical oi^er u •tained, so cloud the senses of all, that not only they do not perceive the word of truth with their ears, but even despisinij amendment of life, they resist then own salvation even with arms." — Prima ^pistola, P. M. 2. Franciscas de Victoria, observes, that, " The Church could neither bear her disorders nor their remedies." — Ec clesia nee mala sua, nee remedia, ferre posse. — Prelect 4, prop. 23. In addition to these testimonies from Roman Catholic authori- ties, I beg leave to observe, that at the time of the Reformation as my friend is well aware, there was an universal cry for a REFORMATION OF ABUSES. I am now come to my second point, namely, the unscriptural nature of the peculiar doctrines of the church of Rome. First, as to Tradition. — [Here Mr. Maguire interrupted Mr. Pope. I came here to defend three points of my religious creed. I attack but three of your^s. I will not allow you to go into others. Mr, Pope replied, that the question before them was the jus- tification of the Reformation ; and in order to justify it, it was necessary for him to enter briefly into the doctrines of the church of Rome. Mr. Maguire. You should defend yourself, and not attack me. I appeal to the written regulations. Mr. Pope. I stand on my defence, and am to show that the reformers were justified in separating from the church of Rome ; from the state of that church, both with regard to morals ant doctrine. Mr. Maguire appealed to the chair : and after a consultation. Mr. Lawless stated the opinion of the chair, namely, that Mr. Pope had a right to state whatever reasons occurred to his judg- ment, as having called for the Reformation, and on the other hand that Mr. Maguire had a right to prove the scriptural cha- racter of the doctrines opposed, in order to show, that the Rt^formation was not called for on that account.] Mr. Pope resumed. — Gentlemen, I shall take a rapid view oi the doctrines of the church of Rome, in order to prove that di5 reformers were justified in separating from her communion in that ground. TRADITION, The church of Rome says — "All saving truth not being contained in the holy scripture, but partly m the scripture, and partly in unwritten traditions; scripture and tradition are to be received and venerated with like piety and reverence, " pari pietatii afiectv ac revorentia." — Concil Trident Seas. 4, Decret de can. Script THE REFORMATION. 159 The Douay Bible says — "You shall not. add lo the word that I speak to you." — Deutir ch. 2. ** Every word of God is fire-tried ; add not any thing to his words, lest thov be reproved and found a liar." — Prov. xxx ch. 5, 6. " For I testify to every one that heareth the words of the prophecy of this book : If any man shall add to these things, God shall add unto hitr thf pia=rues written in this book." — Apoc. xxii ch. 18. "The holy scriptures can instruct thee to salvation by the faith which »s iir Christ Jesus : all scripture inspired of God, is profitable to teach, to remove, to correct, to instruct in justice : that the man of God may be perfect, furnished to every good work." — 2 Tim. iii ch. 15, 17. " You have made void the commandment of God for your tradition.'' — Matt XV ch. 6. I find, therefore, that tradition is condemned, and that scrip- ture is able " to instruct unto salvation, to teach, to reprove, to correct, and to instruct in justice, that the man of God may be perfect, furnished to every good work." I am desirous of knovv^- ing, if the scriptures be imperfect, by what process they can make a man perfect in every good work ? READING THE SCRIPTURES. The church of Rome intimate, that it is not for the people to read the sacred scriptures — Indiscriminata lectio sacrae scrip- turfB interdicte est — and her practice abundantly confirms the information. Cone. Trid. Sess. 4, Uecret. de can. Scrip : Ind. lib. prohib. Reg. 4. The Douay Bible says — " Come near, ye Gentiles, and hear, and hearken ye people: let the earth hear, and all that is therein ; the world, and every thing that cometh fortlr of it." — Isaiah, xxxiv, 1. And adds in the 16th verse — " Search te diligently in the book of the Lord and read." " Search the scriptures." — John, v, 39. Our next subject is PRIVATE JUDGMENT. Certainly my friend has thrown new light on the extent to which the church of Rome permits the exercise of private judg- ment : however, I cannot avoid thinking, that the doctrine of the church is in substance this — believe implicitly what tbe church tells you. The Douay Bible says, " Prove all things ; hold fast that which is good." — 1 Thess. v, 21. " Try the spirits, if they be of God." — 1 John, iv, 1, IMAGE VTORSHIP. " It is latofid to express any person of the most holy Trinity by certain sifpti none being so rude as to think that the divinity is expressed by that image, But let the pastors teach that by then, are declared some properties or actiont which are attributed to God. The images and relics of Christ and the sainlf 160 THE JUSTIFICATION OF are to be duly honoured and venerated ; and in this vehefatibn, those ani Venerated which are represented by them.'- — Trent Catech. part iii, ch. S» p, 302, Dub. 1816. Cone. Trid. Sess. 25, de Invocat. The Douay Bible says — " Thou shalt not make to thyself any graven thing, nor the likeness of anj thing that is in heaven above, or in the earth beneath, nor of those things thai are in the waters under the earth ; thou shalt not adore them nor serve them." — Exod. XX, 4, 5 ; See Deut. iv, 15, 16. Acts, xvii, 29. All I ask the church of Rome to do is this — to write the 2nd commandment under every image and picture, which are objects of worship ; and the common sense of the votaries of the church of Rome will rise up and declare, that such a practice is directly opposed to the Word of God. MEDIATORS, The church of Rome says, *' There are other mediators of intercession in heaven besiaes Jesus Chnsl; such as angels and saints and especially, the Virgin Mary, who is the mothei of mercy and advocatress of the faithful ; and it is good and profitable to in- voke them, and to have recourse to their prayers and help." — Cone. Tid. Sess 25, de Invocat &c. The Douay Bible says — "Jesus saith to him, I am the truth and the life; no man cometh to the Father but by me." — John, xiv, 6, see 13th verse. " There is ONE Mediator of God and man, the man Christ Jesus." — 1 Tim. ii, 5. " Jesus is able also to save for ever them that come to God by him, always living to make intercession for us." — Hebrews, vii, 25. We have already had the subject of purgatory brought before us ; and I am inclined to think, that some who believed impHcitly in that doctrine, are shaken in the implicit character of theii faith in it. GOOD WORKS. A canon of the church of Rome, quoted on a fornjer day, may be thus condensed — "The good works of justified persons are truly and properly meritorioui and duly worthy of eternal life."— Cone. Trid. Sess. 6, cap. 16, can. 32. The Douay Bible says, "By grace you are saved througn faith, and that not of yourselves, foi \\ .'§ the gift of Goa; not oficm^ks, that no man may glory." — Eph. ii ch. 8. "The wages of sin is death, but the grace of God life everlasting in Chri«| lesiis our Lord." Or more plainly, "The gift of God is eternai life, through Jesus Christ our Lord.'*- Rom. vi, 23. "When you have done all things haX are commanded you, say: we an miprtfitable servants ; we have done that which we ought to do." — Luke KVii, 10. THE REFORMATION. 161 I need not now speak on transubstantiatic n- -that %^l be oui subject of discussion to-n)orrow, you will then see that thai doctrine can obtain no support from Holy Writ. I pray you to judge from this brief contrast, between the doctrines of the church of Rome and those of the Bible, whether the reformers were not called upon to separate from such a ci>'n»nunion. But my quarrel with the church of Rome, like that of the f formers, is touching that grand tenet which she has labour#^d o set aside, justification by faith — acceptance at the bar of God m dependance solely on the atoning blood of the Saviour. 1 trace up the principal errors of the church of Rome to ignorance or rejection of this fundamental article of the Christian religion. Would she, for instance, hold that good works entitle to eternal lite, if she believed that •* by the deeds of the law no flesh could be justified," (Rom. iii, 20,) and that the sinner could be saved only by the obedience unto death of the Lord Jesus Christ? How could the church of Rome maintain the doctrine of supere- rogation, if she acknowledged that " every mouth is shut and the whole world brought in guilty before God," (Rom. iii, 19,) and that "cursed is every one that continueth not in all things written in the book of the law to do them?" — (Gal. iii, 10.) Did sl>?3 believe the sacrifice of Christ to be an all-suiBcient atonemer*,, would she think a purgatorial fire necessary? If she knew thu< the blood of Christ cleanseth from all sin, would she hold that the soul stands in need of an additional purgation? Could sKf» for a moment entertain the notion of repeating the sacrifice of Christ, if He w^ere acknowledged by her as having made ]fy "one oblation of himself once for all," an end of sin, reconcile »► tion for iniquity, and as having brought in everlasting righteoi ^ ness? This grand doctrine the reformers proclaimed, and for the maintaining of it they stood out from the church of Rome. Luther deemed it the " articulus stantis vel cadentis Ecclesiae.'^ and I say, let this doctrine be preached in all its fulness, and w«» shall plant a lever beneath the fortrcvsses of Babylon ; and soon shall we hear her sentence issuing from the throne of the Eter« nal, " Down with her, down with her, even to the ground." Such are the reasons upon which I vindicate the Reformation It is not my intention to justify every act of the reformers. If i should wish to recriminate, Mr. Maguire nmy be assured, that I have it in my power, in turn, to place in the most awful point of view, the characters of those who are recognized as the heads of the church of Rome. There is, however, this wide distinc- tion — I do not acknf)wledge Luther as the head of my church : Christ, the Lord over all, is the head of his mystical body ; 1 call no man master in the strict sense of the tn example of faith without charity. St. James says, " What shall it profit, my brethren, if a man say he hath faith, but hath not works ? Shall faith be able to save him? ii, 14. "For as the body without the spirit is dead ; so also faith without works is dead." — Ibid. 26. If every thing be contained in the scriptures, why has not Mr. Pope shown me texts to prove the procession of the Holy Ghost — baptism, with the sign of the cross, &c. Why was it decreed by the Apostles, at the council held in Jerusalem, that it appeared good to them to abstain from all blood ? I believe Mr. Pope has no objection to take some good gravy occasionally. In doing so, he goes in opposition to a positive command of the Apostles. I have produced a commandment of our Saviour foi washing the feet, which taken juxta tenorem verborum, is as posi- tive a commandment as ^ny to be found in scripture. Mr. Pope has endeavoured to show, that this was applicable to hot coun • tries, as if the commandments of the Lord were to be adopted according to the different temperatures of difl^erent countries, and not applied to all indiscriminately. Is it not obvious to common sense, that Christ intended his commandments should be observed in cold as well as in hot countries ? I called on my opponent to produce proofs from scripture, authorizmg ths baptism of infants. But I should recollect that he throws bap- tism overboard. He adheres to justification by faith only. 1 wou:"a agree fully in the dogma with him if the word *' only*' were removed. For what, I would ask, did God give free-will to man? And why did our blessed Redeemer enjoin the keep ing of the commardments as a condition for salvation? THE REFORMATION. 165 "But if thot vil. enter into life, keep the comriandments,"- -Matt Dhap. xiv, 17. I now come to Mr. Pope's rule of faith. He will say, as he has said, that it is contained in the holy scriptures aloM. I beg tc ask my opponent, if the scriptures alone be his rule of faith, is it not necessary for us to examine all the inspired books which have been written ] Does he believe it necessary to know the whole Bible, or a portion of it, for salvation 1 If it be only lecessary to know a portion of the Bible, I call upon him to produce his authority from scripture for that belief. Mr. Pope. — It may be well to read and know the whole scriptures, if a person have the opportunity ; but I believe that a rxian can be saved without reading the whole Bible. Mr. Maguire. — Show me a text to justify that belief? Mr. Pope. — When the Apostle was asked, what shall I do tc b ) saved I he answered — " Believe in the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved." Acts, xvi, 31. At one period, only the Old Testament was written. Mr. Maguire. — When it only was written, no person was called upon to found his sole rule of faith upon it. Mr. Pope. — I conceive if a person have the opportunity, it is right to know all the scriptures. But a person can be saved without knowing the whole volume. Mr. Maguire. — So, if a person read the Old Testament merely, and is not acquainted with the New Testament, he may be saved 1 Mr. Pope. — I will make no such concession. Mr. Maguire. — I would much rather you would give us texts of scripture, and not mere assertion. I never heard of so loose a doctrine. I shall now reduce Mr. Pope to a dilemma. — If the scriptures alone be his rule of faith, I ask is it not necessary, in that case, to examine all the canonical books that have been written 1 Now, all the canonical books that have been written, are not to be found in any part of the known world. God would Lave preserved all the inspired writings, had he intended that the scriptures alone should be the rule of our faith ; but God has not preserved all the inspired books of scripture, for not less than twenty have perished ; therefore God did not intend them as the only rule of faith — Mr. Pope must admit, according to his principles, that it is necessary to examine all the canonical books — for if not, how could he ascertain his rule of faith ? there (66 THE JUSTIFICATION OF might happen to be in these books, which are lost, or which he should pass over, texts opposed to his doctrine, and which per- haps expressly taught that the rule of faith was not in the scrip- tures alone. If, on the other hand, Mr. Pope shall contend that it is only necessary to know a portion of the Bible, I call upon him to prove that to me by a positive text of scripture. Now, again, either all the inspired books that have been written are necessary to form the rule of our faith, or only r part is necessary. If Mr. Pope shall assert that all are necessary, then the scriptures are no rule of faith, since all the scriptures are not to be found. But if Mr. Pope say, that only apart is necessary, let him produce a text of s.d a passage from Cyprian's letter to Antonian — " It is one thi.ig to be waiting for pardon, another to attain glory," &c, &c. It has nothing to do with purgatory. The church had relaxed some penitential censures against those who had fallen in per- secution ; and St. Cyprian was defending this measure, and proving that the state of the martyrs entering at once into ^\oYy was so much superior to the miseries of the lapsed, who were anxiously expecting re-admission into the church, and must feel anxiety about a future state, that there was no danger to be anticipated from the relaxation — this he shows by adding "it is one thing to expect with anxiety the judgment of the Lord in the day of judgment — another to be crowned by the Lord." Ri- galtius, a Roman Catholic commentator, gives this explan^iiion. Further, in reference to the Fathers. Most of the quotations adduced by Mr. Maguire do not, I imagine, support the doctrine of purgatory : they refer to oblations for the dead ; but those oblations for the dead were not offered for souls in purgatory. In the primhive church a practice existed of making thank€'. givings and offerings for those who had departed in the faith. As Mr. Maguire has quoted a passage from Sir Edwin Sandys, he can have no objection to my reading an extract or two from the same author. Sir Edwin gives us the following general view of the church of Rome, p. 35 : — " This being the main ground work of their policy ; and the general meana to build and establish it in the minds of all men ; the particular ways they hold to ravish all affections, and to fit each humor (which, their jurisdiction and power being but persuasive and voluntary, they principally regard), are well nigh infinite ; there being not any thing either sacred or profane, no virtue nor vice almost, no things of how contrary condition soever; wtiich they make not in some sort to serve that turn ; that each fancy may be satisfied, and each appetite find what to feed on. Whatsover either wealth can sway with the lovers, or voluntary poverty with the despisers, of the world ; what honour with the ambitious ; what obedience with the huuible ; what great employment with stirring and mettled spirits; what perpetual quiet with heavy and restive bodies; what content the pleasant nature can take in pastimes and jollity ; what contrariwise the austere mind in discipline and rigour; what love either chastity can raise in the pure, or voluptuousness in the dissolute ; what allurements are in knowledge to draw the conttmplative, dr in actions a" state to possess the practic dispositions, what with the 1/2 THE JUStl^ICATION OF hopefw orcrogative of reward can work ; what errors, doubts, and dangen with til. fearful ; what change of vows wfth the rash, of estate with the incon- stant; t/hat pardons with the faulty, or suppHes with the defective; what iniradcj> with the credulous; what visions with the fantastical; what gor- geournt is of shows with the vulgar and simple ; what multitude ofceremoniea (\'ith tht superstitous and ignorant; what prayer with the devout, what with the chaiitable works of piety; what rules of higher perfection with elevated affections ; what dispensing of breach of all rules with men of lawless condi- toP6: in sum, what thing soever can prevail with any man either for himself tt) j^ursue, or at least- wise to love, reverence, or honour m another (for even therein also man's nature receiveth great satisfaction), the same is found with Ihem, not as in other places of the world, by casuality blended without order, aiid of i]l3cessity, but sorted in great part into several professions, counte- nanced with reputation, honoured with prerogatives, facilitated with provisions, and yearly maintenance, and either (as the better things) advanced Mith expectation of reward, or borne with, how bad soever, with sweet and silent permission. What pomp, what riot, to that of their cardinals? what severity of life comparable to their hermits and capuchins? who wealthier than their prelates? who poorer by vow and profession than their mendicants? On the one side of the street a cloister of virgins, on the other a sty of courtezans with public toleration ; this day all in masks, with all looseness and foolery: to-morrow all In processions, whipping themselves till the blood follow; on one door an excommunication, throwing to hell all transgressors : on another a jubilee, or full discharge from all transgressions. \Vho learneder in all kind of sciences than their Jesuits? What thing more ignorant than their ordinary mass-priests? What prince so able to prefer his servants and followers as the Pope, and in so great multitude? Who able to take deeper or readier revenge on his enemies? What pride equal unto his, making kings kiss his pantofle? what humility greater than his, shriving himseii daily on his knees to an ordinary priest? W ho difficulter in despatch of causes to the greatest ? who easier in giving audience to the meanest? Where greater rigour in the world in acting the observation of the church laws? where less care or conscience of the commandments of God ? To taste flesh on a Friday, where suspicion might fasten, were a matter for the inquisition ; whereas, on the other side, the Sunday is one of their greatest market-days. To conclude: never state, never governm.ent in the world so strangely com- p».cted of infinite contrarieties^ all tending to entertain the several humours (i all men, and to w^ork what kind of effects soever they shall desire; where ii^our and remissness, cnielty and lenity, are so combined, that, with neglect ^i/the church, to stir aught is a sin unpardonable ; whereas with duty towarda the church, and by intercession for her allowance, with respective attendance of her pleasure, no law almost of God or nature so sacred, which, one way or other, they find not means to dispense with, or at least-wise permit th^ breach of, by connivance and without disturbance." — Page 34, et seq. " EuropaB Speculum, or, a View or Survey of the state of Religion in the western parts of the w^orld : wherein the Roman Religion, and pregnant policies of the church of Rome to support the same, are notably displayed ; with some other memorable discoveries and commemorations." — Lond. 1632. Sir Edwin Sandys gives the following description of the state cf religion in Italy in his time : — *'The whole country is strangely overflown and overborne with wickedness^ «vilh fiithiness of speech, with beastliness of actions ; both governors and subjects — 'both priests and friars, each striving as it were with other in an impiidentness therein ; even so far forth, that what elsewhere would not be tolerated, is there in high honour — what in some other places even a loos« person would be asham^ to confess, their priests and friars refrain not >peiij) to pmctiBe.'*— P. 19. THE REFORMATION. 173 Again, p. 160. "It doth grieve me to .^peak, yea, the thoii«rht of it mus* needs bring horror and detestation : what a multitude of Atheists do brave it in all places — there most, where the papacy is most in his prime — what renouncers of God, blasplicmers of liis Son, villanizers of his saints, and scorners of his servi';e: who think it a glorious grace to adore the king of a country; but to name or think reverently of the Creator of the world, to proceed from a timerous base-mindedness and abjectness." Sir Edwin Sandys also describes the state of religion in Spain in his time. Though Mr. Maguire objected to the authority of Mr. White, he cannot refuse to admit that of Sir Edwin Sandys. " The next is Spain, reputed wholly the Pope's also, as having been a long time governed by the most devoted king, and longer curbed in b} the rnrst cruel inquisition that ever the world had for the upholding of that sway." * * "For a kingdom that hath the sirname of Cati^'^'' • ' <. greater dangf r in the w^orld, either wholly or in great part to ^ciot on Christianity, unless grace from above and better wisdom to stay the iiicrease of those pestilent cankers of Mahomedanism and Judaism, which threaten the final decay, and 3ating out of Christianism." — Pp. 163, 164. " There is in Spain a sort of people of the Marrany, as they term them, who are baptized Jews and Moors, and many of them in secret wilhal circnmcised Christians. "All which, although conforming themselves in some sort of outwaid show unto the Christian religion, yet are thought in heart to be utterly averse from it, and to retain an inward desire to return to that superstition, from which their ancestors by rigour and terror were driven ; and the Jews will say in Italy that there come divers Spaniards to them to be circumcised there, and 50 away to Constantinople to plant in the east." — Pp. 164, 165. I shall not occupy your time with other quotations. You will doubtless ask, how could such passages occur in a work which apparently advocated the church of Rome. Sir Edwin Sandys gave the statement lohich J\Ii\ JMaguire read from his works merely as the allegations of Roman Catholic ecclesiastics in support of their system.* You shall see whether this charge is not founded upon fact. In page 24, Sir Edwin Sandys begins a sketch of the arguments which Roman Catholics employ in advocating the church of Rome ; and after having given the sketch, he adds in page 33 : " This is the main course of their persuading at this day, whereby they seek to estabhsh that former foundation: in the unfolding whereof i havt been the longer, because trial hath taught me, tha* not by some men's private election, but, as it should seem, by common order, direction, or consent, they have relinquished all other courses, and hold them to this, as the most efiec tual means, in the way of persuasion, to insinuate their desire, and to work their design." Here is *' iniquitas quotationis." — Hear it gentlemen ! Afler this expose, 1 ask, is Mr. Maguire justitied in boasting, as he has done, of his quotations having been takec from the origmals ? « A debate on the above quotation having arisen, viz. whether Mr. Maguire quoted it, as put hyjothetically, as it is in the work from which he took it, namely, F' etcher's Comparative View, or not ; some gentlemen affirming that he did, and some that h« did not— it was agreed that the tex* s lould stand, ai d that this note should be ad l«d. 15* I7i THE JUSTIFICATION OF i have brought him to one original, and you have now scca» bow ill his quotation bears the test of such an examination ! I come more immediately to the question, and I call distincilj upon Mr. Maguire to do so. He is, perhaps, reserving some yeemingly plausible arguments for the last half hour, when hs knows that no opportunity will be afforded me of replying. I call on him to reUnquish this ruse de guerre. He may be satisfied with the manoeuvre, in which he succeeded the first day, when, by speaking at one time but a quarter of an hour, he deprived me of the advantage of closing the business of the day ; while he had an opportunity of addressmg the meeting in speeches ex- ceeding by one those which I delivered. I now call on him to come like a man .o ... question : let him not raise a dust, and then hide the subject behind the cloud which he has created. I have shown that the reformers were justified in their separ- ation from the church of Rome, by the debased moral condition of that church as well as by the unscriptural nature of her doc- trines. Mr. Maguire has asserted, that my quotations, as to the immoial character of the church of Rome, were from Protestant writers. I beg leave to state, that the authors whose testimonies 1 brought forward, were Roman CnlhoUcs. Let Mr. Maguire show that his church was not in error : let him show that her doctrines were scriptural : and then I shall admit that the refor- mers were not justified in separating from her communion. Mr. Maguire will talk much of the evils of concession, of private judgment, and fanaticism, which, he will maintain, were exhib- ited at the time of ihe Reformation. We shall hear, doubtless, of the character of Henry VHI, of Luther, and of others ; but I now say to Mr. Maguire, come to Ihe pointy and do not evad^ the question. You stand before an enlightened assembly : the PEOPLE of Ireland are becoming daily wiser; they will see, believe me, on whose side sophistry exists, and will distinguish empty unfounded assertions from soUd proofs; nor will they suffer boasts to pass for argument. Let Mr. Maguire then meet me on the point at issue. I stand ready to vindicate the Reformation. Mr. Maguire. — I never before saw the superiority of ck»se argument so triumphantly displayed — has Mr. Pope ever glanced at the questions which I put to him so repeatedly and so pointedly? I inquired from him the scriptural foundation upon which a Protestant can build an act of faith : / expected — you expected^ no doubt, a distinct answer to the question — has ht dared to give it / Protestants and Catholics, I beseech you to look to that. Let the/ar/ he recorded and go forth to ihe world. He has quoted fron\ Fra Paolo, who was no Catholic, and whom Biflhop Burnett calls a Calvinistic heretic. The Jansenists hav« THE REFORMATION. 174 fteen condemned by the Catholic church, and it is not fair to quote them against me. The only CathoUcs to whom he re- ferred, were Baronius and Bishop Fisher. Protestants and CathoHcs, I again beseech you to remark, that my opponent has not attempted to answer the arguments which I addressed to him relative to the scriptures : he has indeed made an eloquent harangue upon the necessity of the Reformation — I shall satisfy you on that subject before I have done. It is foolish to endeavour to escape from my direct ar* guments by such an artifice. I may remark to Mr. Pope, that in quoting historians, he should resort to those of approved character, and well established veracity. I repeat my challenge to Mr. Pope to answer the arguments which I brought forward •elative to the scriptures. I spoke of the scriptures which have •een lost: Mr. Pope attempted to throw discredit on them, — le said they were mere histories, and not inspired. I ask, ivould they have been referred to as holy books, in the genuine and inspired writings and recommended there, if they were not equallij inspired 1 If they be mere histories, as Mr. Pope would have you believe, then the inspired writers must have been guilty of fraud in referring to them. Mr. Pope includes in his sweeping denunciation, the two epistles of St. Paul, which I proved to have been lost. Will Mr. Pope say, that they too were mere histories 1 — Will he dare to dispute their inspiration ? — Mr. Pope, one would think, wishes to convert religion and scripture into mere history. I shall indulge in no rhetorical manoeuvres : nor will I amaze you with high sounding language, instead of defensive arguments — I shall adhere to close disputation. 1 appeal to the judgments of the candid and the impartial. Have I not shown the fallacy of the few arguments advanced by my Reverend opponent? Mr. Pope has put a curious interpre- tation on the remarkable words of St. Paul ; *' If I have all faith, so that I could remove mountains, and have not charity, I am nothing." Mr. Pope, says that this is merely a faith that 2an work miracles. Surely, if the faith which could move nountains, and work miracles, could not save a man unless he Aad charity ; a fortiori, the faith which could not perform mira- cles, would not save a man without charity. He says, that God could not contradict himself; and he gave us an eloquent de- scription of the wonderful attributes of the Deity — I never gave utterance to the absurd and blasphemous opinion, that God could contradict himself. Mr. Pope, I repeat, is only raising castles in the air for the mere purpose of throwing them dow^n again. He has returned to his doctrine of internal evidence— - he says, that God Almighty knew that the great mass of man- kind would not be able to answer the sophisti.es of the Deists 1T6 THE JUSTIFICATION OP and Infidels ; that owing to their ignoTcince, their habits, and their want of opportunities, they would be unable of themse vea to remove the objections, which the ingenuity of the unbelievel would throw in their way. This is the most powerful argument that could be urged, to prove that God did not intend this holy book to form the sole rule of man's faith : God always, in his infinite wisdom, adapts the means to the end — If Mr, Pope'a doctrine were true, would the Almighty have adapted the meani to the end? Mr. Pope's doctrine directly militates against the attributes of the Deity.- — T again call upon him to tell me >>hat particular poi^tion of scripture is sufficient for salvation^ and to found his opinion, not upon reasonings, but upon a positive and direct text of scripture. Gentlemen, in proceeding to discuss the Reformation, I shall, at the outset, lay down two principles upon which I found my arguments. My first principle is this — that God never, in any 'nstance, employed notorious characters, savage and ferocious men, immoral, and self-degraded wretches, to reform religion. My second proposition is, that the reformers of the sixteenth century were men of that description. If I prove both these propositions, and neither, I imagine, can be leasonably disputed, I shall bring this argument to a speedy conclusion. Be pleased to observe, that in all history we read of no reformers of reli gion but Moses and the prophets, Jesus Christ, and the Apos- ties, who were the agents and instruments under Christ. Mosea may, in the strict sense of the word, be called the reformer of tho, Patriachal religion. Religion had been preserved to his days by the tradition of the patriarchs. If we revert to the patriarchs, we will find God preserving religion, not through the instrumen- tality of bad and proverbially corrupt men, but of such charac* ters as Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, Stc. For the space of two (housand years, religion was preserved by the patriarchs, before a line of scripture was written. Religion was then wafied down by their tradition, pure, simple, and uncorrupted. But the time arrived when the old religion was to be built upon a more per- manent basis, to be reformed, and enlarged. Moses was selected by God for that purpose, to combine the traditions of the patri- archs into one settled law. Moses proved his extraordinary mission by the performance of manifest and splendid miracles. The prophets too proved their divine mission by unquestioned miracles. When our Saviour came to perfect the Jewish reli- gion, do we not read of the splendid mij acles performed by him in attestation of his character as a retormer? Did not the Redeemer declare, that if he had not performed such miracles, the Jews who disbelieved, would have had no sin in themi Did he not emphatically sav, that if he had not performed such mira THE REFORMAIION 177 ties, thev woiild have been justified in putting him to death 1 I Reversal I, that God granted infallibility to the Jewish synagogue, but I affirm, that it never, de facto erred till the prophecies were accomplished, and the Redeemer came, who then established hia church, to which he promised infffllibility in express terms. If, (hen, the Jewish church, to which infallibility was not promised, did not err till the coming of Christ, a fortiori^ the church which Christ established, and to which be expressly promised infalli- bility will never err. Hear the words of Christ himself : "^ The church is the pillar and ground of truth."—" The gates of hell shall Acver prevail against it." — " He that will not hear the church, let him be unto tliee as the heathen and the publican." — "I will send you the spirit of truth to teach you all truth." — " I will send yoir another Paraclete, to abide with YOU FOR EVER." — " Yc are the light of the world." — '* Ye are the salt of the earth." — '* A city built upon a mountain crnnot be concealed." It is Mr. Pope who would make ^he God of Heaven contra- dict himself. As the poor and ignorant man could never oi himself ascertain the inspiration of the scriptures, nor discover therein Mr. Pope's rule of faith — God appointed the living authority of the church to guide and dir:a ?enlris longius fugat Diabolum quam sacra scriptura ! !" The abov 3 are to be seen by any inquirer in the original German. Dr. Heylin, a most learned Protestant historian, gives the fcilo\*ing account of the introduction of the new Lutheran doc tilnes into Dantzick (in his Cosmogony, p. 148 :) "Danlzick was the first town in the kingdom of Poland which gave en trance lo the dv)ctrines of Luther, Anno 1525, but in so tumultuous a manner, that they who lavoured his opinions, deposed the old common-council men. and created new ones of their own — prophaned the Churches^ robbed them or their ornaments, and shamefully abusea the priests and religious persons? — abolished the mass — and altered all things at their pleasure. But by th« commg of the King, they grew somewhat quieter, lea^mg tlie convent oi Black Friars to two nuns, who still enjoy the exercise of their religion" 202 THE JUSTIFICATION OF The sBL^c writer sa3^s, (Ibidem, Book II, pag« 36.) " Whilst the Lutherans were thus playing their game, there started up Another party, begun at first by Zuinglius, amongst the Switzers. These, not communicating councils, went two different ways, especially in the points of consubstantiation and the real presence. Not reconciled in their times, nor like to be agreed upon by tlieir followers. For Calvin, rising into the esteem and pl-ace of Zuinglius, added some texts of his own to the former doctrines, touching predestination, free-will, &c, by which the differences were widened, and the breach made irreparable: this course being followed on CRch sfde with great impatience, as if they did not strive so much for truth MS tictnii^.'*' Agairky the sr^me vv'riter says, (page 136.) "In the V'iar 1528, religion being altered, in a tumult of the people in the Jaiton of Beine, near adjoining to Geneva, Viret and Farrellus, two Zuing- tian preachers, did endeavour it in Geneva also. But finding that the bishop and clergy did not like their doings, they screwed themselves into the people, and by their aid, in a popular tumult, compelled the bishop and his clergy to abandon the town. Nor did they only in that tumult alter the doctrine and orders of Che church before established, but changed the government of the state also, disclaiming all allegiance both to duke and bishop, and standing on their own liberty as a free commonwealth. And though all this was done by Viret and Farrellus, before Calvin's coming to that city, which was not till 1536, yet, being come, no man was forwarder than he to approve the zction. And that rather than their discipline should not be admitted, and the episcopal government destroyed in all the churches of Christ, they were resolved to depose kings, ruin kingdoms, and to subvert the fundamental con' stitution of all civil states.^^ It cannot be inappropriate to give a short account of these principal reformers. liUther was taken suddenly ill after eating a hearty supper, and died in the night. Zuinglius was killed in a rebellion excited by himself and his party, against the Catholic cantons, anno 1531. Qllcolampadius was found dead in his bed, before Luther met his fate ; the latter did not hesitate to declare, that he was strangled by the devil. — (Lib. de Miss. Priv. et Unit. Sacr. Tome vii, p. 250.) Calvin, in the year 1564, died of a dreadful complication of distempers, which Catholics and some Protestants assure us he bore so ill, that he expired in despair, blaspheming God, and invoking the devib. See Bol- Beck, in his book of Calvin's Life. — Schlusselburg\ a learned Lutheran, in Theol. Calviniana, printed anno 1594, p. 72. — Herenius, a Calvinistic preacher, declares, tha.' he was an eye witness of Calvin's tragical end, and that he d.'ed in despair, of a most filthy and stinking disease. — See his L^ber. de vita Calvini. The following testimony is given by Melarcthon to the char- acter of the reformers. It is taken from his Comm.entary on St. Matt. 6th ch. " It is plain, that in these countries (he speaks of the countries which em- braced Luther's reformation) men's whole concern is almost about banquet- ling, drunkenness, and carousing. And so strangely barbarous is the people, Uiat most men are persuaded that if they do but fast one day, they miist dif li?e following night." THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 203 So you perceive, gentlemen, fasting was not then exploded. f may remark, in reference to some arguments of Mr. Pope on the subject, that the Albigenses and Waldenses retained to the last l\\€ sacrifice of the Mass. They, therefore, cannot be legitimately numbered amongst the reformers. I could quote many foul and scandalous passages from the works of Calvin, and other reformers, in proof of the happy improvement in moials and religion, which they introduced by throwing off tho yoke of what they called a superstition, and giving full scope tc (be licentious and desolating principles of the Reformation. Jacobus Andreas (in Luke 21) says, " The other part of the Germans, viz; the Protestants, give due place to tiie preaching of the word of God ; but no amendment of manners is found am( ng them ; on the contrary, we see them lead an abominable voluptuous beastly life; instead of fasts, they spend whole nights and days in revelry and drunkenness." Cranmer was a good example of the celibacy of the reformers — he brought his wife over with him in a chest to England, but through a mistake in the landing it, the sailors turned up the wrong end of the chest ; the consequence was, that its fair inmate was forced to cry out for relief, and the hypocrital hus- band was obliged to expose her to the public view. I have many other quotations here ; as to the character of the modern reform- ers, but I find I have not time at present to read them to you. Fifth Day — Tuesday, April 24. SUBJECT. — " The doctrine of Transubstantiatton.'' Admiral Oliver and John Dillon, Esq., in the Chair. Mr. Pope. — 1 beg to call upon Mr. Maguire for proofs of the doctrine of Transubstantiation. Ml Maguire. — Gentlemen, as i* was agreed upon yester- day, not to recur to the question of the Reformation, I shall at once pro eed to the very important subject of this day's discus* sion — namely, Transubstantiation. It is a question of the mosl solemn complexion, and I trust that although my friend Mr. Pope will be obhged, by his established principles to differ from me on this occasion, that he will indulge in no useless and pro- PHANE sarcasms against a doctrine which I shall prove to havp been openly established for eighteen hundred years. I sincerely trust, that in the < ourse of this day's discussion, my friend wUi 204 THE DOCTRINE OF TRAN9U 3STAN TIATION. not make use of any expression, whicb would be, according ta my principles, an absolute blasphemy against the Son of God. If the doctrine which i undertake to defend be that which was weached by the Apostles and received by them from Christ, then it would be manifest blasphemy to utter any sarcasm against this great and fundamental lenet. Betore I enter upon my direct proofs, I shall beg leave to draw your attention to one important fact. We are told that Melchisedech, a priest of the Most High, ' made an offering of bread and wine ;" and St. Paul assures us that Christ " was a high priest for ever according to the order of M.elchesidech,'*^ Now, if the same offering or sacrifice be not continued till the consummation of ages, Christ could not be a priest ybr ever according to the order of Melchesidech. I could prepare your minds with further prefatory observations, but the dogma which I maintain is so clear and so sustainable, that I proceed at once to my direct arguments. First, then, I refer you to the sixth chapter of St. John, where our Saviour draws a comparison between the bread which he promised to bequeath for the life of the world and the manna which came down from heaven to feed the distressed Israelites. "The bread (said he) that I will give you, is v\y flesh for the life of the world. Your Fathers did eat manna in the dfs;rt, and are dead; if any man eat of this bread, he shall live for ever." Our Redeemer here extols what he was about to give at his last supper, far beyond the bread which we know descended from heaven. Now, in my mind, the latter would have been far superior to the former, if our Saviour had left us nothing but a bit of bread and a drop of wine. Many of those who were present, and some of them his disciples, were shocked at the expression, and they asked how was it possible that he could give them his flesh to eat? What was the conduct then of our Lord who came to instruct all unto salvation, and who neither could deceive nor be deceived 1 Instead of representing to them their mistake or correcting their error, if it were one, he says, " Amen, Amen, I say unto you ; unless you eat the flesh of the Son of Man. and drink his blood, you shall not have life in you." x\t this, many of his disciples who followed him through all Jangers and persecutions, all those who were about him from (Japernaum \ieni back^ and walked no longer with him. Would ne, the benign and beneficent Jesus, who had descended upon earth to lead man from sin, and who was about to offer himself upon the cross for man's redemption, would he suffer those per* sons to depart, believing that he spoke of a reality, and not explain to them their error, if indeed, it were an error? Would he have suffered them to fall innocently into error, when he could nave so easily corrected their misapprehension? I ask ant THE DCC7RINE OF TR INS UBS TANTl ATION. 205 easonable man, had not the people of Capernaum, in whos« vernacular language (the Syriac) our Lord then spoke, a better opportunity of knowing the meaning of the words of our Saviour on this occasion, than we who live at the distance of eighteeij hundred years, whose habits and language are confessedly dif- ff rent? When our Lord declared, " the bread that I will give is my flesh for the life of the world," they then understood Jesus to speak of real flesh and real blood; and accordingly they walked no longer with him. He did not correct their error, if such it were. What more easy for him than to say, (if that were his meaning) that he did not intend to give tliem his real flesh and blvX)d — that he only spoke in a figurative sense? But Jesus made no such correction. If it were not his real body and blood of which Christ then spoke, he led those people into error: but that supposition is manifest blasphemy. Hence I conclude, that the Jews were right when they understood him to speak of his real body and real blood. It may )e said that the error of his disciples, and of the people of Capernaum, was one which Christ was not obliged to correct. But, as St. Augustin remarks, though the Jews in a gross and carnal manner understood him to mean that he would give his flesh to them like meat taken ^rom a butchefs stalls yet they understood him to speak of a reality ; and if he did not mean to give them his flesh really, the error could have been easily corrected. But Christ was not called upon to tell them how it would be really given — that being a secret not to be communicated till the period of redemption was arrived. That, indeed, would be exposing the mysteries of heaven before the time. This argument appears to me to be insuperable. I will be told, in the language of Christ : " It is the spirit that quickeneth ; the flesh profiteth nothing." I will show greater authority for my interpretation of those words than they can, who endeavour to explain away the words of our Saviour. I can produce the passages in the holy Fathers, in which they quote those identical words in order to show their meaning. We, who admit the real presence, hold, that those who receive Christ in the sacrament of the altar, if they do not receive the sacrament worthily and with the proper dispositions^ do not receive with it the spirit of God — that though they receive the substance of the sacrament, the flesh doth not profit them. Hear what St. Paul says, "He that eateth and diinketh unworthily, eateth and drinketh judgment to himself, not diacerning the body of the Lord." But it is behind the sacred words of eternal truth, fulfilled and verified by Christ at the last supper, that I take my stand. Upon them I erect irrefragable proofs. — What Christ promised in the «ixth chapter of St, John, he fulfilled at his last supper. Whea 18 206 THE DOCTRINE OF TRaNSIjBSTANTIATION. Boleinnly seated at the board with his chosen twelve, he took bread, blessed it, broke it, and gave it to tht*m saying, " Take ye and eat, this is my body." — And presenting them with the chahce, he said, " Drink ye all of this, for this is my blood of the New Testament, which shall be shed for many for the remission of sins." What Christ then promised in the sixth '^f John, he here fulfilled to the letter, and must we not take his words in their natural and obvious sense ? Shall we resort to tropes, and figures, and metaphors, in order to explain away the won! of ihe Lord? If Mr. Pope exercises his private judg meiit on the passage, and pertinaciously adheres to his inter pretation of the words, it is impossible we could agree upon the matter. 1 adhere firmly and steadily to the doctrine of the church. Look to the primitive ages of Christianity — examine the successors of the Apostles, who believed and taught what was believed and taught by the Apostles themselves, and who transmitted the doctrines to their successors. They are all in support of the doctrine of transubstantiation. I shall first quote the passage from St. Cyril of Jerusalem, in his Mystagog. Cat. 4, where taking as his text the words of St. Paul, " For I re- ceived of the Lord that which I also have delivered unto you," speaks thus of the real presence and of transubstantiation. "This doctrine of the blessed Paul may be sufficient to satisfy you con- cerning the divine mysteries which you have received, that you have been made partakers of the body and blood of Christ ; for he now says, that our Lord Jesus Christ in the same night in which he was betrayed, took bread, and gave it to his disciples, saymg, 'Take, eat; this is my body.' And taking the chalice, and giving thanks, said, * Take, drink ; this is my blood.' Since Christ himself, then, did so affirm, and say of the bread, *This is my body,' who shall from thenceforth presume to make any doubt of it ? And since he affirms and says, * This is my blood,' who, I say, shall doubt, and say it is not his blood? He once changed water into wine (which has some likeness !j blood) in Cana of Galilee, by his own power; and shall he not be thought *\'orthy of belief in changing wine into blood ? Being invited to an earthly marriage, he wrought this stupendous miracle, and shall we not much rather confess, that he gave his oton body and blood to the children of the bridegroom? Therefore, with full assurance let us receive the body and blood of Chrict. For under the type (or appearance) of bread the body is given unto thee, and under the type of wine the blood ; that receiving the body and blood of CbrVf^ thou mayest be co-partner with him of his body and blood; so ?hall we k-' Christephori, carriers of Christ, when we receive his body and blood into oui n^'.mbers ; and by this means (as St. Peter saith) be made partakers of the di\ine natuie. Do not consider them as uaked bread and naked vdne, for it u the body and blood of Christ, according to the words of our Lord himself) For though your senses shoidd suggest this to you, yet let faith confirm you,-' Judge not of the thing by the taste, but rather be more certainly assured bj faith, so as to leave no room for a doubt but that the body and blood are given to thee. This knowing, and of this being assured, that what appeara w> you bread is not bread, but the body of Christ, althiugh the taste judges U to be bread; and that the wine which you see, and which has the taste oj wint,^ i$ not wine, but the blood of Christ — * Taste and see hoto stveet the Lord M.* Thitik you, now, that you are required to discern this by the sense of taste f THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTI ATION. £07 No^ by no means, but by the testimony of faith, which is certain, and leavei no doubt. — For when you take them, you are not commanded to take bread and wine, but under the appearance of these, to take the body and biood ol Christ." St. Chrysostom, in his 83d Homily on the 26th chapter ol Matthew, tome 7, raaintains the same doctrine. "Let us, (says he) beheve God in every thing, and not gainsay him, Llthoiigb what is said may seem contrary to our reason and our sight. Let his word overpower both. Thus let us do in mysteries^ not looking only on the things that he before us, but holditjg fast his words ; for his word cannot deceive, but our sense is very easily deceived. That never faileth — this often. Since, then, his word says, ' This is my body,^ let us assent and believe and view it with the eyes of our understanding. Christ left to us nothing sensible, but things intellectual^ under sensible forms. Thus the blessing of baptism is ^iven by water, which is corporeal ; but what is done by it — namely, regen- eration and renovation, is incorporeal or intellectual. If you were incorporeal^ he would have bequeathed to you gifts purely incorporeal ; but as your soul s united to a body, those gifts are to be comprehended under corporeal ^gns. How many persons are heard to say, I would willingly behold his figure, his ihape, his attire ! But thou seest him — thou touchest liim — thou receivest him nto thy breast ; yet thou desirest to see his garments. He gives himself tc thee, not to be looked upon only, but to be touched, to be eaten, to be admit- ted into thy breast. These are not the works of human power. He who in that supper made these things himself now also does them for you. We hold the order of ministers, but the sanctijier and changer of them is Himself; who will give us of his Jiesh that we may be filled. — (Job, xxxi, 31.) This Christ has done — not only allowing himself to be seen, but to be touched too, and to be eaten, and teeth to pierce his flesh, and all to be filled with the love ot him. Parents often give their children to be nourished by others; not so I, says Christ ; but I nourish you with my flesh, and I place myself before you. I was willing to become your brother ; for the sake of you I took flesh and blood, and again I delivered to you that flesh and blood by which 1 became 8o related."— (Horn. 24, in Joan, i, 5, p. 292.) " What sayest thou. O blessed Paul ? WiUing to impress on thehearLr, and making mention of the tremenduous mysteries, thou callest them the cup of benediction." — (1st Corinth, x, 16.) " That terrible and tremendous cup — that which is in the cup is that which iowedfrom his side, and we partake of it. It is not of the altar, but of Christ himself we partake ; let us therefore approach to him with all reverence and purity; and when thou beholdest the body lying before thee say to thyself, by this body I am no longer earth and ashes. This is that very body ichich bled, which was pierced by the lance.'''' — (Hom. 24, in Ep. ad Cor. i, 10.) " He that was present at the last supper, is the same who is now present, and consecrates our feast : for it is not man who makes the things lying on the gltar BECOME THE BODY AND BLOOD OF Christ, but that ChHst who was trucified for us. The loords are pronounced by the priest, but it is the pc»wei and grace of God that consecrates them. He said, * this is my bo it nothing different from that which sits above, and is adored by angels."-— (Horn. 3, ad Ephs. Tome 10.) " This table supplies the place of the manger ; for ewen here shall lie ihe body of our Lord, not wrapped in swaddling clothes, as then, but surrounded on all sides by the Holy Spirit. They that are initiated understand thesf things. The magi, or wise men d'd nothing but adore ; but thou, if thou comest with a pure conscience, wilt be permitted to take him to thtselv.* 'Oiut De S riiilogonio t ii, p. 3.S7.) SOS THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATIOJft. " The servants of Job, to show their love for him, said, * who will give ut of his flesh that we may be filled.' — (xxxi, 3J.) In like manner Christ gave us hisjiesh that with it, we may be filled and inflamed with the love of hiiUi 'Ihisbody lying in the n}anger, the wise men reverenced, seeing no such thing as thou seest ; thou dost no see him in the manger, but on the altar — nor dost thou only see him, but moreover thou touchest him — Ihon eatest him. and returnest home with him in thy breast ; cleanse then, thy soul trom ail defile* nient, and prepare thyself to receive these mysteries.^^ — (Hom. 2^ In 1, Cor. ij 10.) " Wonderful ! ! The table is spread with mysteries, the Lamb c 3rod is slain for thee, and the spiritual blood flows from the sacred table. The apiritual fire comes down from heaven ; the blood in the chalice is drawn from the spotiess side, for thy purification. Thinkestthou that thou seest bread ?-- that thou seest wine ? — that these things pass off' as other foods do ? — far be it from thee to think so. But as wax, brought near to the fire, loses its for- mer substance, which no longer remains ; so do thou thus conclude that the mysteries (the bread and wine,) are consumed by the substance of the body ; wherefore approaching to them, think not that you receive divine body from a infUf but fire from the hand of a seraphim." — Hom. De Panitione sue d« Euchar. in Encoeniu. t. v, page 489. " Christ was not content to be made a man — to be scourged — but reduced us, as I may say, into one mass or lump with himself, and* this not only by faith, but in very deed, maketh us his own body. What ought then to b« purer than he who shall partake of the sacrifice. What rays of the sun oughi not those hands to exceed in brigfitness which handle this crown — that mouth which is filled with spiritual fire — that tongue which is bloody with this admi- ruble blood! Call to mind with what honour thou art dignified, of what table thou partakest. For we are/ec/ tvith that thing which, when the angels behold, they tremble. Neither can they without fear see, by reason of the ^lory which Cometh from thence; and we are reduced into one mass with him, Christ's body being one and his flesh one ; who shall declare the power of the Lord — who shall make known his praises ? What shepherd ever fed his sheep with his own members ? Many mothers, when they bring forth their children, give them to other nurses, this Christ would not do, but feeds us with hisoiun Draper body, and joins, and, as it were, glues us to himself" The following passage is taken from St. Augustin, in hia Enarration upon the 33d Psalm, commenting upon these words of the Septuagint : — *' Ferebatur in manibus suis," he says as plain as words can make it, that though David could not carry himself in his own hands, according to the letter^ yet the prophecy was accomplished literally in the person of Christ.'' The holy Father observes — " * Ferebatur in manibus suis.' — Hoc vero fratres quomodo possit fieri in homine? duis intelligat ? Ctuis enim portatur in manibus suis ? Manibus fdioruni potest portari homo — manibus suis nemo portatur. Cluomodo intelli- gatur in ipso Da vide secundum literam non invsinmus, in Christo autem i;ivcni- mus. Ferebatur enim Christus in manibus suis quando commendans ipsum Corpus suum, ait, hoc est Corpus meum—ferebat enim illud Corpus in mani- bus suis. * He was borne in his own hands.' * How this could be done by man, brethren, who can comprehend ? For what man is carried in his own hands ? Man can be carried in the hands of others — in his own hands no man is carried. How this can be understood of David to the letter we do not find, but in the person of Christ we find illiterally. For Christ was bonu m his own hands when commending his own proper body, he said, * this is inj Wody/ FOR HI CARRIED THAT BODT in h%s owu honds," THE DOCTRINE OF TR ANSUBTANTIATION. 2U9 Some polemical srnatterers have endeavoured to evade ihis manifest argument, by observing that Christ might carry his body in his hands^ as a king or prince might carry his own picture ; but the difference betvveen these feeble disjutants and St. Augus- tin is, that St. x\ugustin held and believed Christ to have carried in his hands, his own iruCy real, and substantial body, which he affirms, no mere mortal could effectuate ; whereas, according to those gentlemen, Christ only did what every man could easily per- form — carry about his body figuratively — representatively, &c. St. Augustin Concione in Psalmum, 33, thus writes : — " 'Inhere was, you are all aware, first the sacrifice of the Jews, which con- sisted in victims of cattle, and that in a mystery. The sacrifice of the body and blood of our Lord which the faithful know who read the gospel, but which all do not know, and which it were to be wished some did not know to their condemnation, was not then instituted, which sacrifice is now estabhshed all over the world." Again in Lib. 22, De Civit Dei. cap. iii, he relates the follow- ing fact : " A certain man called Hesperius of the Tribunitial order, who still liveth convenient to us, hath a little farm called Zubedi in the territories of Fusali, which he having believed by the injury done his servants and cattle to he ha.\m' ted with evil spirits, besought my priests in my absence that one of them should go thither and expel them by prayers ; one accordingly went — offered there the sacrifice of Christ's body, praying with all his might that this evil would cease, and by the mercy of God it did cease." The above passage, you will perceive, establishes not only the doctrine of Transubstantiation, but also the holy sacrifice of the Mass. — Were a priest of the present day to offer up the sacri« iice of the Mass for the expulsion of evil spirits, and the preser vation of c-^ttle, what an outcry would be raised by the "Saints" against him, as if the practice were idolatrous, superstitious, and damnahle. " Christ took upon him earth from the earth, because his flesh is from the flesh of Mary, and because he here walked in this flesh, even this same flesh he gave to us to eat for our salvation : but no one eateth this flesh without ha,ying first adored it : and not only do we not sin by adoring it, but we sin by not adoring it. But is it the flesh that quickeneth ? The Lord in e:xalting this earth to us, informs us that it is the spirit that quickeneth— the flesh profiteih nothing. Wherefore, in abasing yourself and in casting yourself down before any matter whatever, consider it not as matter, but consider in it that holy one of whom the body which you adored is the footstool. For it is for his sake that you adore it." — In Psal. 9S. " The man Jesus Christ, though in the form of God, he receive sacrifice win ni3 Father, yet in the form of a servant he chose rather to be himself a sacrifice, than to receive it — thus he is the priest, himself offering, and himseli Ihe victim.'' — De Civit. Del. Lib. x. Speaking of the Jews converted by St. Peter, he says, " They were converted, they were baptized, they approached the table of the Lord, and now believing they drank that blood which in their rage thei bad shed." — Sermo 76. De verb. Evangel. I, v, Ed. Bened. 18* 210 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTI ATION. •* We receive with a faithful heart and mouth, the Mediator «»f God i.ti4 man — the man Christ Jesus, who has given us his body to eat, arr crime, or to forbid that which m profitable oi 214 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIAlIOPf. beneficial to others, it is figurative. For example, * except ye eat the flesh \il the Son of Man and drink his blood, ye have no life in you.' This seems lo command a heinous wickedness and crime • therefore it is a figure ; command- \ng us to communicate of the passion ci ^ ur Lord, ana with df light and advantage to lay up in our memory (mark is not the body of Christ in our bodies, but ^o lay up in our memories) that his flesh was crucified and wounded for us. ' — lab. iii, torn, iii, p. 53, Edit. Basil, 1596.) Mr, Magiiire has referred to the Saviour's words at the insli- t jtion of the Lord's Supper, " this is my body," I ask, may we not interpret the expression figuratively ? Did the Redeen^er always speak literally ? Does he not say, ** I am the dooi ," (John, X, 9.) "I am the vine?" (John, xv, i.) If the Redeemer spoke even once figuratively, he may have spoken figuratively on this occasion. There is a figure in the following passage, "This is my blood of the New Testament." Here the chalicr is the blood of Chnst : the material substance of the cup i'\ according to the letter the very blood of Christ. The Savioui speaks, we perceive figuratively in the very context. Now, \\ one part of the Saviour's words at the institution of the Eucha- rist is to be taken literally, why not the rest 1 But are we to suppose that the cup is transubstantiated into the blood of Christ ? I would also ask Mr. Maguire, is there not another specimen o| figurative language in the expression, ** this is my blood which is shed ]" Was the Saviour's blood shed when he said, " it is shed ?" Was his body broken, when he said, " it is broken ?" My friend has threatened us with a great number of quotations from the Fathers ; permit me to call your attention to a few Tertullian says — ** God,m your gospel, has so revealed the matter, calling the bread his own body, that you may hence understand how he gave bre?^ to be the figure of his own body ; which body, conversely, the prophcil has figurativelt called bread, the Lord himself being afterwards about (c Titerpret this sacra- ment."— Adv. Marcion. Lib. iii, § 12, 13, p. 209 Arguing against the sceptics, who denied the certainty of sense, he says — " We must not call our senses in questiony lest we should doubt respecting their fidelity even in the case of Christ himself Because, if we question the idelity of our senses, we might peradventure be led to say, that Christ delu* sively beheld Satan precipitated from heaven, or delusively heard the voice of his Father, testifying of him, or was deceived when he touched Peter's mother- in-law, or smelt a different odour of the ointment which he received for hifl sepulture, or tasted a different flavour of the wine which he consecrated in memory of his blood." — De Anim. in cap, de quinque sens, open p. 653. Cyril of Jerusalem says, " With all assurance, let us partaKe as of the body and blood of Christ : tor under the type of bread, His body is given to tbee, and under the type of wine his blood is given to thee ; that sr thou mayst partake of the body and blood of Christ, being one body and one olood with him." — Catech. Mysta^ THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 21^ Chrysostom says, " Cnder the name of flesh scripture is wont alike to set foiih themyateriei Wid the whole church : for it says, that they are each the body of Christ." — Comment in Epist ad. Galat. c. v, oper. vol. ix, p. 1022. Commel. 1603. Again, " Wherefore let there approach no Judas partaking of the poison of iniquity j for the Eucharist is spiritual tbod." — De Prodit. Jud. Serm. 30, oj>or. vol v, p. 464. Augustin says — '* The Lord, when Ir ' gave the sign of his body, did not doubt to say, thj^ is my body."— Contr. A i^man. c 12, oper. vol. vi, p. 69, Colon. 1616. Again — " In the history of the New Testament, so great and so marvelous was the patience of our Lord, that bearing with Judas, though not ignorant of hia purpose, he admitted him to the banquet, in which he commended and deliv- erea to his disciples the figure of his own body and blood." — Enarr. in Ps» iii, oper. vol. viii, p. 7. Again, " Christ instructed his disciples, and said unto them — * it is the spirit that quickeneth, the flesh profiteth nothing : the words which I speak unto you, are spirit and life :' as if he had said, understand spiritually what I have spoken : you are not about to eat this identical body which you see, and you are not about to drink this identical blood, which they who crucify me, will pour out : on the contrary, I have commended a certain sacrament unto yo>i, which will vivify you if spiritually understood, though it must be cele- brated visibly, yet it must be understood invisibly." — Enarr. in Ps. xcvii . oper. vol. viii, p. 397. Pope Gelasius is of the same opinion. — De Duab. Nat. Christ Cont. Nestor, et Eutych. in Biblioth. Patr. vol. 4, p. 422. I now meet my friend's challenge as to ancient hturgies, Li different liturgies, even after the words of consecration^ and aft6 r some prayers, the priest beseeches God to make this bread the holy body of Christ, and this cup the precious blood of Christ, These are the words used in the formulary called the liturgy of James, and the like prayer after the words of consecration occurs in the liturgies of Mark, John, Chrysostom and Basil. Is it not an article of faith in the curch of Rome, that when the words of consecration are one 3 pronounced, no bread or wine remains, but the real body and blood of Christ ; and is not the Host imrjfiediately elevated and adored ? If the authors of these liturgies held the same doctrine, is it not absurd, that they should offer a prayer to God, to do that which they believed had boeK already done ; to make the bread and wine the body and blood of Christ, a thing which they beheved had been already done, li they were of the same opinion with the church of Rome ? The authors of the Mass did not themselves believe in tran substantiation ; they often call the Eucharist an imager b. pledge. (ex Miss. Sar. et Ro ) Why should they call it an image « f J6 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBST iNTIATION. pledge, if they believed it to be the thing itself? The Sarum Missal (Fer Quat. Temp.) confesses that, " God wovdd have his sacraments consist of the fruits of the earth :" thejf plainly acknowledge of the sacrament, *' Cibavit eos ex adipe frumenti," he fed them with the flower of wk^at ; wherefore by their own acknowledgment, the sacrament which is eaten, is the fruit of the earth, and the flower of wheat (Ex horis de 5, Sacr. impr. per Sac Keruer, Paris, Ann. 1570, et in Ro. Miss in solen. Sacratis. Corpor. Ghri. in princip.) In the Post-communion, after every bishop-confessor, the Ronjan Missal, and the Missal of Sarum, in the Post-commu- nion prayer (Feria Sixta) say, " We beseech thee^ Lord, that giving thanks unto thee for these gifts which tee have received, we may receive better gifts,'*'' But if Christ be substantially present, what better gift could they desire than the Saviour himself ! In another place they pray, " That which we have received with ournwutlis, O Lord, grant that with pure minds we may also take, that of a temporal gift U may be made an eternal remedy,^^ (In can. Miss, et Ra Br. Fer. 5, post po. passionis.) Christ's body is not a temporal, but an everlastmg gift and remedy. Again, *■ That which we have received in the image of the sacrament, grant we may receive by manifest participation,^^ After the same manner they pray again, ** Let thy holy sacraments perfect, Lord, that which they contain, that whUi K»€ do now in show, we may receive in the certain truth of things themselves^ (in Fest, S. Swythen. in Post-compignus vitae aeternae in miss. Sar. They confess that they do it in show. I ask, if the body and 'ilood of Christ were actually present, would they have used this 1 xpression ? Again, in the Post-communion of the Mass of the Virgin Mary, they call the sacraments the helps of our salvation^ salutis nostrae subsidia ; but if they were the body and blood of Christ, it would be blasphemy to call him the help of salvation, who is salvation itself. — (Miss, Sar. in Post. Com. in Miss. Bea. Virg. Mar.) In the secret of the office of the dead, they say, receive O Lardy for the soul of thy servant^ the Host which thou didsi offer to God the Father for us bountifully. — (Miss. Sar. in offic. mort.) If the Host be the very body of Christ, then to offer Christ to himself would be most absurd. In the canon they oray, that God xcould accept the things offered^ as he accepted the sacrifice of his holy child MeU the sacrifice of Abraham^ and thai which JMelchisedech offered, I ask, would it not be blasphemy to compare the sacrifices of Abel, Abraham and Milchisedechi however holy, with the body and blood of Christ t THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 117 Mr. Maguire. — If my friend, Mr. Pope, would be in any manner consistent with himself, this controversy would have a speedy termination. Iv is no difficult matter for puny man limited as he is in understanding, to raise objections against holy mysteries. The very i^ame objections which Mr. Pope haa urged against the doctrine of transubstantiation, the Socinian may urge against the Tru^ity — as being a mystery incompre- hensible to human reason. Hear the words spoken here on the second day of the discussion by Mr. Pope, in regard to the doc- trine of the Trinity, as given in the JMorning Register : "1 remember that reason has its legitimate province. If God has reviialed the fact that three persons are one in the Divine essence, but not how that essence is formed, I believe the statement, I am not called npon to believe how it is effected. It is not for us to bring before the bar of natural reason the groat Being who makes the statement. If we are convinced that this is the book of God, we must be convinced that the three divine persons are in one. It is above ivi*oon, but not opposed to reason, and we are bound to receive it." I shall answer Mr. Pope's objections by his own arguments. Confining myself to the language of Mr. Pope, I affirm, that if It be revealed ni scripture, that the sacred body and blood of Clirist are bequeathed to us as a legacy, it is not for us to bring the God of heaven before the bar of natural reason. If we are convinced thai me statement has been made, we must be con vinced of the iaci. It may be above reason, but it is not con trary to reason. In common consistency, therefore, he is bound to receive the docirme. Mr. Pope has recurred to Melchisedech ; I did not bring forward Melchisedech as a direct proof, though perhaps it is ^tantamount to a direct one. The onus lies on Mr. Pope lO *how where or when Melchisedech did offer a sacrifice, if pot « the instance to which reference has been made. Melchise- dech is called a priest of the Most High. If in this instance Mr. Pope will have it that Melchisedech merely gav e bread and whie to Abraham, I call upon him to show where, in any other mstance, Melchisedech is recorded to have ofiered sacrifice to the Lord ; and if he cannot, why is Melchisedech called a priest of the Most High? I prefer to Mr. Pope's version of the scriptures that of .^u Jerome, who spent fourteen years in Palestine, and the com- mentaries of Dr. Wall, which are in my possession, Mr. Pope quotes Catholic authorities to show that there is not evident proof derivable from scripture, for the doctrine of transubstan- tiation. There is not mathematical evidence, such as 2 and 2 make 4 ; for what is evident cannot be contested. But th« proof approaches very nearly to an evident one, when our Savjoul emphatically says, ^' this is my body,'* "this is my blood That surely is a very close approximation to evideac 218 THE DOCTKiiVE OF TRANS UBSTANTIATION. Mr. Pope has not been able to produce any Catholic (Hvinea who contradicted the doctrine of transubstantiation. I am ready to admit, that there is no self-evident proof for the doctrine of transubstantiation ; but Christ has pronounced the words " this is my body — this is my blood," and I therefore beheve. Let Mr. Pope produce any passage equally clear upon the doctrines of the Trinity — the Incarnation, o' any other doctrine of Christianity. Mr. Pope says, that Christ came down, not in his body, from heaven. I assert that he did come, as to his humanity, from heaven, when Mary was overshadowed by the Holy Ghost ; the Saviour's body came direct from the power and finger of God, and was formed of the substance of a pure immaculate virgin. My Reverend opponent says, that the Redeemer was in the habit of speaking in parables. Whenever Christ made a reve- lation of an article of faith, did he speak in parables ? When- ever such a revelation is made, I do not believe our Saviour propounds it parabolically. W^hen some of the disciples of Jesus became shocked at his expressions at Capernaum, and when he saw the Jews alarmed and debating with themselves, and he himself becoming uneasy about this fact, as is evidenced by his subsequent question to the Apostles, " Will you also leave mel" It would be most strange that, if he had been only speak- ing metaphorically, he should have, as it were, confirmed them in their error, by adding this strong expression — "Amen, I say unto you, unless you eat the fl'«?sh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, you shall not have life in you." It is a melancholy instance of human infirmity to find such objections raised against that which has been so obviously and evidently revealed. It is the doctrine of the council of Trent, that he who receives the body and blood of Christ unworthily, eats and drinks perdition to himself, not discerning the body of the Lord. Therefore, when the doctors of the church speak of spiritual things, they mean that the sacrament may be really received by a man without its accompanying spiritual graces. No man will deny, that baptism is a representation of Christ's death and re- surrection, by regenerating man from a spiritual death to a spir- itual life — and yet it is acknowledged to be a real sicramenti and to coafer real grace. Mr. Pope may deny the fact if he choose, but I have all the Protestants of the church of England with me on the subject. Christ's body and blood are a reality, and a figure at one and the same time — they are not given in their natural and gross manner, but as the fulfilment of the type in the old law. The Pascal Lamb was the figure of Christ'* body and blood, and if the body and blood be not pre^^ent, tber« THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 215 is n3 fulfilment of the type in the new law. If the sacramenl be mere bread and wine, it is impossible to conceive how a man who receives unworthily can eat and drink damnation to himself Our Saviour says " I am the door ; I am the vine ; I am the good shepherd." Mr. Pope concludes, that because he speak? figuratively in one instance, he does so in all. When our Re- deemer said, he was the door and the vine, was there a man ol common sense listening to him, who did not know that he spoke metaphorically ? The expressions were not violent or unnat- ural, they were in accordance with the general tenor of the language of the day. But if he had taken a vine in his hand, and said, " I am this vine" — or, if he took up a door and said, " I am this door" — or, if taking hold of a shepherd he said, *' I am this shepherd ; then would the metaphor appear extravagant and absurd. But when he tooli the bread, and blessing it said, " THIS IS MY body" — there evidently was no metaphor intended. Had he said, " this bread is my body," such an expression would be truly metaphorical, but " this is my body," clearly supposes a change of substance. When, at the marriage of Cana of Gallilee,our Saviour changed water into wine there was a real transubstantiation. If he had then said, " this water is wine," it would be a metaphor ; but if he said, " this is wine," there was no metaphor, as a real tran- substantiation had taken place, and there was no water there. When Moses changed his rod into a serpent, if he said, *' this la a serpent," that would not be a metaphor ; but had he said, "this rod is a serpent," there he would speak metaphorically When Christ therefore said, " this is my body," it is plain and evident that he did not speak metaphorically. If a person asked for some good wine, and that in reply another said to him, "take this bottle," the metaphor is natural and obvious ; but if he said, handing him a bottle of milk, "this bottle is wine," the metaphor would then indeed be foolish, extravagant and unintelligible. Mr. Pope has quoted the words, " this is my blood which is shed for many for the remission of sins." This is one of the strongest proofs in support of the doctrine of transubstantiation. If the expression was, " shall be shed," it Plight seem to n)ilitate against that doctrine. But the expression " is shed," proves that Christ offered himself to bis Father before he had actually suf- fered, and applied the graces annexed to the sacrament before he had actually suffered on the cross. The graces which were to flow from that offering he here applied in the sacrament, foi if not, there was no sacrament instituted. Now. if he applied the graces before his death in the sacrament, I am at a loss to know why the action, havmg taken place previously to hi^ de»ti^ should form any bai to the doctrine of transubstantiation. 220 THE DOCTRINE OF TRAN^UBSTANTIATION* St. Cyril of Jerusalem has been quoted by my friend. )^.uu Bhall hear him again, and you can then decide whether it be not extremely foolish to introduce that holy Father as opposed to transubstantiation. After quoting the words of St. Paul, "1 have received of the Lord that which I also have dehvered unto you," he proceeds to say : " This doctrine of the blessed Paul may be sufficient to satisfy you con- cerning the divine mysteries which you have received, that you have been made partakers of the body and blood of Christ. The bread and wine, which before the invocation of the adorable Trinity were nothing but bread and wine, became after this invocation the body and blood of Christ. The Euchar- istic bread, after the invocation of the Holy Spirit, is no longer common bread, but the body of Christ. — Wherefore, I conjure, my brethren, not to consider them any more as common bread and wme, since they are the body and blood of Jesus Christ, according to his own words ; and although your sensei might suggest that to you, let faith confirm you. Judge not of the thing by vour taste, but by faith assure yourself, without the least doubt, that you are nonoured with the body and blood of Jesus Christ. That which appears bread is not bread, though the taste judge otherwise — ths wine which you see, and which tastes like ivine, is not wine, but the blood of Christ." Here St. Cyril impresses on us to believe the real presence of Christ in the sacrament, though the doctrine may appear con- trary to some of our senses. Every thing which St. Cyril here says, makes for the doctrine which I now advocate ; and Mr. Pope will perform a greater miracle than tiansubstantiation itself, if he shall demonstrate that St. Cyril was opposed to that doctrine. I wonder why all those Fathers should take such ex- traordinary pains to impress upon the minds of their hearers the absolute necessity of believing contrary to their seeing, touching, and tasting, if there were nothing in that sacrament but the ele- «nent of bread and wine. My friend has quoted St. Augustin likewise. From what • have quoted already, touching the sacraments, from this great 1 ather of the church, you can easily perceive that he speaks most plainly of transubstantiation. On the 33d Psalm we find, that be even calls this mystery the sacrifice of the body and blood of our Lord. I shall give you his original words . "Erat autem, ut nostis sacrificium Judaeorum in victimus peccorum secun- dum ordinum Aaron, et hoc in mysterio; nondum erat sacrificium Corporis 6t eanguinis domini quod norunt fideles et qui evangelium legerunt, quod iacriticium nunc difFusum est in toto orb6 terrarum." "There was ye are aware, first, the sacrifice of the Jews, which consist c« in victims of cattle, according to the order of Aaron ; and this in a mysterj. The sacrifice of the body and blood of our Lord was not yet instituted, which the faithful know, and those who read the gospel, which sacrifice ig now es- tablished throughout the whole world." If there be nothing in the sacrament of the Eucharist but n.^rii elements of bread and wine, it could not, nor ought it to be called a sacrifice. But St. Augustin styles it the sacrifice of the body tud blood of our Lord. It is manifest then that he held a totd THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTI ATION. 22l change of the elements into the body and blood of Christ When therefore he speaks of the sacrament as something spir- itual, he only draws a distinction between the body and blood of Christ in a carnal or gross sense, and between the body and blood of Christ in a true, substantial, but sacramental sense. The first was the error of those at Capernaum, as St. x-Vugustin himself describes it. " Quomodo in cadevere dilaniatur, lut m macello venditur." The second is the true and orthodox sense.j as the same Father exp'ains it. " Quomodo spiritu vegetatui.^' This, I think, most satisfactorily reconciles St. Augustin's ap- parent discrepancy. I here request that you will reflect upon the passage of St. Augustin, where he describes one of his priests ofl^ering up the sacrifice of the mass for the servants and cattle of Tribune. I could quote several other passages from St. Augustin, if his authority were called in question, on that subject. I have sixty or seventy Fathers, (Ignatus, Justin Martyr, Irenceus, TertuUian, Origen, Hyppolitus, and Cyprian, &c, &c, &c,) whom T could also quote if time permitted. The extracts are here on the table. I take not their words mutatis mutandis^ but I am ready to read whole passages from them, where they treat Oi: this subject professedly. St. Augustin, you will remember, in his Commentary on the words of the 33d Psalm, " ferebatur in manibus suis," says that our Lord carried his body in his own hand, at his last supper. After such passages, it is idle and foolish in the extreme to quote St. Augustin as opposed to the doctrine of transubstantiation. I shall now proceed to notice the othe^ objections advanced by Mr. Pope. The book of Gelasius is doubted by maiy critics, and it is uncertain whether it was written by Pope Gel- sius, or by Gelasius Cyzinicus. But even supposing it to hav? been written by Pope Gelasius, I am here ready to show that ii proves nothing against the doctrine of transubstantiation, as Hawarden has plainly demonstrated. Mr. Pope has quoted the ancient Liturgies to show that prayers were offered to God tc change the elements after the words of consecration had been pronounced. Dr. Brett, a Protestant, and who was by no meajis favourably irclined to Popery, translated all the cine lent Litur- gies from the original Greek. I am ready to prove from e\ery one of them, that the sacrifice of the Mass and transub:stantia- tion were derived from the Apostles, and believed throughout tht church, both eastern and western. In the Liturgy of St. James, which has been quoted by Mr. Pope, after the words : " 1 his is my body which is broken and given for you, for the remission o! tins." "This is my blood of the New Testament, M'hich is shed and giiei for you and for many^ for the remission of sins." 19* 2iZ THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. And, after some prayers, he thus addresses himself to M mi|^hty God, "S(ind down, O Lord, this thy most holy spirit upon us, and upon these holy gifts here set before thee : that by his h^iy, good, and glorious presence he may sanctify and make this bread the body of thy Christ, and this cup the precious blood of thy Christ." It was here objected that the Greeks did not believe in trarj. substantiation, because after the words of consecration they prayed : " Make this bread the holy body of thy Christ, and this cup the precious blood of thy Christ." But this objection was fully answered by the Greeks themselves in the council of Florence, who by the mouth of Isidorus, metropolitan of Syria, and legate of the patriarch of Antioch, and one of the seven deputed by the Greek prelates to dispute with the Latins, replied that the Greeks did unanimously believe the consecration to be ralid, and the change to be effected by the words of Christ : — " This is my body — this is my blood ;" and that they differed from the Latin church, merely as to the manner of explaining themselves. But that having found the above prayer in the missals of Saints Basil and Chrysostom, which they then used, and which were extant without any alteration, long before the time of their separation from the Latin churoh, they did not think fit to discard it. I shall give you the words of Isidorus himself as they were taken down by the interpreter of the said council : — "Hoc Missale quo utimur est traditum a Basilio et beato Chrysostomo: utebarnur autem eo aute tempus schismatis, nee aliqua facta est mutatio : tamen occidentalis Ecclesia nunquam Sre hoc verbum fecit, videlicet cum fuerimus Concordes, et ad eundem finem tendentes ; secundum rem dicimua idem, etcredimus id quod conficit mysterium esse sermonem Domini, et Domi- nicam vocem esse effectricem divinorum munerum, et il la vox semper explicatur a sacerdote, et suscipit sacerdes quod vox replicata aptetur, et sit eadem vox cum voce Domini ; et ut ita aptetur, invocatur spiritus sanctus et supplicat sacerdos, ut per virtutem spiritus sancti concedatur gratia ut vox repetita efficiatur ita effectiva, ut verbum Dei fuit ; et ita credimus consummativa fieri per illam orationem sacerdotis. Dominicse voces habent operationem ut semina, quia sine semine non potest effici fructus; ita in hoc dominica voce: tamen ubi cadet semen, eget aliis instrumentis ut sacerdotis, altaris, oratio- num, unde credimus per hoc vobiscum esse Concordes." "This Missal which we use was deHvered to us by St. Basil and St. Chry- sostom, and it is the same we used before the time of the schism ; nor is there uny change made in it ; yet the Latin church never made any exception on thi*& head, inasmuch, as we were of one accord, and tending to the same end. We in reality say the same thing, and believe that that which completes the mystery is the word of the Lord, and that the word of our Lord produces the divine gifts, and that the word is always expressed by the priest, and the priest takes care that the word repeated should be adapted to, and b( the same with the word oi our Lord ; and that it may be so adapted, the Holy Ghost is invoked, and the priest prays that by virtue of the Holy Ghost grace may be granted, that the repeated word may be made as effective aj tlie word of God was. And so we believe that it becomes consummated bt th«t prayer of the priest The words of our Lord are operative like seei THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTI ATION. 228 for as fruit cannot be produced without seed, so it is in this word of our Lord. jel where this seed falls it requires other instruments, for example a priest, an altar, and prayers, whence we beheve that in this matter v\e substantiaH} accord with you." Mr. Pope. — Mr. Maguire, in maintaining the doctrine oi (ransubstantiation, observed, that it is such a mystery, that iv6 are not to pry into it, and endeavoured to institute a comparisor between it and the doctrine of the Trinity. I deny altogether that any parallelism exists. On the doctrine of the Trinity we are incapable of exercising our senses. Man, by the mere exercise of sense, cannot find out the Almighty. An infinite distance exists between the Divine nature and my faculties. But my senses, in their legitimate province, are a divine reve- lation, and the direct inlets of knowledge to the mind. Though they cannot investigate the nature of God, for it is above their reach, I can bring one and all of them to bear upon transubstan- tiation ; and their united testimony is, that the bread is bread, and the wine is wine. Hence no parallel can be drawn between t^-ansubstantiation and the doctrine of the Trinity. My friend has said, that the onus rests on me to show, that Melchisedech made an offering, in order to demonstrate the priesthood. I answer, that it is quite sufficient for me, that God has called him a priest. I have already referred to Roman Catholic authority to show, that the word translated '' brought FORTH," is properly rendered, the original expression having no reference to oblation ; that the w^ord rendered "/<9/-," in the Douay Bible, does not signify "/or," but " and^^^ and that the latter part of the eighteenth verse is a separate clause. Mr. Maguire has told us, that two and two make four. Does he mean to introduce this arithmetical calculation to illustrate the proposition, that that which has all the properties of bread is flesh? S^ich a position I maintain, is absurd, opposed to the common lense of mankind, to the testimony of our senses, and contradictory to the doctrines of holy writ. My friend has said, that the body of Christ came down from above in consequence of his preternatural generation, through the power of the Holy Ghost. I would refer him to the language of the Athanasian creed, which Mr. Maguire has subscrihed. That formulary, speaking of the Saviour says, "God of the substance of the Father, begotten before the world, and man of tU substance of his mother, born in the world." So much foi Mr. Maouire's theological accuracy. My friend has said, that the council of Trent holds, that although man may partake of the body and blood, soul and divinity of Christ, yet, if he possesses not the grace of God, he ■hall perish. I v\ould ask a simple question. Why should tlu 224 THE DOCTRINE OP TR/VNSUBSTANTIA TION. council of Trent take one part of our Saviour's words literacy and in other passages, where the scripture militates against th< views of the church of Rome, reject the literal sense? Mr. Maguire has said, if the Saviour took the door in hsa hands and said, "I am this door;" or if he took the vine in h}s hand, and said, " I am this vine," the case would have been different — but methinks transubstantiation is still more absurd ; for he supposes Christ to intimate, " Here am I, sitting with you at the table, circumscribed as to mv humanity, and this bit of bread which I hold in my hand is my body ; I grasp this body within the palm of my hand, and I give this body from myself to you. I give myself from myself, to be partaken of before my eyes,^^ My friend has referred us to the marriage-feast. I am glad that he has reminded us of a sensible transubstantiation. I imagine that the guests saw that the water was changed into wine, and from their taste also, were conscious of the change. My friend perceives, that they had only to exercise their senses to discover, that that which had been water, with all the proper- ties of water, was now wine, with all the properties of wine. If Mr. Maguire allowed his flock to exercise their senses they too would find, that after consecration the bread is still bread, and the wine still wine. Mr. Maguire has made an extraordinary statement, that Christ offered himself up, before he offered himself up ! He should be loath to throw out insin- uations against the correctness of my quofcitions — I have already exposed him. Was he not detected yesterday in a quotation from a work, to the original of which I referred you ? He says, that he quotes from originals — I will not charge my friend with an intention wilfully to mislead us, — he was, I will admit, him- self deceived, having implicitly confided in the quotations placed in his hands; but I say, Mr. Maguire should be cautious. 1 have several other quotations. St. Augustin says upon the words : "' Me ye have not always.' He speaks of the presence of his body ; ye fihall have me according to my providence, according to majesty and invisible grace; but according to the flesh which ths Word assumed, according to that which was born of the Virgin Mary, ye shall not have me ; therefore, because that he conversed with his disciples forty days, he is ascended up into heaven and is not here." — Tract 50 in Jean. Edit. Basil. 1596. Yet the church of Rome says, that the body of Christ is od every altar ! In the 23d epistle — *'If the sacraments (says he) had not some resemblance of these things whereof they are sacraments, they would not be sacraments at all ; but from fchis resemblance they take for the most part the names of the things which they represent ; therefore, as the sacrament of the body of Christ is in som« maimer or sense Christ's body, and the sacrament of his blood, is the bloo^ of Christ, so the sacrament oftaith (meaning baptism) is faith." — ^23d Ejmh* Tom. ii, p. 93. THE \ 3CTRINE OF TR ANSUBSTANTI ATION. I J this passage St. Augustin shows the meaning of the worda p.ni[>loyed to designate the Eucharist, and explains many of the strong expressions to be found in Mr. Maguire's quotations, St. Clement of Alexandria, who lived in the second century gays, "Inasmuch as Christ declared, that the bread which I give you is my f.esh, and inasmuch as flesh is irrigated by blood, therefore the wine is alleg )ri- CALLY CALLED blood. — Pseda^'. Lib. i, c. 6, p. 104. For the word is aile- GORiCALLT DESIGNATED by many different names, such as meat and fieshj and nourishment, and bread, and blood, and milk ; for the Lord is all thing! frtr the enjoyment of us who have believed in him. Nor let any one think we speak strangely, when we say that milk is allegorically called the bk od of the Lord, for is not wine likewise allegorically called by the ' iry same appellation ?" — Paedag. lib. i, c. 6, p. 105. Again, '* The scripture, then, has named wme a mystic symbol of th#/holy blood." —Ibid. lib. ii, c. 2, p. 156. Again, " Be well assured, that Christ also himself partook of wine, masmuch a he also was a man. He moreover blessed the Wine, saying, take, drink this is my hlood, the blood of the vine. The consecrated liquor of exhilara tion, therefore, allegorically REi*RESENts the Word, who poured himseh out on behalf of niany for the remission of sins." — Ibid. hb. ii, c. 2, p. 158. I have various other quotations to the satne effect, but my time is too precious to be expended in reading them ; you can judge whether they are not stronger than those which my friend has cited. I am convmced that the quotations which I have read, are correctly given. My opponent has doubted that pas- sage of Pope Gel-asius : " Certainly the sacraments of the body and blood of the Lord which ars received, are a divine thing, because by these we are made partakers of th«; divine nature ; nevertheless the substance or nature of the bread and wine ceases not to exist, and assuredly the image and similitude of the body and blood of Christ are celebrated in the action of the mysteries." — De duab, Christi Katur. Cont. J^Test. et Eutych. in Biblioth, Patr. vol. iv, p. 422. My friend tells me that this book is doubted; but there is stronger reason why my passages should be genuine than his* Protestants have no index expufgatorius to which the Fathers must be subject—** Solius est Dei adorari" is purged by that index from the index of the works of Athanasius atld Augtlstitl^* and if a doctrine of that nature could be purged, is there any reason to doubt that the passages which remain untouched., are the genuine sentiments of their originals. — Adorari solius Dei est : (adoration belongs to God alone) deleatur ex. ind. oper. Athdnasii Indice lib. Prohib. et Expiirg. p. 52. Madrit. An, 1627. Item ex In. Oper. St. August, ibid. p. 56. Mr. Maguire has produced passages from Luther. I ask hina m the face of the world to produce the places from which the) 226 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION, are taken. They carry upon the face of them their own refuta tion. I am satisfied that many of them were never uttered bj that eminent and intrepid reformer, the great and mighty Luther. As to the liturgies to which I referred^ in order io meet my oppo* nent on his oivn ground, they have little weight with me ; but they show the opinions of the individuals who used them, upon the subject. The Greeks gave, I imagine, but a lame and confused account of them at the council of Florence, and these liturgies were composed one thousand years before that council. If transubstantiation, which, the church of Rome says, takes place as soon as the words of consecration are uttered, was held by those who used these liturgies, it would be inconsistent, that the prayer should be subsequent to the words of consecration, and that even after consecration they should continue to call the elements gifts. I admit, that the expression is strong, (but remember, that it was used after consecration) namely, that God would make this bread, the holy body of Christ. We have learned from Augustin, that the names of the things signified are often employed instead of the names of the signs. My friend has not met me respecting the authors of the mass not believing in transubstantiation. I am convinced that he cannot controvert my proofs, that they did not believe in that doctrine. To proceed with my arguments — I have shown that the Saviour, even in the very place which describes the institution of the sacrament, as well as elsewhere, employed figurative language. What reason have we for thinking that there is not figurative language in this passage also? I shall assign to you my reasons for believing that the expression, " this my body," is to be taken in a figurative sense also. Our Saviour says, " do this for a commemoration of me." — (Luke, xxii, 19.) I ask, if the real body and blood of Christ — if Christ himself, be substantially present, how the Eucharist can be observed as a commemorative act? The commemoration of a person betokens that the per- son commemorated is absent, not present. " As often as ye eat this bread, and drink the chalice, ye shall show the death of the Lord till he come." — (1 Cor. xi, 25.) There are innumerable figurative expressions in holy writ. *' The seven full ears are seven years of plenty, the seven lean kine are seven years of famine." — (Gen. xli, 26, 27.) " The seven candlesticks are the seven churches." — (Apoc. i, 20.) " The seven heads are seven mountains." — (Apoc. xvii, 9.) In the passover itself, we have the expression, "it is the Lord's passover," (Exod. xii, IL) or as the Douay version renders it, " it is the phase of the Lord." The auxiliary verb, in the sense of" represent," is usual to the sacred writers. Recollect too, that the words, "this is my body," were addressed to Jews, who were accustomed to thii THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTI ATION. 227 0ty\e of language at the feast of the passover. Justhi Marty? ceils us, that the form of words, used at the passover from Ezia'a fime, was, " this passover is our Saviour and our refuge," — vDial. cum TrypL p. 297. Ed. Paris, 1639.)— that is, this passover represents him, who is our Saviour and our refuge Sear in mind, therefore, that cur Saviour addressed himself t6 men xohc were prepared to understand him in a figurative sense. Further — the Jews were forbidden to eat blood ; (Lev. xvii, 10 11, 12.) would not the feehngs of the Apostles have been shocked, if they believed that the Saviour had commanded them to partake of it. The prohibition was not subsequently repealed; for, as my friend has observed, the council of Jerusalem, as he terms it, enforced an abstinence from blood. Again, if the Saviour's words are to be taken literally, they would do away with the nature of a sacrament, and contradict the prophec} which says, " Thou wilt not suffer thy Holy One to see corrup- tion." — Psalm XV, 10. Sacred Writ says, that the body of Christ shall not see corrup- tion : but the elements, even after consecration, are corruptible ; therefore, we argue, that they cannot have been transubstantiated into that body, which does not see corruption. Mark the con- sequence of rejecting the testimony of sense : that which proves the truth of Christ's resurrection, proves the falsehood of tran- substantiation ; but if the testimony of sense is to be refused, then we weaken the evidence for the Christian revelation. St. John, in his first epistle, first chap, says, *' That which we have heard^ which we have seen with our eyes, which we have looked upon, and which our hands have handled^ of the word of Life: for the life was manifested : and we have seen and do bear witness, ana declare unto you the hfe eternal, which was with the Father, and hath appeared to us: that v/hich we have seen and have heard, we declare unto you, that you also niay have fellowship with us, and our fellowship may be v/ith the Father and with his Son Jesus Christ." When Thomas doubted, the Saviour said to him, "Put in thy finger hither, and see my hands, and bring hither thy hano^ and put it into my side ; and be not faithless but believing." — John, xx, ^7. The Saviour, 'tis true, added, " Blessed are they that have not seen, and yet have believed." But he did not say, " Blessed are those who have seen^ and yet have not believed ;" the blessing was not to those, who having the opportunity of seeing, disre- garded the testimony of their senses, but to those who not seeing, yet believed — who, when the evidence of sense was wanting, yet beheved. I would ask, what is the use of this irrational and extraordinary doctrine] I will tell you — to make demi-gods of the Roman Catholic priests — to raise them in the estimation of che people, and to cause the niultitade to look up to them as met 228 THE DOCTRINE OF TR ANSUBSTANTIATION. who enA create their God. In the dark ages, an accc jnt o\ which I read to you, when the priests domineered over th« intellects of men, when abust s and fictions were introduced, was this monstrous doctrine established. You have heard the story of the mule — the heretic was convinced — he exercised his senses on the miracle. Now, if he exercised his senses on the miracle why should he not have exercised them on transubstantiatio! itself? Permit me also to add, that the Saviour most probably »4>oke in the Syriac language — and, as in that tongue there is xxo word signifying " to represent,'' was under the necessity of employing the auxiliary verb. I now call upon Mr. Maguire to meet me upon the question hke a man, and not to beat about the bush — to use a vulgar phrase. Mr. Maguire. — I hope, gentlemen, you wish to hear more than one side of the question ; if you are sincerely anxious to know the truth, you will hear both whh equal attention. My friend has called upon me to follow him step by step, I thought my forte throughout this discussion was the use of argument, and iiom the first day up to this moment, I could never keep my fnend from preaching sermons, and confine him to the question at issue. He denies that any parallelism exists in the cases of tiie mysteries of the Incarnation, the Trinity, and Transubstan- tiation. But he there calculates without his host — has he attempted to show that these doctrines are not mysteries ? Has he quoted texts of scripture against me, as I have against him ? Has he brought forward a single direct text from scripture against me ? One thing is clear, by rejecting transubstantiatiori, because it is a mystery^ this gentleman overturns all mysteries, a.-^d is become a professed Socinian. He has quoted the evi- dence of the senses against transubstantiation. But even if tha> doctrine contradicted the senses, he should recollect that the senses have nothing to do with regard to a mystery. St. Paul says, " Faith then cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of Christ." I call on Mr. Pope to prove that transubstantiation is not a mystery — I call upon him to show, that we are not to believe the doctrine because it appears opposed to the evidence of some of the senses, though we are told that "faith comith l*y hearing, and hearing by the word of Christ." We find that St. Paul here excludes all the senses as judges of mysteries, save the sense of hearing only. If the senses be not constituted as the proper judges of mysteries to pronounce upon their truth, then all his reasoning as to the evidence of the senses falls to the ground. St. Cyrii of Jerusalem brings forward argumenta to shew, that the evidence of the senses may be contradicted ifl a mystery, and I have quoted St Augusiin, where that holy THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTI ATION.. 229 Father says, that *' Christ held his body in his own hands." It was absurd, then, on the part of niy opponent, to press St. Au- gustin in.to an opposition to this doctrine. He has enlarged upon the senses as the bulwark of our faith. The senses often contra- dict themselves — or rather contradict facts ; thus, Joshua i^eeing an angel, mistook him for a man. The woman at the sepulchre saw two young men at the tomb, and yet the scnp^'^re tells us they were angels, and God appeared in the form of man, and yet was taken for a mere man. Here, then, the senses contra- dicted themselves. Again, if you immerse a straight^ stick in water, you would almost swear, were you to believe your sight, that the stick was crooked. In natural things it is very common to see the senses contradicted. In the strict sense of the word, it is true they are not contradicted, for it is not the business of the senses to pronounce judgment according to the principles of philosophy ; they are to convey the impressions made upon them to the mind — to relate merely what appears to them. In respect to the angel and the stick, they merely relate to the mind what appears as a fact to them When a man sees what is called a wafer, he tastes and smells it ; and here I grant these senses contradict his faith. But to the senses we oppose the express promises of Christ, and believe with St. Paul that faith Cometh by hearing ; and that our Lord bequeathed to man, as a test of his love, a most extraordinary but mysterious legacy. As Mr. Pope argues that the testimony of the senses is fatal to transubstantiation, it remains for him to show, either that it is not a mystery, or that faith cometh not by hearing, for no sense is allowed to judge of mysteries, but the sense of hearing. Christ said, " this is my body." The Apostles heard the words pro- nounced, and their sense of hearing was the only judge. We have it upon their testimony, that Christ spake the words, con- sequently our faith must come from hearing. How will my friend prove the doctrine of the Trinity? It contradicts all the senses, save that of hearing, so does the doctrine of the Incar- nation. If that be the case, if angels be taken for men, and that the senses are thus led astray, it is absurd to say that a mystery is not to be believed, because it contradicts the senses. Mr. Pope has recurred to Melchisedech. I challenged him to show that Melchisedech ever offered up sacrifice but on one occasion, and yet he is called a priest of the Most High. And Christ is called by the royal prophet -^.nd by the Apostle Paul, '• a priest for ever according to the order of Melchisedech." Melchisedech could not be a priest without offering up a sacrifice. This he did when he offered th-s bread and wine ; why were they intro- duced ] Evidently to show that he made an offering. Jerome's testimony on this matter is preferable to that of Mr. Pope. I 20 THE DOCTRINE (V TR INSUBST iVNTI ATION. care Lot for the Hebrew originals, as they are called. It w admitted by two Protestant divines, Doctors Wall and Millsj that the old Italian version is the purest copy extant of the Bible I have all the Lutheran churches against Mr. Pope on this matter, and all the heretics till the days of BerengaMUS. He first denied the doctrine of transubstantiation ; but he died a convert, and was heartily sorry for his fatal error. After hiw, it is an admitted fact, that Zninglius, in his comment on tho irords, " Hoc est corpus meum," substituted the verb ^^repre- teniaV- for the verb ** e^^" so that the sense would run, "Ihis represents my body.'' And this doctrine he confesses to have received from a spectre ; but he adds, " Nescio an aibo, an nigro," " I know not whether it was black or white." Luther, n the most ferocious manner, attacked Calvin on the subject. He maintained the doctrine of the real presence against Calvin and ZuingUus; he defied them, as I have defied my friend, to disprove that doctrine by arguments drawn from scripture ; he describes them as differing from all the churches in the world, aj\d from the Lutheran churches in particular. My friend has introduced the marriage at Cana in Gallilee, to show that there the transubstantiation was made palpable to the senses. I am sorry to perceive, that he is unable to distinguish between the nature of a mystery and a miracle. Because Christ performed a miracle, of which the senses were able to judge, of course it follows, that the senses are able to pronounce upon a mystery. Oh! profound argument — oh! noble logician. Do the doctrines of the Trinity and of the Incarnation fall under the judgment of the senses ? If Christ performed miracles to con- vert the Jews and Pagans, it must therefore follow, according to Mr. Pope, that all mysteries are false. If the Incarnation and the Trinity are to be brought under the cognizance of the senses, then the doctrine of original sin must be rejected, for it never can be understood by man, nor can the senses reconcile it with the divine goodness and mercy. 1 introduced the marriage at Cana, to show that it is not incompatible with ChrisVs power to v;ork the miracle of transubstantiation, because, in one of his first miracles, he changed water into wine, which was purely a tran- substantiation. But I never introduced that miracle directly to prove that he instituted the mystery of transubstantiation at hi-s last supper. It is a principle in logics that comparisons are not to hold throughout all their bearings. As to the passage from Gelasius, It remains for Mr. Pope to prove it genume. Hawarden haa already answered, that it is doubted amongst critics whether thii work was written by Pope Gelasius, or by Gelasius Cyzinicus, tiie author of a book " De duabus Christi Naturis." The wri*ei THE DOCTRINE OF TR ANSUBST ANTI ATION. 231 of this book, whoever he was, observes, that because appear ances or accidents continue after consecration, we must carefullj distinguish between the appearances and the reahty, viz.— the body and blood of Christ. His words are — ** Et tamen esse non desinit substanta vel natura panis et vini.'* ** And yet the substance or nature of bread and wine does not cease." Those words are quite reconcileable with orthodox doctrine, fur the substance or nature of bread and wine remains after con- secration, as far as the senses are concerned. And that this was ihe meaning of Pope Gelasius, (supposing him to have been the author) is pretty clear, from his using the disjunctive preposition ** vel," " or," which certainly qualifies the apparent harshness of the sentence. The words substance and nature are not always used to express the essential properties of a subject — substance is one thing — and the nature of a substance another. Thus a stone is a substance, and so is iron but the hardness of the stone and the hardness of iron is the nature of the substance. Let aay man examine the work itself, and he will find that there is nothing in those words inconsistent with the doctrine of transub- etantiation. My opponent has accused me of misquoting. It shall appear 'o the world which of us has been convicted of misquotations. As soon as this discussion has terminated, and the report of it is published, I shall certainly go to Manchester library, and con- sult the editions of the Fathers preserved there. Ahhough my friend has Trinity College at his back, with all its fellows to assist him, it shall then be made manifest, who was the more correct in quoting from the Fathers. This gentleman would make transubstantiation appear a foolish doctrine, because Christ should be present in so many places at once. My opponent is truly a wonderful philosopher. May I ask him, can he describe the properties of a spiritualized and purified body ? The body of our Saviour, after his resurrection passed through the pores of a door. Is not that inexplicable ? I should be happy to hear Mr. Pope describe the properties of a body spiritualized and of a spirit. The Devil himself can be present in many places at once — otherwise he could not tempt mankind. According tr my principles, and those of every Catholic, it is blasphemy to call m doubt the omnipresence of Christ. And will those who pretend to venerate the Saviour so much, presume to call it in question ? If Christ's humanity be hypostatically united to his divinity, does not he who circumscribes the cue, by implication circumscribe the other 1 My friend doubts the passages wnich I have quoted from Luther, I have here 600 passages more from bim, which i espect for the present assembly pre rents me from 232 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSl ANTIATION. quoting now — I have the book here — I can prove the authentic city and genuineness of the text — I will publish my quotations in the report of the present proceedings — then let the fellows ol Trinity College convict me, if they can, of false quotations. My friend has quoted the words " Do this in remembrance of Hie." The folio wmg is the language of the Latin Vulgate ; " Hoc facile in meam commemorationem." " Do this in rememb. anoi rtf me." St. Paul in the 11th chapter of his first epistle to the Corin thians, explains the above thus : " Glu >ties cunque enim, manducabitis panem hunc et calicem bibetis mor- tem domini anunciabitis, donee veniat." — " For as often as you shall eat this breud, and drink this chalice, you shall show forth the death of the Lord until he come." St. Paul clearly explains what our Lord meant by the words, " Do this in remembrance of me," — that is, as often as you do this, you will commemorate my death and passion. The reality, therefore, of Christ's presence in the sacrament of the altar, by no means exclud^s the idea of a commemoration, for although the present sacrifice be truly a sacrifice, yet as it is not a bloody sacrifice, it may be justly entitled a commemoration of the bloody one on the cross. The unbloody sacrifice of the mass is the remembrance of the death and passion of Christ, and as often as it is celebrated the death and passion of our Lord are shown forth until he come. Christ, therefore, was justified in calling n in that sense a remembrance, though in the other sense he la really present, and is really offeree up. But my friend has endeavoured to confuse with figurative expressions the immu- table words of scripture. He would leave nothing clear n« certain in the Bible. Every thing according to him is to U^ taken in a metaphorical sense. Should I attempt to do so, he would insist on holding me to the precise terms of the text, and when I endeavour to confine him to the strict meaning, he hhjk recourse to tropes and metaphors. It is impossible in such a way, to prove the falsehood of a doctrine which has been held in the church for 1800 years. The Arians, the Manicheans, tba Eutychians, and all such noted heretics, never denied the real presence of Christ in the sacrament of the altar. My friend has quoted the liturgies. I have them here as translated by Dr. Brett, a Protestant, and no friend to the Cath- olics, and they all prove transubstantiation. Mr. Pope has called the Lord's passover the type of Christ. It is admitted on all hands, that it was the type of Christ's body. Ought not the thing typified exceed in substance and reality the type ? There was real blood in the passover. The blood of the lamb wa:* ipilled at the doors, and it was a type of the blood of Christ THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSL BSTANTI ATION. 238 If the type was the real blood of the animal, of course that la aiore important which is the antitype — namely, the real blood oi Christ — the type is itself the confirmation of the thing typified The Jews were told, " eat not blood." 1 ask any man pos* j^essed of common sense, if the eating of that which is apparently bread and wine, is to be considered in the same light as the eating of animal blood ? The Apostle has been quoted, and J liever heard a more wilful misinterpretation of scripture. The command of the Apostles applied to that only which had all the natural appearances of blood. They gave an express com- mandment not to eat it, and I therefore called on Mr. Pope to show by what authority he was permitted to take gravy, I called upon him to prove from the Bible by what authority the sign ot* the cross is made in baptism — to prove from the Bible the pro- cession of the Holy Ghost — to show why he neglected to wash his neighbor's feet, in contradiction to our Saviour's command, and why he did not observe the Jewish sabbath. From a notice of all those questions he has prudently abstained. You, gentle- men, will estimate the value of such prudence. But Mr. Pope says, that the body of Christ will never s«:c corruption. He should prove, that when the species begin n> decay, Christ could not extricate himself and ascended to his heavenly Father. Are the rays of the sun polluted by passing through an unclean medium ? If that be so in the natural world it is foolish to think that Christ could be contaminated by contact with corruptible matter. Mr. Pope has quite established the Socinian system by his arguments. The Socinian admits no principle but reason as his guide — neither does Mr. Pope. The Socinian will only interpret the sacred scriptures according t<» his private judgment. Mr Pope coincides with him fully ou that point. The Socinian rejects transubstantiation, and ail mysteries, as contrary to reason. Will Mr. Pope go that length ? His arguments certainly tend thereto. Now, I can prove that the doctrine of the real presence was not alone retained by Luther, but that the doctrine was retained in the church of Eng- land until she became Calvinistical. Mr. Pope's argumeiua would go to show that no preparation was necessary for the re-veiving of the sacrament in the church of England — that no moral change was required, and that only a bit of bread and wine, instead of the body of Christ, were received in the com- munion. Bishop Andrews, in the time of James the first, in his answer to Bellarmine, admits that Chrst is present in the sacrament )f the altar ; and he adds : " I also Wxwh St. Ambrose adore the flesh of Christ in the mysteries." Bishop Forbes, De Eucharistia, Lib. ii, Cap. 2, hts tDH fallowing remarkable passage ; 20* ZM THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSURSTANTIATION. ** The sounder Protestants make no doubt of adoring Christ in tlie Eu charJM." And, " It is a monstrous error," says he, " of the rigid Protestants (Calvinists) who deny that Christ is to be adored in the Eucharist, except only wili an inward adoration of the mind, but not with any outward act of adoration, as kneehng, or other hke posture of the body. These people commonly haxe not a right belief of Christ in the sacrament, in which he is present afte^ I F/ondeiful but real manner." Thorndyke says, in lib. iii, cap. 30, page 360 — " I suppose the body and blood of Christ may be adored wheresoever they are ; and muit be adored by a good Christian, where the custom ofthechurch which a Christian is obliged to communicate with, requires it. And is not the presence tiereof in the sacrament of the Eucharist, a just occasion pre gently to express, by that bodily act of adoration, that inward honour, which we always carry tovrards our Lord Christ as God ?" And, " Not to baulk that freedom, (says he) which hath carried me to pubhshall this, I do believe, that it was so practised and done in the ancient church, and in the symbols before receiving." Dr. Cosin, in stating the doctrines of the church of England, says : " That God's omnipotency can change one substance into another, none vf 11 deny ; and we see it done by Christ in the town of Gallilee, when he Changed the water into wine, and it was a true and proper transubstantiation. \/e do not say that God is not able to make the body of Christ present, and i> aly give it in the sacrament, whilst the substance of the bread remains. "We believe a presence and ur^ion of Christ with our soul and body, which He know not how to call better than sacramental ; that is effected by eating ; that while we eat and drink the consecrated bread and wine, we eat and drink therewithal the body and blood of Christ, not in a corporeal manner, but some other way, incomprehensible, known only to God, which we call spiritual. We confess with the Fathers that this manner of presence is unaccountable and past finding out ; not to be searched and pried into by reason, but be- lieved by faith. For it is more acceptable to God, with an humble simplicity of faith to reverence and embrace the words of Christ (this is my body,) than to wrest them violently to a strange and improper sense, or to determine what exceeds the capacity of men and angels. We do not find fault with a genera* explication of the manner. We confess the necessity of a supernatural and heavenly change, and that the signs cannot become sacraments but by the infinite power of God. The bread, as I have often said, does not only repre- sent the body of our Lord, but also, being received, we are truly made parta- kers of that precious body ; for so saith St. Jerome, ' th^ body and blood of Christ is made at the prayer of the priest ; that is, the elements so qualified, that beincr received, it becomes the communion of the body and blood of Ohrist, which it could not without the preceding prayers. And if it seem 'impossible that the flesh of Christ should descend, and come to be our food through so great a distance, we must remember how much the power of the 1 \o\y Spirit exceeds our sense and our apprehensions, and how absurd it would be to undertake to measuie his immensity by onr weakness and narrow capa- city, and so make our faith to conceive and believe what our reason cannot comprehend. Yet our faith doth not ciiuse, or make that presence, but appre- hends it as most truly and really effected by the w^ord of Christ. The faith whereby we are said to eat the flesh of Christ, is not that only whereby W6 believe that h« died for our sir.i, for tUs faith is required and supposed U THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 235 iib^ed- the sacramental manducation ; but more properly that whereby wa bt:iiev€ those words of Christ, 'this is my body.' For in this mystical eating by the wonderfiii power of the Holy Ghost, we do invisibly receive th« tubstah :e of CkrisVs body and blood, as much as if we should eat and drink them h'ith visibly. It remains that we should with faith and humility admira this b»^ h and sacred mystery, v/hich our tongue cannot sufficiently explain, nor our heart conceive. The presence of Christ in this mystery is not opposed to distance but to absence, which only could depnve us of the benefit and frn'^n' cerning the ♦xuth of Christ's body and blood in the Eucharist." — (De ScrijHor Eccles.) Sirmondus thus — " He so first explained the genuine sense of the Catholic church, that he opened the way to the rest, who afterwards in great numbers wrote upon the Bame argument,"-— (In vita Paschasii.) The archbishop of Mentz, in the nmth century, writes, " Some (says he) of late, not having a right opinion concerning the sacra- ment of the body and blood of our Lord, have said that this is the body and blood of our Lord, which was born of the Virgin Mary, and in which our Lord suffered upon the cross and roso from the dead ; which error (says he) WE HAVE OPPOSED WITH ALL OUR MIGHT." — (Epist. ad Hcribaldum, c. 3^.) Transubstantiation was also opposed by Heribaldus, Bishcp of Auxerres in France, by John Scotus Erigena, (which means an Irishman) and Bertram of Corby. Bertram tells us in his* preface, that " They who according to their several opinions talked of the difficulties about Christ^s body and blood, were divided with no small schism." My friend has seen that Eutyches, the heretic, believed in transubstantiation, and that the doctrine was opposed by several writers, without any ecclesiastical fulmination having been directed against them. Even the second councd of Ni:e, as has been already observed, declared, as one reason^ for worship- ing the image of Christ, that he is not sensibly present on eaith, and anathematized all who asserted, that Christ was not circum- scribed as to his humanity. Several Roman Catholic writers virtually admit the modern origin of transubstantiation. Scotus allows, that the doctrine was not always considered as necessary to be believed, but that the necessity of believing it was conse- quent to the declaration of the church made in the council of Lateran, under Pope Innocent III. — In sent. L. 4, Dist THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 289 Durandus frankly discovers his inclination, " To have believed the contrary, if the church had not by that determina* lion obliged men to beheve it." — In sent. L. 4, Dist. 1 1, CI. 1, N. 15. Tonstal, Bishop of Durham, also admits, that " Before the fourth Lateran council, men were at liberty as to the mannei of Christ's presence in the sacrament." — De Euchar. lib. i, p. 146. Erasmus, who lived and died in the Roman church, and than whom no man was better acquainted with the ancient Fathers, confesses that it was " Late before the church defined tran substantiation, unknown to the ancienti both name and thing-." — 1 Epist. ad Corinth, c. 7, Citante etiam Salmerone, torn. 9, tract 16, p. 168. Alphonsus a Casiro says, that " Concerning the tran substantiation of the bread into the body of Christ, there is seldom any mention in the ancient writers." — De Haeres. hb. 8. In connection with this subject, I meet the strange position of my friend relative to the Waldenses, namely, that they believed in transubstantiation, by a quotation from JVIilner^s End of Con* iroversy : " It is incontestible, and carried to the highest degree of moral evidence, that all Christians, of all the nations of the world, Greeks as well as Latins, Africans as well as Europeans, except Protestants, and a handful of Vau- Dois peasants, have in all ages believed, and still believe in the Real Presence and Transubstantiation." — London, 1824, 5th edit. p. 273. Here Milner distinctly admits, that the Vaudois or Waldenses did not believe in transubstantiation. The following is an extract from their Confession of Faith which was read publicly before Francis I, of France : ** We believe, that the holy sacrament of our Lord Jesus Christ's table u a sacred memorial and aii act of thanksgiving, for the benefits which we have received by the death of Christ ; and that it ought to be celebrated in the assembly of the saints, in faith and charity, and by an inward experience of Christ's merits. It is thus, by partaking of the bread and wine, we have communion with the body and blood of Christ, as we read in the holy scriptures." Again, we read in the Confession of Faith of 1120. — Leger's History, p. 92. ** We believe, that after this life there are only two places, one for tho saved, which is called JParadise, and one for the damned, which is called Hell, utterly denying that feigned purgatory of Antichrist, invented in opposition to truth." " We believe that the sacraments are signs or the visible forms of hoW things." Did they offer masses for souls in purgatory, when they did not believe in its existence? I have referred to their standard formularies ; and any one who will examine their history, as given by Mr. Gillie, will find additional proofs that they protested againr^t the sacrifice of the mass. 240 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. Luther, Mr. Maguire says, is on his side. This is the first time in which I have heard, that consubstantiation is the same with transubstantiation. I confess, I am somewhat surf>rised, that most of the early reformers were enabled so easily to throw off ^'w toil a doctrine which so closely adheres to persons brought up ir the pale of the church of Rome. I do not jusdfy the lan- guage which Luther employed when condemning those who w.'ote against his principles. Mr. Maguiie has stated, that it is t spiritual body which is offered up in the mass. Does this j)pinion agree with the council of Trent? The council informs as that — " In the sacrifice of the mass, the same Christ is cotitained and uiibloodily im- molated, who once offered himself bloodily on the cross,^"* Sess. 22. ch. 2, Was it a spiritual body that suffered on Calvary? I deny that the devil is omnipresent. His influence is extended by the agency of innumerable spirits who are under his control. I did not circumscribe the presence of Christ. I believe, that, where two or three meet together in his name. He is in the midst of them. But, though he be present through the universe in his divinity, yet the heavens will receive his manhood till the time of the restitution of all things. — Acts, iii, 21. I have here the book of Sir Edwin Sandys. Mr. Maguire did not accept my offer, that a Protestant and a Roman Catholic should examine the work. Let them compare mine with Mr. Maguire's edition, and they will find mine to be the original volume. My friend has talked of my having Trinity college at my back : it was not handsome to speak is this style. When Mr. Maguire expressed a wish to obtain access to a public Ubrary, ( requested a friend to introduce him at Marsh's library ; and / informed Mr. Maguire, that my friend was ready to accom- /any him thither. Did this circumstance look as if I wished to take any unfair advantage of Mr. Maguire ? The passover, my opponent obs^erves, was a type of Christ. The Lamb in the passover was indeed a type of the Saviour, not in transub- stantiation, but of the body on Calvary. The passover was ?>erhaps typical of the feast of the eucharist, which God's people celebrate in commemoration of their dying, risen, and glorified Redeemer. Mr. Maguire. — I have caughi my friend, Mr. Pope, in the act of using garbled quotations. I have already asserted that be took his quotations obsteiricante many^ and I now insist that I have detected him in making a false quotation. Before 1 shall expose either his disingenuity, or, what 1 rather suspect, his want of industry, I shiU for a moment recur to the work as- cribed to Gelasius, and give you the rea.sont' which are assigaef transubstantiation. He proceeds to say, in his second dia- )ogue, immediately after the words quoted by Mr. Pope — **The 3lements, after consecration, are to be adored.^^ But Mr. Pope took good care to foist upon us the word venerate for the word adore^ as if Theodoret had said, th( elements after consecration are to be venerated^ whereas he ej.pressly ^ays, they are to be adored. Mr. Pope, in his version, has substituted the word '^ venerated^^ for the word " adored " I charge him with a griev- ous mangling of the text. Adort d is the word, as will be found Dy a reference to the originaL If Theodoret denied transub- stantiation, would he say that vne elements of bread and wine after consecration are to be adored? Surely he would not tell us to adore a piece of bread and a drop of wine. Mr. Pope therefore should consign to execration the author by whom he was misled, for I am unwilling to believe that he would himself so distort the original, and seek to palm upon an unsuspecting public a text so monstrously garbled. Theodoret in his dialogue, introduces Orthodoxus (a Catholic) and Eranistes (a heretic) disputing uwon the Eucharist. Hav- ing previously disputed about the Eutychian heresy, concerning (he two natures of Christ, (the Eutychians contending that the kumaniiy was absorbed in the divinity^) Eranistes puts the fol- lowing questions to Orthodoxus : — "EI&ANiSTKs, — How do you call these (the elements) after consecration? Orthodoxus, — Th. k0dy and blood of Christ. 21 842 TMisi L?ot;i«i>«E OF TRAN8UBSTANT1&.TI0N. Er. — Do you believe that you perceive the body and >lood of ChriutT Or, — I do believe it. Er. — Why are the names changed ? Or. — The reason is evident to those who understand the mystery ; «ai Christ would not have us regard the nature of what we see, but as the namef of the elements are changed, so to apprehend by faith the change which ii made in them by grace. The mystical symbols after consecration dc not depait from their own nature, but they are understood to be the things wkick they are made, and so they are believed^ and they are adored as being the ihing$ which they are believed,^^ Thus, it must be said, that Theodoret urged the idolatroiia mdoration of mere bread and wine, or that he beheved and taught tlie doctrine of transubstantiation. What are the things to be believed when the body and blooc' are adored? Is it to be believed that they remam bread ana wme ? What a wonderful effort of faith truly ! But Ortho- doxus tells us, that the things believed are to be adored. The Fathers all agree in the doctrine of transubstantiation, and anathematize all those who controvert that doctrine. With regard to the parallel between Transubstantiation and the Trin- ity, my friend denies its existence, but I call upon him to prove that transubstantiation is not a mystery, as Theodoret calls it. He denies that transubstantiation is founded upon scripture. Christ, the eternal Son of a good and gracious God, made 3 wonderful promise in the sixth chapter of St. John, shall we say, after reading that solemn and divine promise, that he left nothing to us but a mere bit of bread and wine ! Is it not evi- dent, that he intended to leave with us a grand and noble gift worthy of the Testator, and in accordance with his omnipotence? Yet, if we are led by the Calvinistic doctrines, propounded by Mr. Pope, we must believe that he intended only to bequeath to us a mere bit of bread, and a drop wine ! Would that be wor- thy of the Deity ? Can such a belief be reconciled with the facts recorded in scripture 1 There we find that he raised the expectations of his disciples to the highest pitch, and that many of them went away shocked at his expressions. He did rx)t correct their error, if such it were. When he came to his last supper, what did he say? There, while solemnly seated with his apostles, he raised his eyes to heaven, he took bread in hia hands, blessed it, and broke it saying, " Take ye and eat— THIS IS MY BODY." It is not my custom to lose my temper, and to indulge in harsh and angry expressions — I will not say, that I fling back with indignation any of the charges brought forward by my opponent. I have been taught to exercise a self-control, and 1 know that GUI Saviour tells us — *' Love your enemies ; do good to there that hate you ; bless them that curse you, and pray for them that eaJunuiiate you ! And to him that striketb thee on one cheek THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. S^t pffer also the other." This is the practical part of Christianity It accords not with the suggestions of flesh and blood, nor with the maxims of modern gospel liberty. Ahnega teipsum is th** precept of the gospel, though it may form no portion of Mr. Pope's moral creed, By my forbearance upon this occasion^ I shall furnish Mr. Pope with, at least, one instance of Christian humility. I may here remark, that one of the newspapers has, in the report of a former day's discussion, represented me as appropriating to myself, that which I quoted as the language of our Saviour — " Learn of me, because I am meek and humble of b.':^art." With regard to the senses, my friend has said, that they can- not all contradict themselves. But a portion may, and I made an exception for the sense of hearing. I referred in support of that portion to St. Paul—" Faith cometh by hearings and hear- ing by the words of Christ." — (Rom. x, 17.) Hearing then iwj the only sense constituted as a judge of mysteries. But I ask, did not all the senses contradict themselves, when our Saviour walked upon the waters, and it is recorded of his disciples — " Piitaverent Phardasma esse.^^ Did not the senses here deceive the Apostles, as they did others, in several cases in the Old Tes- tament] They did not contradict themselves in the strict sense of the word. The matters which they related were not founded on fact, but they related what appeared to themselves. So far their relation was correct. My friend says, that the mistake into which the sense of sight falls as to the stick in the water may be corrected by the sense of touch. But if one sense con tradicts another in rebus natur alihus^ how much more likely tc do so in things of a supernatural order 1 He asks me how do I know that Christ spoke the words, '* This is my body" — which he has unsuccessfully endeavoured to explain away. I answer, that I depend here upon the au- thority of the church of Christ. Mr. Pope depends on the trans- lators of the Bible in the reign of James I. I place my reliance upon an authority to which our divine Redeemer expressly pro- mised infallibility. Mr. Pope believes in no church, but relies ipon his own private judgment. I called upon him to show how % P:otestant could, according to his principles, make an act of feith. Has he ever answered the question 1 He n^curs to Melchisedech. But here I have him caught in his own net, as in the instance of Theodoret. He says that Melchisedech made no offering — I proved that he made an offer- ing of bread and wine. St. Jerome maintains the same opinion, and St. Paul evidently alludes to it when he speaks of our Saviour being " a priest for ever according to the order of Mel- ehisedech." Mr. Pope talks of my admission, that the4e 4s na 244 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIAT. ON. prohibftion to the reading of the scriptures in the three sacred languages, Hebrew, Greek, and Latin, because port ^ns of scrips ture have been published in each of them. In respect to the vulgar tongues, the church never prohibited the reading of tb€ Bciptures in them. She restricted the right where she though it would be abused ; she restricted it in order to prevent the multiplication of heresies, and the generation of sects, such as the Anabaptists, the Muggletonians, and hundreds of others, who, like a swarm of locusts, or the ten plagues of Egypt, infest the country, distract the community, and rend asunder the Protes- tant churches. It was to guard against such evils that the Catholic church wisely forbade the indiscriminate reading of the scriptures. Mr. Pope has accused our translation of the Bible as being filled with various errors. Yet when the "saints" travel through the country, they would persuade the poor people that there is no difference between our Bible and theirs. But when they come to speak to scholars on the subject, they will have it that thousands of errors exist in our Bible. They then openly tell rank falsehoods to promote their cause — I do not accuse Mr. Pope of rank falsehood. But is it not evident from this, khat there is neither honour nor veracity amongst the generahty of the ** saints "? He says, that by reason of the admissions which I have made, I would be called to an account if an inqui- sition existed in this country ; and that moreover I would be excruciated for my heterodoxy. But Protestants are in general very little acquainted with our religion. They have through their ignorance transformed our faith into an hideous caricature. He says that the Italian version was admitted by me to be superior to the Latin Vulgate. I deny the assertion. I said, that the Italian version was admitted to be the purest copy of the Pible extant — it was for that reason that St. Jerome, as he ad- mits in his preface, followed the Italian version, and upon it laid the foundation of the Latin Vulgate. Where is the contradic- tion now^? Mr. Pope quoted a Catholic writer to prove that Christ was oot sensibly present in the sacrament. I never said that Christ was sensibly present in the sacrament. Let Mr. Pope remem- 06r that Scotus, the author from whom he quotes, was condem- ned by the Catholic church for many of his positions, w hich are fill from being deemed orthodox. As to Erasmus, there are gome of his opinions not very orthodox, though he, like Henry VIII, thought it safest to die in the Catholic church. — Like many of the present day, who, in the enjoyment of youth and riches, cast their derisions at Popery, and yet are glad, when Iheir end approaches, to return to the mother church. Mr. Vom ntroduces Durandus. It .a true he held 09inio«f THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTaNTI ATION. 2 4A fontrary to those of the church, till the definition of the churci was declared. Then he yielded as he ought to the authority of the Catholic church, as the illustrious Fenelon did in later days. I asserted that the first of the Waldenses preserved the sacrific€ of the mass. But their followers changed their principles, as those of Luther and Calvin did ; the Lutherans preaching one doctrine and the Calvinists another. Here, for instance, Mr, Pope admits only eighteen out of the thirty-nine articles of the church of England — others v/ill he found to deny them alto* gether, and more will reject the Anthanasian creed. Such are the multiplied gradations produced by evangelical liberty and private judgment. It is found necessary by Mr. Pope to con- nect himself with with the Waldenses (perhaps the maddes^ of all heretics.) I would beg leave to ask him., had the Waldv^n- ses a church, a ministry, a liturgy, or any other mark of the true church of Christ, or indeed of any church at all, and if not, from whom did he receive the scriptures? I must here remark, that his obtrusive connexion with the Waldenses cannot add respect- ability to his origin. The Waldenses were one rotten branch lopped from the parent trunk by the Catholic church. I regret extremely I did not bring the ecclesiastical tree along with me. [Here Mr. Pope ha-ided to Mr, Maguire Dr, Milner''s " End of Controversy,^^ containing the ecclesiastical tree.] Oh ! I perceive, gentlemen, to my great surprise, that this tree, instead of exhibiting a naked trunk, is weighed down by those branches which I thought had been cut off, but which seem determined to cling with desperation to that parent stock upon which alone th; ir vitality depends, but from which they can never more receive sap or nutriment, by means of that moral separation which originated with themselves. Here are Cerinthus, Arius, Montanus, Apollinaris, Manicheus, Eutyches, Pelagius, Socinus, Huss, Wickliffe, Waldo, Luther, Cranmer, struggling to connect themselves with the Catholic church, and claiming, upon some occasions, a sympathetic relationship with each other. How, now, Mr. Pope, will you or the present Protestant church be able to ^itch yourselves to those various heretics ? Were they, I demand, or were they not, more different from the prin- ciples of the present reformers than they were from the Catholic church ; and would not the ancient heretics anathematize Mr, Pope and his doctrines as jealously as the Catholic chiirch herself? Before I conclude, I will give you a few additional quotationa from the Fathers, touching the faith of the primitive church. St. Cyril of Alexandria, commenting on John, torn, iv, p. 252, after quoting the words of St. John, " I am the living bread liiai came down from heaven," — (vi, 5L) 21* 246 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION. " The manna was the type, the shadow, and the image. *1 am thft liv n| bread, if any one shall eat of this bread, he shall live for ever.' They tViat eat of the manna are dead, because it gave not life; he that eats this bread, that is me, or my flesh, shall live for ever. Our Lord Jesus, by his own f^esh, gives life to us, and his blood is not that of any common man, but the natural blood of life itself ' For he that eateth my flesh and drinketh my blood abideth in me and I in him.' — (John, vi, 56.) As he that joins wax to wax forms of them one body, so it seems to me, he that eats the flesh of our Saviour, and drinks his precious blood, as himself savs, becomes one with him. Let these Verbose and absurd men tell us with whose body the sheep of the church are ?cH, or from what springs her children are refreshed. For if the bcdy of God 6 (Jelivered, thus God is the true God, Christ the Lord, not a mere man, nor in angel, as some pretend. And if it be the blood of God, the cup of God, this God is not purely God, one of the adorable Trinity, the Son of Goa but the Wo^'d of God 'nade man. But if the body of Christ be our food, and the blood of Chris! mi drink, and this Christ be a mere man, how is eternal life promised to those who approach the holy table ? And how again shall this body be divided here, and in many places, and not be diminished ? A mere body cannot impart life to those who receive it. Wherefore let us receive the b. jdy of life itself; that life which for us has dwelt in our body : and let us drink his sacred blood for the remission of our sins, and so partake of that immortality which is in him ; believing Christ to be the priest and the victim, him that oflfers, and he that is oflTered." St. John Chrysostom, Horn, ii, ad Pop. Antioch, I. i, p. 37 — "Elias left his garment to his disciple : but the Son of God left us his own flesh. The prophet, indeed, threw ofT his covering, but Christ ascending, took with him his body and left it also for us. Let us not therefore repine, nor fear any difiiculties, for he who refused not to shed his blood for all, and communicated to us his body and blood, what will he not do for our salvation ?" And, Horn, ii, in cap. 14. Matt, i, 7. — " Let us then touch the hem of his garment, or rather let us, if we be so t^isposed, possess him entire, for his body now lies before us, not to be touched oaly, but to be eaten and to satiate us. iVnd if they who touched his garment drew so much virtue from it, how much more shall we draw who possess him whole ? When, therefore, thou seest the priest presenting the body to thee, think not that it is his hand, but the hand of Christ that is stretched towards thee." So, gentlemen, that objection of Mr. Pope is here fully answered, viz, — that the priest made his God- -for here St. Chrysostom declares, that the action is not performed by man, but by Christ himself— which agrees with St. Cyril, that Christ ia both the priest and the victim. Mr. Pope. — My friend has drawn a strange distinction between i'Utward appearances and species. The schoolmen, borrowing from oiristotle, introduced a curious fancy ; they supposed, that the universe consisted of a mass of matter, invested by certain forms and quaUties which possess a real and substantial being. This was a very fortunate discovery for the school divines ; it served to explain the bodily presence of Christ in the sacrament; the Si ibstance of the bread and wine, said they, is converted into his body and blood ; but the absolute accidents, the substantia. THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATlON. 24* forn s of both remain as before ; hence the term transubstantia- lion. Now surely it is most ridiculous to assert, that that which has all the properties of bread, should not be bread ; and that that which has none of the properties of flesh, should be flesh. 1 am not quite so certam that the gravy is the blood of the animal ; however, I congratulate Mr. Maguire upon the striol observance of the washing of feet in the church of Rome. Upor. a certain day, I am informed that a golden ewer is prepared, and the Pope washes the feet of some mendicants. I wish to know does Mr. Maguire follow the example of his holmess at Rome My friend observes, that Christ can extricate himself from the elements, if likely to corrupt. Let us examine the Roman ^ilissal upon this head. ** tr* through negligence any part of the blood of Christ should fall upon th« ground or upon the table, let it be Ucked up, and let the place be sufficiently scraped, and the scrapings burned, but let the ashes be buried in holy grounc. But if it should fall upon the stone of the altar, let the priest drink up the drop, and let the place be well washed, and the washing thrown into holy ground, [f the drop should reach the first, second, and third hnen-cloth, let the cloths be three times washed where the drop fell, the chalice having been placed under, and let the water of ablution be thrown into holy ground. But if it should fall only on the sacerdotal vestments themselves, they ought in the same manner be washed, and the washing thrown into holy ground. If it should fall upon the cloth or the carpet placed underneath the feet, let it be well washed as before. If it should happen, that all the blood should be poured forth after consecration, if indeed any, even a little, shall remain, let that be taken, and let that which has been mentioned be done with the remainder of the blood. But if none shall remain, let the priest place wine in the chalice again, and let him consecrate it from that place 'likewise after supper ;' the oblation, however, of the chalice having been made as before If the priest should disgorge the eucharist, if the ssecies should appear entire, let them be reverently taken, if nausea does not prevent; in that case, let the consecrated species be cautiously separated, and laid up in some secret place, until they become corrupted ; and afterwards let them be thrown into holy ground. But if the species do not appear, let that be burned which has been disgorged, and the ashes thrown into holy ground. If the consecrated host, or any part of it, fall upon the ground, let it be reverently taken up, anj the place where it fell, cleansed, and a Httle scraped, and let the dust, o scrapings of that nature, be thrown into holy ground. If it should fall with- out the corporal upon the napkin or in any manner upon any cloth, let the napkin or cloth be carefully washed, and let the washing itself be poured out tfon holy ground." — De defect, circ. Miss. occ. Miss. Rom. 1822, Dubl. Pardon me for having read so much, and excuse me for not reading the whole. I wonder, why such a process should be enjoined, if the Saviour's body is supposed not to be present afl3r the decomposition of the elements I I have already proved, that the difficulty of convincing the Socinian, is greater on the part of Mr. Maguire than on mine. [ observed, that I could argue on the scriptures, as acknowledged by the Socinian, while my friend would refer him to the universa* tonsent of mankind. Now we have shown, that Arianism at ont 248 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATION, period prevailed in the church of Rome ; the Sociniun wilil, therefore, reply, that he too has tradition on his side ; he will therefore wish Mr. Maguire good morning, when he introduce* the infallibility and authority of his church. Il* my friend's quotations from Protestant bishops be correct, I can only say that they were not true to their principles, for the articles of the established church, emphatically assert, that the elements should not be adored. We are told, that there is a difference between a mystery and a miracle. Let the opinion go forth, and stand as a ruled case, that there is no miracle in transubstantiation. Some of the Fathers, I allow, used strong expressions respect- mg the eucharist. If Theodoret beheved in transubstantiation, he could not have met, in the way in which he does, the argu- ment of Eutyches. He spoke of a morale but not a physical change, and conceived that the moral change, which, he believed, took place, entitled the elements to respect and veneration, Mr. Maguire asks, did Christ leave behind him nothing but bread and wine 1 Yes ; he has bequeathed to his people the records of inspiration, which bear witness to his glorious work on Calvary, when he bowed his head and gave up the ghost. I asked Mr. Maguire, how he knew that the words, " this is mv body," are to be found in the Bible. I am told, by the authority of his church. Now% the examination of the proofs of thi/t authority, demands the exercise of sense ; and if so, why shouU not the same exercise of sense be admitted upon transubstantia tion ? I employed strong language, 'tis true, in refutation of th^ charge which Mr. Maguire brought against me — but believe m^*, I did not speak under the impulse of passion. Mr. Maguifti has directed me to himself as an example of humility. I appt)M to the present meeting, whether we have not had a singu^f exhibition of effrontery on his part, in defiance of common sens -» and rational argumentation 1 My friend has referred us to thj instance of the Saviour having been taken for a spirit ; but he should remember, that at the moment the Apostles did not dis- tinctly see him ; but as soon as they heard his voice^ they cried out, "it is the Lord." As to an act of faith being made by a Protestant, I shall not go over the same ground so often travelled before. Mr. Maguire observes, that St. Paul applies the temi priest to Melchisedech : but this circumstmce does not prove the bread and wine to have been a sacrifice. The truth of this observation can be seen, as I have already said, by cor suiting the Old Testament. I called upon Mr. Maguire to prove, that the term >sq6vg^ a sacrificing priest, was ever applied to the min- isters of Christ in the new dispensation ; he has not met that question. I again assert, that there is no tsqevg on earth, pos- f easing any authority under the Christian dispensation. Thi THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANl lATION. 24b pnesthood of Christ is unchangeable, and therefore not to be transferred ; that of the Jews was changeable, because they wer« subject ^1 death. The priesthood is now concentrated in him, who sits for ever on the right hand of the Majesty in the Hea- vens. My friend has remarked, that Protestants assert, thai thcrf* i?. no difference between the Roman Catholic and Protes- tant BiOle ; the Douay version, I admit, though corrupted, stili lelains fundamental truths. You shall hear Dr. Doyle's opinion of the Protestant translation : — *'Gl. Do you consider the authorized translation of the church i,f England as of a s^ifficiently perverse quality, to merit the description, (given in tha encyclioai letter ot the Pope, dated Rome, May 3, 1824, — that by a perverse interpretation, the gospel of Christ may be turned into a human gospel, or what is worse, into the gospel of the devil ?) ^* A. As I said before, God forbid I should so consider it ; for though it has many errors, / consider it one of the noblest translations that ever has been pro^ duced; this, I say, while looking upon it, as abounding with inaccuracies, And having many errors." — App. to Report for Com, on Education in Ireland^ p. 791. In the opinion of Dr. Doyle, we perceive, that the authorized version is one of the noblest translations that ever has been pro- duced. I still insist, that, in several instances, the translations in the authorized version, regarded by Ward as erroneous, have been adopted by Dr. Murray, in his edition of the Douay Bible lately published. (See Hamilton's Letters to the Ronaan Catholic Archbishop of Dublin, on the State of the present English R. C. Bible.) Mr. Maguire persists in saying, that the Waldenses believed in transubstantiation. In refutation of the assertion, I have read to you extracts from their creeds, and a passage from Dr. Milner's End of Controversy. You have heard much of the Apostolic tree in Dr. Milner. You will find, upon examination, however, that the mention of some Popes is altogether omitted. To change the metaphor — I should like to know, when the links were broken in the ApostoUc chain, for instance, at the time of the council of Constance, by what process the spiritual Vulcan was able to join them together again ? My friend has talked of the Waldenses being heretics. I have already referred you to the commendation of Lewis XII, and the report of his commis- fioners which prove that the Waldenses held the truths of the hlessed gospel As to Mr. Maguire's quotation from Luther, ] I an prove that that which Mr. Maguire says, was a literal con- versation with the devil, is merely figurative. Sagittarius proves, Ihat Justus Jonas, Luther's colleague, who translated this piece jf Luther's writings into Latin, left out many words, particulari) Ihe following passage : " Jlffo corde^ maltas enim noctet mihi ecerbaa ftciL'* e50 THE DOCTRINE OF TRANSUBSTANTIATIOH. Which ought immediately to follow the first sentence— " Satan mecum coipit ejusmodi disputationem." So that in English the translation should be : " Satan began with me in my heart the following disputation." As to the quotations from the works of other reformers tvhica Mr. Maguire adduced, the places where they may be found, no? having been stated by him, I may truly say that they ai*e so absurd as to carry their own refutation upon their very face. With respect to the doctrine of transubstantiation : I have shown that our Saviour did not always speak literally — that he frequently employed figurative language — that there is a figuie in the very context — that the Syriac language possesses no word meaning to signify., and that therefore our Lord was under the necessity of using the auxiliary verb. 1 observed that, if tran- substantiation be true, we can have no proof of the resurrection of Christ — that it destroys the nature of a sacrament, and con- tradicts the scripture which asser*s, that the body of Christ shall not see corruption. I have appealed to the Fathers ; let our quotations be confronted. There is a suspicion that the Father& have been corrupted by the church of Rome ; but the Protes- tants possess no index expurgatorius. I would ask, what is the use of the doctrine of transubstantiation ? Can the body and blood of Christ, literally received into the body, benefit the soul? Christ suffered in his body on the cross, and in that respect his flesh has profited, from its union with the Godhead. But did I submit to be a cannibal, I should yet have to learn, by what process an immaterial spirit can be benefited by a m.aterial sub- stance. I appeal to your judgments ; which is most in accord- ance with common sense, reason, scripture, and the character of Grod, — the doctrine which holds that a man eats his Redeemer, or that which teaches, that the soul is fed, not by eating the symbols of the body and blood of Christ, but by the truths con- tained in the word of God 1 If the early Christians believed such a doctrine, I ask, would it not have been brought forward as a charge against them by anti- Christian writers ? — (Iren» Fragm.. ap. CEcum. in 1 Pet. ii, 12.) Yet such a charge was never njade. My friend has accused me of not being under the influence of moral principle. Let our lives be contrasted, and then will It be seen which of the 'wo is most influenced by Christian prin- ciple. If Mr. Maguii 3 would read the works of Luther, he would find, that although Lutner would lay no other foimdation tnan that which has been laid, which is Christ Jesus the Lord, jret he delighted to erect upon that basis such a moral edifice aa dhould be to the praise and the glory of the most high God. i THE DOCTRINE OF TR aNSL EST ANTIATION. 251 naintahi that in the New Testament leqevg is never app]i£;d tc Christian ministers ; and I argue aga'nst the Roman Catholic priesthood as St. Paul argued against that of the Jews. — Ileb. x. *• The law having a shadow of the good things to come, not the very imaga of the things, by the self-same sacrifices, which they offer continually every year, can never make the comers thereunto perfect. Because the ^<">''shippera oiine cleansed should have no conscience of sin any longer. But in them there is made a commemoration of sins every year ; for it is impossible LUfit with the blood of oxen and goats sin should be taken away." Again, "And every priest, indeed, standeth daily ministering and often ofler* mg the same sacrifices wiiich can never take away sins; but this man offering one sacrifice for sins, for ever sitteth at the right hand of God, from hcn'^eforth expecting until his enemies be made his footstool, for by one obla" t^nymous terms. What is the opinion of Delahogue upon this distiiiotion between fundamental and non-fundamental articles 1 "Jam manifestum est distinctionem articulorum fundamentaUum et nor fundainentalium merum esse commentum, scripturis evidentur repugnans, toti traditioni ignotum, et in desperatae causae praesidium a Jurioeo exc<^gita- tum."— P. 16. " It is now manifest, tliat the distinction between fundamental and non- fundamental articles is a mere comment, evidently opposed to scripture, unknown to tradition altogether, and invented by Juriaeus, as the last re- source of a desperate cause." I wonder whether Mr. Maguire is at unity with Delahogue on this subject; and we know that Delahogue is the class-book of Maynooth. We assert, as a positive matter of fact, that all the great Protestant communions in their published confessions, are agreed on the essential truths of the Christian system. First, as to the head of the church — they hold that Christ is head over all things to his church, God over all, blessed for ever. They are agreed upon the standard of faith — the Bible, and the Biblo alone, is the religion of Protestants. I hold in my hand a book entitled " Corpus et Suntagma ' Jonfessionum," &c. A Body and Collation of the Confessions if Faith, which were authenticated, and edited in the name of the Churches in different kingdoms and nations, published in the most famous convention, and approved of by public autho- rity," &c. 1512. Any gentleman who pleases may examine the work ; he shall %ave it for the purpose. From it he will discover, that the great Protestant communions coincide on the canon of scripture, in their views of tne guilt and natural depravity of man, and on that great fundamental truth, that the sinner is justified by faith only, in the atonement of the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, — that they harmonize on the doctrine of the necessity of a change of heart, ere the soul can be admitted into the kingdom of glory — that they iccord in the scriptural truth, that the faith of the gospel opens the affections, purifies the inmost recesses of the soul, emancipates the believer from the overwhelming influ* •nee of the world, binds him by the stroi^est moral obUgation»— 256 THE WANT OF UNITY OF in a word, consecrates him to be a vessel meet for his mastei^i use. These are the great essential truths on which all lea. Protestants agree. In support of these fundamental tenets^, I appeal to that blessed volume in which, to use the words o Beiiarmine, " All things necessary for all are written by the Apostles." " Dice ilia omnia scripta esse ab Apostolis quae sunt omnibua necessariaf &- " — De Verho non Scripto, Lib. iv, c, 11. To the Apostolic records I appeal, in support of these doc- tnr^es ; and to the printed confessions of faith, in demonstiation lha\ on essential doctrines Protestant communions are found to accord. Having made these few observations on the unity subsisting between the Protestant communions, I throw back apon my friend the charge of want of unity in his own church. I assert that his church has not unity in reference to the standard of faith, in reference to doctrine, and various other points — to which I shall presently take the liberty of calling your attention. My friend will tell you, doubtless, that his church possesses one head, as the source and centre of unity — that the Pope, as successor to St. Peter, is supreme. But it will devolve on him to prove, that Peter was the supreme Apostle, and that the Popes are his successors. I shall assign my reasons for the opinion, that Peter did not possess juiisdiction over the other Apostles. Peter was speciall/ the Apostle of the Jews, and was nox appointed to watch over the Gentile church. Paul was the Apostle of the Gentiles, and if any on that ground could lay claim to supremacy, the Apostle Paul was the individual. Mark the absurdity into which this doctrine of Peter's supremacy would lead us. St. John survived Peter about twenty years. If thi8 prerogative therefore belongs to the bishop of Rome, we should nave an uninspired man, whether Linus, or Clement exercising jurisdiction over an inspired Apostle ? The Apostles, permit me to add, never recognized Peter as supreme. At the last supper we find them disputing which oi them should be the greatest. Had they conceived that the Saviour, in the passage, " Thou art Peter," &c, had conferred superiority upon him, is it likely that such a dispute could have arisen amongst them ? xAnd if the Saviour had conferred any 8U( h authority upon Peter, would he not have referred the Apostles to his previous decision, in order to terminate the dis- putation: but he simply inculcates upon them a lesson of humiUty (Luke, xxii, 24.) When the Apostles had found that Samaria had received the Word of God, " they sent unto them Peter and John." — (Acts, viii, 14.) The inferior confessedly is sent by Ihe superior, and therefore neither Peter nor John were ubova the other Apostles At the first assembly in Jerusalem, though THE PROTESTANT CHl^RCHES 25? Peter and Janies both delivered their o[)inions, yet the opi now of James, and not that of Peter, was received by the assembly. (Acts, XV, IJ ) And in the letter which was subsequently written, ther^ is no mention whatever made of Peter. The decree thus commences, 'Thf Apostles and ancient or "iren, to the brethren of the Gentiles."— 1 33. Tho A[ 3stle Paal talks ol ischisms — "Eve y c ;e of you saith, I am of Paul, I of Apollos, and I of Cephas.'*— i Cor i 12. True, you will say, it was wrong to assert that they were under Paul or Apollos : but, I ask, what think you of " I am of Cephas or Peter?" / ask^ if Peter was the supremt apostle^ would Paul hai'c condemned the Corinthian Christians for putting themselves under the standard of the supreme head? Further — if to have one earthly head be the essential characteristic of the true Church, ihe C_.urch in the primitive times did not possess this centre of unity. No bishop assumed the title of supreme until Boniface III, in tho year 606. Na^ — this centre of unity has been the pregnant source of divisions in the church of Rome. We read of more than twenty schisms arising from the Popedom. At one period we find Pope fulminating agamst Pope for a seri of years. Stephen VI, abrogated the decrees of Pope Formosua his predecessor, drew his body out of his sepulchre, cut off hia fingers, because they had been used in ordination, and threw them into the Tiber ; alleging as a reason, that he obtained Peter's chair by perjury. Romanus, the next Pope, abrogated all the decrees of his predecessor, Stephen ; and as Platina observes, this quarrel had such an injurious influence, that every following Pope infringed, or wholly abrogated the acts of the foregoing. Again — the church of Rome is split on the subject of the tem- poral power of the Popes, also on infallibility. What shall we say of the heretical heads which have presided over the church of Rome. Pope Honorius was deposed for heresy by a general council. It is, indeed, a daring assumption on the part of man, to take on him an office which is the exclusive prerogative of tha Lord Jesus Christ, which no earthly being, however extensive his information, correct his principles, and mighty his intellectual powers may be, should dare to assume, an office which no combi* nation of talents, howev-er exalted, could qualify him to discharge. Mr. Maguire. — You have heard, gr^ntlemen, perhaps the best defence which could possibly bv, sei up for tne Protestant churches As to unity, I contend, that it is required by scrip* lure as a mark of that peace which Christ bequer^L^d to hia 22* 858 THE WANT OF UNITY OF followers — " My peace I leave with you — my peace I give you," — and as a token of that holiness which our Lord intended should, intil the consummation of ages, characterize the true church upon earth. You have heard the most ingenious defence which could be offered for the absence of all unity ; and you cannot have failed to observe that Mr. Pope has employed his usual tact on this occasion. I had put him on his defence as 'l a certain point of doctrine. I had left the ground clear for uim. But, instead of confining himself to the maintenance of his own principles on this particular point, and to an anticipation of my objections, he turns upon me, and, as has been his inva- riable practice, puts me upon my defence. In that respect Mr Pope deserves much credit for his ingenuity. I had hoped thai the discussion would terminate this day with good humour and ^ood feeling. Some expressions dropped from my opponent yesterday, which might as well have been spared. In stating ny arguments as to Mr. Pope's principles, I confined myself to rhe proof their inconsistency with the moral precepts of the jyospel. Though I took care that my arguments as to morality should be confined to the principles, and not addressed to the ir^dividual, my opponent has in return made personal allusions to my moral character. This I will say, that the comparison which my friend, Mr. Pope, has drawn between his moral char- acter and mine, was not provoked by any observation that had fallen from me. I would not, however, shrink from such an investigation at any time, that it might be shown to be calculated to serve any good or useful purpose. I have endeavoured through life, though, indeed, I cannot lay claim to the title of *' saint," to square my conduct agreeably to the maxims of the gospel ; and I believe I may say, that in the habits of social intercourse, neither my Protestant nor Catholic friends have had any thing to complain of on my part. Mr. Pope has told me, and he laid great stress on the observation, that there is no such expression in the New Testament as i6(^6vg^ signifying a sacr- Being priest. Mr. Pope. — What I said was, that it remains to be proved Ihat the word te^euj is employed in the New Testament, to da- gignate a minister of the New Testament. Mr. Maguire. — I beg to refer you to the fifth chapter of the Apocalypse of St. John. Here the Apostle describes a book which he saw lying at the right hand of him, who sat upon the throne, sealed with seven seals — he also saw a mighty un^il 4rho exclaimed with a loud voice — ** Who is worthy lo open the book and to break the seals 7" THE PROTEiTANT CHURCHES. 259 And no person could be found either in heaven or on earth, b. under (he earth, to open the book, or look into it. The e>,&ngelist then proceeds to say that he wept much, because there was none fuuiid worthy, cither to open the book, or to look at it. And one of the elders said to him — " Weep not, behold the Lion of the tribe of Juda and thi root of David^ pi^vaileth to opf n the book and to break its seven seals." In the 8ch verse, he says — that when the Lion of the tribe of J jda, (niear^ng Christ) had opened the book, the four animals an«l the four and twenty elders prostrated themselves before the Lamb, saying — "Thou art worthy, O Lord, to receive the book, and to break its seals, because ihou hast been slain, and hast redeemed us unto God in thy blood, of every tribe, and tongue, and people, and nation, and thou hast made us a kingdom and priests and we will reign upon the earth." I now wish it to be remarked, that the persons who are pre- viously styled IJQea^vTFQoi^ — Presbyters — are in the tenth verse styled Fe^ei, translated by St. Jerome, Sacerdotes — the Vulgate translation of the tenth verse is — " Et fecisti nos Deo nostro regnum et Sacerdotes ; et regnabimus super terram." Here the four and twenty elders, who are called in the fourth verse of the forf^going chapter, IJQea^vreQoi,, and who are said to have been ( lothed in white vestments, give glory to God that he had made them priests, as St. Jerome renders it, and that they will reign /jpon the earth. Now if these had not been priests of the ne\^' law how could they say, " we will reign upon the earth." But, &s priests of the new law, the expression was reasonable, as they had ruled and are still ruling by their representative successors, it is admitted that iBQsvg is applied to them, and I have shown that they must have been priests of the new law. Mr. Pope laid much stress on the fact that our Lord spoke to his disciples at Capernaum in the Syriac language, and that, as there is no word in that language tantamount to " represent," the verb " is" is employed to convey the meaning of represent. I beg to remind my friend Mr. Pope, that he has fallen into a notable error on this point — he should have borne in his recol- lection, that although our Lord (who never wrote any) then rpoke in the Syriac tongue, the evangelist wrote his gospel in the Greek language, which is not deficient in a word signifying " io reprefiefit.^^ Whatever question then may be raised relative to ihe language in which our Saviour spoke, his words have been transcribed into Greek, and I suppose Mr. Pope will not accuse the evangelists of misrepresenting Jesus Christ. Mr. Pope also formed an argument touching the ancient liturgies in the Syriac tongue. What is the fact ? Every day in the year at St. Peter's in Rome, mass is ceiebjated in the Syriac, but the words of th« MK) THE WANT OF UNITY OF institution of the sacrament are retained in the original Grpusit8 opinions respecting the time of celebratirg Easter ; yet thej? did not violate Christian unity, as their less worthy successors have done on the same custom — the latter, as Eusebius states having permitted the former to administer the eucharist in his church. With regard to the re -baptizing those who had been baptized by heretics, the church of Africa, adopting the iume* morial usage of the ancient churches of Cappadocia, Cilicia, and Galatia, differed from that of Rome ; yet this difference occasioned no schism between them. St. Cyprian, some will be surprised to learn, held washing the feet to be a sacrament : and St. Augustin differed from St. Jerome, respecting the intro- duction of Jewish rites and usages into the Christian church ; but they did not depart from Christian charity. From the writings of St. Irenaeus, St. Firmilian, and Justin Martyr, we learn, that they who required conformity in matters, not evidently funda- mental on scriptural grounds, were regarded as violators of Christian unity. — (Iren. Ap. Euseb. 1. v, c. 24. Firm. Ap. Cyp. ep. 75, J. Mart. Dial, cum Tryph.) Hear the sentiment laid down in the Maynooth class book, p. 17 : " Schismatics, even those who should not err in doctrine, by the act of schism alone are excluded from the church, and are without the way o salvation." Or in other words, those, however correct their doctrines, who separate from the church of Rome, are excluded from the church of Christ, and are without the way of salvation ! I assert that the unity subsisting in the church of Rome is a unity without examination. Since the commencement of the discussion, 1 received a letter from London, as did Mr. Maguire also (for the letter to me states that a duplicate was sent to Mr. Maguire.) It is signed '' An Inquirer after Truth." The writer remarks, that before the discussions took place m Ireland, his mind was not troubled with doubts — but that since these were held, he has been reading the scriptures under the direction of the Roman Catholic Archbishop of Dublin, and finds many difficulties raised in his mind in reference to the sacred volume. The unity of the church of Rome is, in truth, a unity that will not bear the test of examination. We have heard of the faith of the collier commended by Cardinal Bellarmine. The collier, when asked what it was he believed, answered : " I beUeve what the church believes." The other rejoined — " What then does the church believe V* He replied readily — " The church believes what I believe." The other anxious to bring him to the point, once more resumed his inquiry : " Tell me then, I pray you, what it is which you IHL eKOri:STANT CHURCIIKS. 2 7 J and th.^. church believe I" The only answer the cumei could give, was — "Why, truly, Sir, the church and I, boh believe the same thing /' — See Bellarmine de arte bene moriendif lib. ii, ch. 9, Hear a schoolman. Gabriel Byel maintains that, *'• If he who impHcitly believes the church, should think, misled by natural reason, that the Father is greater than the Son, and existed before him, or that the three Persons are things locally distant from one another, or the Ivke, he 'is not 1 heretic, nor sins, provided he do not defend this error pertinaciously, for he believes what he does believe, because he thinks that the church believes 60, subjecting his opinion to the faith of the church. For though his opinion hi 3rroneous, his opinion is not his faith, nay his faith in contradiction to hia opmions, is the faith of the church. What is still more, this implicit faith not only defends from heresy and sin, but even constitutes merit in heterodoxy itself, and preserves in that merit one who forms a most heterodox opinion, because he thinks the church beheves so." — Dr, CampbeWg Lectures on EccL His. vol. ii, p. 259. Mr. Maguire. — With respect to the 5th chapter of St. John I do assert, and I beg the public to bear it in mind, that the expression legevg is applied to the twenty-four who sat around the throne, and were called neither more nX)r less than Presby- ters. I am satisfied to let the passage be examintd t>y any learned man ; I here offer to submit the question to the adjudi- cation of any two individuals. — Let Mr. Pope select or^- and I shall select another, and then let them examine the corner Mr. Pope has recurred to the quibble about the difference bt veen the church of Rome and the Catholic church. I apped.1 to )ur- selves if I have not quoted upwards of twenty Fathers in refu- tation of the idle argument which Mr. Pope endeavours to construct on this matter. Have I not amply shown that the term " Catholic," was applied to all the churches in Asia, in Africa, in Spain, in Gaul, &c, &c, holding communion with the See of Rome ? I have proved that the holy Fathers all agreed in this interpretation of the words " Cathohc church." It is a mere play upon words with which my opponent has amused you. 1 have laid before you abundant evidence that before the Reform- ation, the'e existed no other church which claimed to itself the title of " Catholic," but the church of Rome. With regard to the doctrine which Mr. Pope has broached, on the subject of ar.ity, T will only say, that all sects in the world are in the spirit of union, according to Mr. Pope. But our Saviour has corn- Dared the unity of his church to the union subsisting between lim and his heavenly Father ; therefore, that union must be of a most intimate nature, and the church must endeavour to imitate the wonderful union existing between God the Father, and God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost. With regard to the differ- ences of which Mr. Pope spoke, as existing in the Cathr»lic thurchf they involve not principles, and ^hat is a sufficient answer i74 THE WANT OF UNITY OF to his very silly objection relative to the Dominicans, the Frsih ciscans, and the Jesuits. Mr. Pope has also introduced th« Jansenists — they were long since condemned b) the Catholic church in the bull Unigenitus. As to St. xlmbrose, 1 have already quoted at length his opinions on the necessity of unitv. Wifb respect to texts of scripture, I fearlessly appeal to every gentle- man who hears me, whether I have not brought forward more texts of scripture than Mr. Pope — whether my texts have not be<^n clearly and decisively in support of the doctrine which I maintain — and whether Mr. Pope has not offered violence to the meaning of scripture, by the strange and far-fetched interpreta- tions which he has sought to impose upon this learned assembly ? I ask any candid man here, whether Mr. Pope's explanations of some texts have not been more difficult and abstruse than the texts themselves? If such be not the fact, I know nothing of scrip- ture. What right has Mr. Pope to set up his private judgment in preference to the opinions of the Apostles who were inspired] He quoted the royal prophet as to the eastern kings who had combined against God ; and he introduced this as an argument against the existence of unity in the Catholic church ! Was here a church established then? If there were, he must then, ^o sus^HiD his arguments, prove that it was lawful for the eastern king to divide themselves from that church, and to become sch inatics. there were not a church government then existing, his argument falls to the ground. I have laid before you this day, plain and obvious texts of scripture, regarding the necessity of dnity in ihe church of Christ. The doctrine which I advocate, I have shown to be distinctly founded upon scripture. I have defied Mr. Pope to show, that in regard to unity, there is any distinctior^ made between essentials and non-essentials in scrip- vure. The texts which have been quoted equally refer to matters of discipline, and of doctrine. If men will not be united- -if divisions, no matter how they originate, will exist; if people K>ecome split into sects and parties, and endeavour to tear their common parent asunder, surely the evil is not to be laid at the door of the Catholic church. She is not to be held accountable for those of her children who may disobey her — who violate charity, and disturb that peace which our Lord bequeathed to his church — " My peace I leave you — my peace I give you ; not as the world giveth do I give you." No plea — no pretext can ever justify a departure from that Christian harmony, of which our Saviour set an example, th^ necessity of which we find recommended from his sacred lips, and which he bequeathed to his church, to be observed and THE P.IOTESTANT CHURCHES. 275 Br.ainiained without condition or alteration, unto the end of the world — " My f eact I leave you — my peace I give you ; not as the world givelh do 4 give you." — John, xiv, 27. Mr. Pope quotes the holy Fathers ; it is rather extraordinary, indeed, that the Fathers should be quoted to show that unity in the church is not necessary. They affirm that there is no having the inheritance of Peter without the faith of Peter. So I believe. Thtire can be no inheritance possessed without faith ; and there can be no real faith, according to scripture, where there is not rharity and Christian union. I have prove d that the unity which is commanded by our Saviour, which was preached by the Apostles, and which was taught by their disciples in the first ages of Christianity, exists alone in the Catholic church. Mr Pope says that the unity which exists among Protestants is suf ficient. I call upon him to prove his position upon the authority of the word of God. He has quoted the church of Rome with regard to councils, &c, to show that she had not unity. But since the Reformation, it is admitted by Protestants, that they have no such unity. The illustrious Grotius lamented the schisms which existed among Protestants in his days ; and he said it would be almost better to return to Popery than io remain divided as they were. Luther himself threatened to return to Popery if their divisions increased. When he saw Calvin denying openly the real presence of Christ in the eu jiiarist, he lamented that he had ever quitted Popery. With regard to councils, the assertions of Mr. Pope are mere assumptions, and it is a well known rule in logic, that ' quod gratis asseritur, gratis negari debet.' I again challenge Mr, Pope to show from scripture the distinction between essentials and non-essentials. I call upon him to prove that there is a distinction drawn in scripture between doctrine and disciphne. He must prove that there is a difference upon an article of faith or that there exists a distinct breach of communion in the Cath- oUc church, in order to establish his position, that she aoes not possess unity. Differences as to private opinions amotigst pri- vate individuals he may prove, but these individuals did not Hist'irb that peace, and concord, and unity, which Christ left to his church, and which form some of the noblest marks — the most powerful arguments of her divine origin. He may show the existence of differences, not relating to matters of faith or discipline in the church, but they are not dif- ferences of (. pinion which place those who entertain them out of the church. He may prove the existence of such differences, but a breach of communion he caniK)t establish. He asks for Proofs that Peter was appointed the besd of the churrh. I thiolr HlQ THE WANT OF LMTY OF I have furnished ample proofs of the fact. He asserts chat it i« robbing Christ of his rights. This is a mere play upon words. There is no doubt that Christ in heaven is the sole and invisible head of the church — but knowing the frailties of man, our Lord deemed it necessary, in order to preserve the principle of unity, to appoint a visible head of his church to act as his instrument and agent upon earth. Is there ought in this derogatory fron? the majesty of God? Is not the king the visible head of t,h« established church of England ? His majesty, no doubt, will be highly pleased with Mr. Pope for denying his spiritual supe- riority. I always imagined that his majesty was the head of the Protestant church in these countries — the centre and bond of connection to keep it together. He is to preserve the homilies and the thirty-nine articles, and not to allow even the slightest deviation to be made from them. They contain certain rules respecting faith and discipline in the Protestant church, and the king is bound by oath not to suffer the slightest deviation from them. The king swears to support the establishment, and the test act excludes all from situations unless they take oaths which bind as to certain forms and rules of faith. The elements of union have been scattered in the Protestant churches, and they can never again be brought into combination. I should be glad to know from Mr. Pope, what did our Saviour mean when he baid to Peter : " Simon Barjona, lovest thou me more than these ; he saith to him, deai Lord, thou knowest that I love thee. He saith to him, Feed my Lambs,'' John, xxi, 17. Our Saviour repeated the interrogatory ; Peter made a simila reply, and our Saviour again said ; '* Feed my Lambs." Bu when he repeated the question a third time, Peter became troubled, and exclaimed ; '* Lord thou knowest all things — Thou knowest that I love thee." Our Saviour then said to nim : *' Feed my sheep." Now, I defy the ingenuity of my friend to explain away thest. words. This address was not made to the other Apostles, but personally and individually to Peter. There is nothing in the fold of Christ but sheep and lambs (clergy and laity) ; ovei them Peter was appointed supreme pastor, and invested with the authority of government. Our Lord afterwards says to Peter : " 1 will give tx) thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven, and whatroever Ihou shalt bind upon earth, it shall be bound also in heaven, and whatsoevei ihou shall loose upon eartk , it shall be loosed also in heaven." Could Mr. Pope quote any text of scripture against me equally lAM plain a^d obvious as the foregoing? Was he able to adduce any direct text in support of his private interpretation — while on (he other .land T proved all my doctrines by manifest texts ol THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 277 penplures and upon the words of Christ and his Apostles. Mr. Pope endeavours to show that Peter could not be the successoi of Christ, as this evil would follow that the successor of Petei would be a greater man than St. John the evangelist, who lived after the death of Peter. To such straights has my opponent been reduced. He cannot deny that Peter had a successor. Why not prove that some difference on matters of faith arose between him and St. John ? But the successors of Peter were blessed with humility, charity, and divine faith — the first thirty- four of them suffered martydom. If they had happened to have a difference, they would have recurred to St. John for his advice and guidance — but that would not be denying their right to suc- ceed Peter, as the visible head of the church on earth. "If I then," said our Saviour, "being Lord and Master, have washed youf feet, you also ought to wash one another's feet." That act, I affirm, with the Catholic church, to be an act of humility, not a precept — but it is, to all appearance, a positive precept, and I repeatedly called on my friend to show by what authority he negle ted to observe it. He drew a distinction indeed between hot and cold climates, and the greater necessity which exists for washing the feet in the former than in the latter. But no such distinction is drawn in the text — the commandment of the Saviour is not to be regulated by hot and cold countries. He talks of the council of Jerusalem, and of Peter having spoken first — if Peter had spoken last what would that be to the argument? St. James gave a good advice, which was inspired by the Holy Ghost, and because it was adopted by Peter, there- fore Peter could not be the head of the Church ! This conclu- sion is certainly not agreeable to the premises — He says that no Pope claimed the title of ecumenical pastor until the year 600 — w^hy there was no such word as ec.umenical in existence till that period. The word ' consubstantiality' is not in scrip- ture, and does not occur till 300 years after the Apostles, when we find it in the Athanasian creed, and the decrees of the coun- cil of Nice. If Mr. Pope's argument then on this head be valid against the supremacy of the Pope, it is equally valid against the Athanasian creed, and he should deny both. I admit the fact of Stephen throwing the body of the Pope into the Tyber, and the greater scoundrel he was, I affirm, for so doing. I admit there were some bad characters among the Popes. But 1 have already drawn a distinction between infallibility and im- peccability. Besides, I never said that the infallibility of the Pope formed a portion of my creed. Christ promised his church that she would never fail in the faith, but that promise never in plied, that her children should be incapable of sin. Ag I have already told you, *he^e were eleven monstrous bad Popei 24 278 THE WANT OF UNITY OF out of nearly three hundred good and virtuous characters whicb adorned the chair of Peter. Surely that is a vast majority to counterbalance the few bad names. Honorius was not a heretic. [t was not for heresy that he was deposed, but because he had been put into the chair by temporal power. He was suspected of being favourable to the Monotholites ; but I deny that it was ever proved that he was a Monotholite himself. I venture to affirm, that Mr. Pope will be called to an account for having denied the king's supremacy ; and it will be necessary, perhaps, for some of his friends to intercede for him with his majesty, lest, like Chancellor Moore and Bishop Fisher, he be, without further ceremony, committed to the tower. In that case he may, for once, have to acknowledge the efficacy of the interces- sion of saints, I maintain, that vegevg is applied in the New Tes- tament to the Apostles. But whether it be, or not, does not much matter for the argument. There is no sacrificing priest in the strict sense of the term, but Christ himself, who is at once the priest and victim, who is offered up as a perpetual sacrifice to fulfill the prophecy of Malachy, that in all parts of the worlJ a sacrifice ?'mll be offered to the Lord. "For from the rising of the sun to the going down of the same, my name IS great among the Gentiles ; and in every place a sacrifice is made, and a clean oblation offered to my name ; because my name is great among the Gentiles, saith the Lord of Hosts." If there had been only a single sacrifice offered up in Jeru- salem, according to Mr. Pope, then this prophecy of Malachy would not have been fulfilled. Mr. Pope has, by weak and idle Arguments, endeavoured to show that there could have been no successor to Christ. If Christ left a sacrifice and appointed a successor in his church, neither blasphemy nor wickedness can be imputed to those who believe the fact. — Christ promised that his church would never fail, and that he would remain with her in spirit, till the consummation of ages. But Mr. Pope, to sus- tain his argument, must prove that the whole church was for the space of 90 J years buried in darkness and error. Let those who will, believe it — I want not to make the Pope greater than other men. He is, like myself, a man, liable to the frailties of hu- man nature. The infallibility of the Pope is no doctrine of mine. Mr. Pope says, that he does not differ on essentials with the jhurch of England, and yet he denies more than one half of her articles of faith. Either he holds them essential or he does not. n the latter case his separation is unjustifiable, and he evidently *hows that he misunderstands the maxims of the gospel : he rends fhe seamless garment of Christ without cause. He should not for trifling reasons disturb that harmony which Christ ordained •should subsist between the members of his church — he shouW THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 27S conunue to hold communion with the bishops of the established chun'.h, and not set up a conventicle of his own. He sbould not break communion ne in minima pariicula. The holy Fathers held schism and disunion to be mortal sins. Mr. Pope spoko of a letter which he had received from London, and which he would have us suppose came from a reformed Catholic, anothei Blanco White. But latet unguis in hei^ha. I got a copy of the same too. I suspect that it came from the opposite party, and was intended to frighten me from this discussion. It was proba- bly a ruse employed to make me retreat, that my friend then, instead of suffering a defeat, might raise the shout of victory. Mr. Pope. — As to the word leqevg in the 5th of the apoca- lypse, the term in that passage is clearly bestowed upon pres* byters in heaven. My friend has appealed to any learned men o\\ the subject. He may prefer an ecclesiastic ; I therefore nominate Mr. Singer ; let Mr. Maguire name his referee. [Mr. Ciynch ivas then named by JVLr. JVlaguire^'] Mr. Maguire has not answered my quotation from the Psalms, on the ground in which I made it. I brought it forward merely as evidence, that unity, abstractedly considered, is not a proof of the true church. As to the distinction of essentials and non-essentials, I have shown that it was recognized by St. Paul, in the differences which existed in the church of Rome in his day, and which he allowed to continue. The scriptures, therefore, does make this distinction. The sacred volume, Mr. Maguire asserts, requires an agreement in discipline as well as in matters of faith ; and yet he before informed us that the church of Rome agrees, not in matters of discipline, but in matters of faith, and has therefore contradicted himself. I have already entered into the question of the apocryphal books, and shall not now reconsider it. Ac- cording to Mr. Maguire, the church has tn)o heads — Christ and the Pope : so it appears that Mr. Maguire thereby makes the church of Christ a monster. He refers me to the Saviour^s address to Peter, " Feed my sheep." — Augustine, (De Agone Christ, c. 30) and Ambrose, (De Dign. Sacred, p. 336) as I have already shown, declare it as their opinion, that Christ gave this privilege not to Peter only, but to all pastors. As Peter had denied the Saviour, our Lord saw it necessary to re-instate him in the apostolic office ; thrice did he address him in doing BO, in reference to his threefold denial. Here observe that IrentBus informs us, that Peter was not the only founder of the rhurch of Rome, but Paul also : *' Fundantes igitur et instuentes beati apostoli (Petrus et Paulus,) ecclesiam (Romanan) Lino episcopaluro administrandae ecclesije tradiderunt Suc- cedit auteniei Anacletus. Post eura tertio loco ab apostolis cpiscopatun lorlilur Clemens.'" 280 THE WANT OF UNITY IF "The blessed Apostles, therefore, (Peter and Paul,) founding and arrang- ing the (Roman) church, delivered the episcopate for governing the church to Linus. But A nacletus succeeds to him : after him, in the third place, from the apostles, Clement obtains the episcopate." My friend has said, if Cnrist appointed the Popes as supreme, the exercise of their office would not be an assumption — but the appointment is the very matter at issue. We. have no ground either from reason or scripture to prove, that the Pope should bo regarded as supreme bishop. As to the supremacy of Pe'. r: if Peter was bishop of Rome, is it not remarkable, that Paul un writing to the church of Rome, should not mention the name i>f Peter I and after Paul had gone to that city, is it not strange that he should make no mention of Peter in his epistles written from that city to several churches. In the 4th of Colossians, 10th and 11th verse, he says, that only Aristachus, and Mark, and Justus, were his helpers in the kingdom of God : if Peter had been at Rome, would he not mention him as a fellow-helper? On his trial all fled, — (2 Timothy, iv, 16.) Are we to suppose that Peter forsook him in the hour of his extremity. If Peter were really the bishop of Rome, I think you will agree with me, that he was at least non-resident. I am told by Mr. Maguire that there were at least eleven bad Popes. This is a great acknowl* igment. Genebrard, a Roman Catholic writer, how- ever, inarms us, that "Per annos fere 150, Pontifice circiter 50, a Jonanne scilicet octavo usque ad Leonem IX, a virtute majorem prorsus defecerunt, apostatici potius quarn apostolici." ^^ For nearly 150 years, about fifty Popes, namely, from John the Sth to Leo the 9th, revolted altogether from the virtue of their predecessors, being rather apostate than apostolic,^^ So that we have about 50 bad Popes instead of 11. A proof that Pope Honorius was a Monotholite heretic, shall appear in the printed report.* My triend has admitted, that there is no such officer IN THE CHURCH OF ChRIST AS A SACRIFICIISG PRIEST. Mr. ftlaguire has quoted a passage from the book of Malachy. I hold that the oblation there spoken of, is the sacrifice of praise and thanksgiving, and spiritual service : the repitition of the sacrifice of Christ would imply, that the sacrifice on Calvary was insufficient. ♦The following passage from Dupin, a Roman Catholic historian, is given in proof kf the above statement : " The Roman church has so plainly acknowledged that Pope Honorius did advance Ihe error of the Monotholites, that, in the ancient breviary, she declares that he wai condemned with the other Monotholites, tor maintaining the doctrine of one will * * ******* It is more just and rational, to give credit to the one general council, where matteri tre examined to the bottom, than to sentiments of some private men, who judge o{ this fact according to their own interest oi prejudices. This will stand f^r certaia ihen, that Honorius was condemned, and jiistlytoo, as an heretic by the dth council. -Dupin's Eccies. Hist. vol. ii, page 16, 3d edtion, Dublin, 172.^. THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 281 ••T beseech you by the mercies of God, (saith the apostle) tlial ye |)i 95»en1 fcur bodies a living sacrifice, holy and acceptable unto God, which is your reasonable service." — (Rotn. xii. 1.) I called your attention to a letter which I had received. It i* stranije that the same idea should have occurrnl to my mind, relative to the writer. I imagmed, that it came f'-om a Trie rid of Mr. Maguire's. I here solemnly declare, that I know not the author, or any thing whatever of the matter, save, that tho fetter came through the post-office to me. I will now show you that divisions have existed in the church of Rome. The Fran- ciscans held the immaculate conception of the Virgin Mary, the Dominicans denied it. We read of the battles between the Dominicans and Jesuits in two popedoms — the Dominicans urging the doctrine of unconditional degrees. The Jesuits and Jansenists maintained a warfare from 1642 to 1705. As the members of the church at Corinth were censured by the iVpostles ^or saying, " I am of Paul, and 1 of ApoUos, and 1 of Cephas ;" h.ivv can these parties escape a similar censure, by their prefer- ence for one person as their peculiar general — -one saying I am of Benedict — another, I am of Francis — and another, I am of Dominick. In the controversy between the Jesuits and Janse- nists, there appeared from the press, the " Torch of St. Augus- tin," '^SnufTers for St. Augustin's Torch," and lastly, "A Gag for the Jansenists." Soon after the Bull Unigenitus was issued, K.nd by this document the purest part of the church of Rome was put down — witness the demolition of Port Royal. " The Bull Unigenitus," says that most learned Roman Catholic, Doctor O'Connor, "was condemned by the Sorbonne immediately after the death of Louis ; and the Jesuit Le Tellier, the Monarch's confessor, was banished to La Fleche, loaded with pubhc execration. The condemnation of the ninety- first proposition, by its enforcing obedience to unjust censures^ loas Jelt to be repugnant to moral obligations. The refusal of the sacraments to those who would not subscribe the bull, disturbed the tranquillity of private life, and caused an insurrection of the magistracy, so that those who persisted in the refusal, were banished the kingdom. Benedict the fourteenth, fearful of the Btorm which thickened every day, issued a brief, declaring that, since he could not condemn the bulls of his predecessors, the bull should be registered, but that those who rejected it, ought to have the sacraments at their own risk^ I wonder, under such cucumstances, what priest would have administered the sacraments 1 *^ Tiiis pohtical middle course was called the law of silence ^ and caused the greatest scandal of all. The Parliaments, disgusted rather than edified by th'.a politu;al middle course in matters of religion, protested against it, and utterly suppressed the bull, as repugnant to the liberties of tlie Gallican Church." — Columbanus, 6, xx. My fiiend has told us, that the Jesuits and Jansonists, the Franciscans and Dominicans, never broke the bond of Chris- tian charity. It is notorious that the Jesuits, ar i the secuiai oi 24* 282 THE WANT OF UNITY OP parish priest.^, are not on the most amicable terms, the lattei being jealous of their interference. We shall see how thet acted. Parsons, the Jesuit, writing agiinst the secular priests, thus describes them : — •*They be mad heads, sv ditious libellers, notorious caluminators, factious, turbulent, of scandalous I: /es, writing egregious, malicious untruths : impu« dent, factious, Mdcked slanderers; they are rebels to, and betrayer? pT ih% Catholic cause." — Parson's ^Spologttej chap, iv, p. 8. On the other side, the Seculars called the Jesuits " Schisma- tics, Donstists, Arians ; who make religion a mere political Atheistical devi<;e." And Watson calls Parsons " An Athcal strategemitor (page 160, Cluodlibets ;) a bastardly vicar ol hell ; a judge paramount on earth under the devil ; a Wolsey in ambition, Midas in immundicity, a traitor in action." And again, he says of all the Jesuits in England, that " They surfeited sorer than Heliogabalus ; that they were taught by their Arch-Rabbis to maintain (with their equivocations) dissimulation, detraction, sedition ; that they were busied in making strife between kings and kings, states and states, priests and priests, raising rebellions, murdering princes, stirring uproars every where : men unworthy to be called reHgious or Catholic, or Christian ; for, however they may boast of their perfection, their holiness, their meditation, and their exercises, yet their plots are heathenish and satani* cal, fit to set Machiavel, Lucian ; yea, Don Lucifer himself to school. Wretched Jesuits, who would have all Catholics depend on the arch-priest, when the arch- priest depended on John Garnet, Garnet upon Parsons, and Parsons on the devil." Mr. Maguire says, that there is no sacrificing priest ; and yesterday, in accordance with the doctrine of his church, he observed, that the sacrifice of the Eucharist is offered in an unbloody manner. I beg to remind him that the Bible says "WITHOUT SHEDDING OF BLOOD THERE IS NO REMISSION." (Heb. ix, 22.) With respect to transubstantiation, I beg to read you an extract from Gage's Survey of the West Indies. Lon. 1655, page 197 ; formerly a priest of the church of Rome. " One day, saying mass in the chief church, after the consecration of the bread, being with my eyes shut at that mental prayer, which the church of Rome calleth the Memento for their dead, there came from behind the altar a mouse, which running about, came to the very bread or wafer-god of the Papists, and taking it in his mouth ran away with it ; not being perceived by an}' of the people who were at mass, for that the altar was high by reason of the steps going up to it, and the people far beneath. But as soon as I opened my eyes to go on with my mass, and perceived my God stolen away, I looked »->oul the altar and saw the mouse running away with it ; which on a sudden aid so stupify me, that I knew not well what to do or say ; and calling my wits together, I thought that if I should lake no notice of the mischance, and any body else in the church should, I might justly be questioned by the In- quisition ; but if I should call on the people to look for the sacrament, then 1 might be but chid and rebuked for my carelessness, which, of the two, 1 thought would be more easily borne than the rigour of the Inquisition.— Whereupon, not knowing what the people had seen, I turned myself unta theni, and called them 'intc the altar, and told them plainly, that whil^ I WM THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 28S in my incmmto prayers and meditations, a mouse had carried away the Bif^rament; and that I knew not what to do, unless thcv would help me to lind it out asain. The people called a priest that was a* Viand, who presently brought in >nore of his coat; and, as if their God hy this had been eaten up, they presently prepared to find out the thief, as if they would eat up the mouse that h id so assaulted and abused their God. 'i hey lighted c.indlea and torches to find out the malefactor in his secret and hidden places of the wal' , and after much searching and enquiry for the sacrilegious beast, they found at last in a hole of the wall, the sacrament, half eaten up, which, with great joy, they took out ; and, as if the ark had been brought again fiom the Philistines to the Israelites, so they rejoiced for their new-found God, whom, with many people now resorted to the church, with many lights of candles and torches, with joyful and solemn music they carried about the church in procession. Myself was present upon my knees, shaking and quivering foi what m^ght b€ done unto me, and expectmg my doom and judgment; and as the sacrame; it passed by me, i observed in it. the marks and signs of the teeth of the mouse, as they are to be seen in a piece of cheese gnawn an4 eaten by it. *' This struck me with such horror, that I cared not at that present moment whether I had been torn in a thousand pieces, for denying pubhcly that mouse-eaten God ; 1 called to my best memory all philosophy concerning substance and accident, and resolved within myself that what I saw gnawn, was not an accident, but some real substance, eaten and devoured by that vermin, which certainly was fed and nourished by what it had eaten ; anc' philosophy well teacheth, "substantia cibi (non accidentia) convertitur in substantiam aliti:" the substance (not the accident of the food or meat) is con* verted 01 turned into the substancs of the thing fed by it ana alimented. Now, here I knew that this mouse had fed upon some substance, or else how coulc the marks of the teeth so plainly appear? But no Papist will be willing tc answer that it fed on the substance of Christ's body — ergo, by good conse- quence it follows, that it fed upon the substance of bread ; and so transub- stantiation here, in my judgment, was confuted by a mouse; which mean and base creature God chose to convince me of my former errors, and made me now resolve upon what many years before I had doubted, that certainly the point of transubstantiation, taught by the church of Rome, is most dam- nable and erroneous; for, besides what before, I observed, it contradicteth the philosophical axiom teaching that "duo contradictoria non possint simul et semr^l de eodem verificari," tiuo contradictories cannot at once and at the self same time be said and verified of the same thing; but here it was so : for here in Rome's judgment and opinion, Christ's body was gnawn and eaten, and at the same time the same body, in another place, and upon another altar, in the hands of another priest, was not eaten and gnawn ; therefore here are two contradictories verified of the same body of Christ — to wit, it was eaten and gnawn, and it was not eaten and gnawn. These impressions at that time were so great in me, that I resolved within myself that bread really and truly was eaten upon that altai, and by no means Christ's glorious body which is in heaven, and cannot be upon earth subject to the hunger or vio lence of a creature." From the circumstance which I now read, we can clearly see Chat transubstantiation has no foundation in fact. In the next place, permit me to remark, if a church be an- swerable for all who break from her communion, then is the church of Rome answerable, upon her own showing, for the various heresies which have from time to time existed. She will not perhaps assent to this doctrine ; why therefore should she charg u.rj Protestant communion with the faults of thosa fc84 THE WANT OF UNITY OF who depart out of it ? If the mother be not anijwerable foi the brood which leave her, then no Protestant church is answerablo but for those within its pale. Upon the authority of J. K. L. it is evident that there are differences in the church of Rome. Scarcely had he entered a foreign univenjity for the completion of his studies, when h^ himself informw us, that he — "Found himself surrounded by the disciples or admirers of D^Alembert, Kosseau, and Voltaire ; that he frequently traversed in company with th(>ni the halls of the Inquisition, and discussed in the area of the holy office those arguments and sophisms, for the suppression of which this awful tribunal wag ostensibly employed ; and that at that time, the ardour of youth, the genius of tiie place, the spirit of the times, as well as the examples of his companions, prompted him to inquire into all things, and to deliberate, whether he should take his station among the infidels, or remain attached to Christianity. Letters on the State of Ireland, by J. K. L. 1825, p. 55. Such is the authority from J. K. L. I assert, that the churcn of Rome is divided as to a standard Bible. The council of Trent gave its opinion, and pronounced its imprimatur, on an edition of the Vulgate, before it was published ! " Quam emen- datissime imprimatur," are the words of the council. The expression, " quam emendatissime," " as correct as possible^^ imphes the inability of the church of Rome to furnish an infalli- ble edition. I asserted that the Sixtine and Clementine editions differed in two thousand places. Mr. Maguire says that he has a copy of the Sixtine Bible. I again call upon him to produce it. I shall now read to you an extract, in order to show that he will find great difficulty in producing a copy : "Biblia Sacra, Vulgata Edit. Sixti V, jussu reco^nita atque edita Rom, typis Vatic, fol. This is the remarkable edition of Sixtus V, suppressed by his successor Clement VIII, who reprinted it in 1592 more correctly. This has corrections pasted over it in great abilndance ; and nothing but its great rarity makes it bring any price. This celebrated and scarce edition of the Bible is called Sixtus the Fifth's, having been translated and printed under the direction of that pontiff As soon as it appeared, it made a considerable noise in the church ; but on account of the many alterations from the ordi- nary text, it was suppressed and proscribed after the death of Sixtus. The Duke of Grafton purchased one on large paper, at Mr. Paris's sale, for 64i. 55. 0^. — (Dr. Adam Clarke's Bibliographical Dictionary, vol. i, p. 202.) Let Mr. Maguire now produce his Sixtine Bible. Divisions exist in the church of Rome, as to the extent of the temporal power of the Pope. On this subject Bellarmino tells us — "There are three opmions. First, that the Pope, by divine right, has an iinlimited power (plenissnnam potestalem^ over the whole world in political ts well as ecclesiastical matters. A second opinion (which he calls a heresy^ rather than an opinion) is in the opposite extreme ; that the Pope has not by divine right, any temporal power ; nor can in any way command secular prin(^es. much less depose them, even though they may d 3serve to be other* Wiae deposed : nay, tiiat it is contrary to the law of God tliat the spiritual THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 286 tnd temp jral swords be both committed to the same hand. The third opinion lies between the two former, and is commcnly held by Catholic diviiieSt namely, that the Pope, as Pope, has not directly and immediately any tern poral, but only a spiritual power; nevertheless, that by reason of the spirituaLy he has at least indirectly, a certain powers and that supreme in temporals,^'' — Df P«.oni. Pont. 1. iv, c. 5. § 15. The council of Lyons maintained the right of the Pope tvi depose princes. If I were a Roman Catholic, and were anxious tc know whether tht Pope possessed that right, although if a 1 rans-alpine, I must believe the doctrine, how can I reconcile it with the declaration of the Apostle : *• He that resisteth the power, resisteth the ordinance of God ; and they that resist, purchase to themselves damnation ; for princes are not a terror to the good work but to the evil." — Rom. xiii, 1, 2, 3. Delahogue endeavours to get out of difficulties of this nature, by saying, " The church wished to define nothing concerning the celebrated contro- versy between the French and Italian churches, as is evident from those things which were done in the council of Trent, and from what we shall mention in the article concerning the prerogatives of the Roman pontiffi Therefore neither of these definitions is sufficiently clear to demand assent : hence different opinions concerning this question do not militate against unity of doctrine, which consists in this, that all doctrines are assented to, which have been clearly defined by a council assuredly general." — p. 51. certo CBCumenica. So that a man is left in doubt on such momentous points, by an infallible church, she not having defined the matter with sufficient clearness : a man therefore may maintain opinions different from those of others without any breach of unity. Upon the authority of Dr. Doyle, there is no standard as to doctrine in the church of Rome. In his examination on oath before the House of Lords, p. 502, he observes, " Besides the articles enumerated in the creed of Pius IV, there are others to be received as of faith. These are defined in the sacred canons of which some a7'e received entire, some in part, and of which no account can be obtained from the formularies to which the Roman Catholic bishops have referred as authentic." Dr. Doyle here states that some of the sacred canons arc to be received entire, some in part. Who then is to decide, what canons are to be received, and what rejected 1 How, I would ask, is the ignorant peasant to decide? Is he to go to his priest ? The matter, in truth, resolves itself into this, that the priest is the infallible organ of the church in the estimation of the people. The differences in the church of Rome are also great as te councils. The French church receives the council of Con* stance in ioto^ others do not. Bellarmine gives us the varieties of opinion as to general councils. He furrishes a list of general councils, partly confirmed and partly rejected ; (De Concili - 1. i, c. O.) and (in c. v. and de Rom. Pont 1. iv, c. 11^) be says THE WANT OF UNITY JF that those councils allowed to be general were njiircd by ik^ interpolations of heretics. The council of Basil once cecmne- nical, afterwards became, we are told, a schismatical conventi- cle. — (Bellarmine de Eccl. Mil. c. 16.) Is there then any standard of faith to be found in that church in which such doubts exist, as to its councils arid canons. The coancil of Constance, the Pope's legate concurring decreed that a council was above the Pope. — (Bellarm. de Rom. Pont. 1. ii, c. 11.) That of Constance deposed three Popes, and set up another ; while the council of Florence and Trent decreed, that the Pope is above a council. Here we have council against council. He has not informed us, what are the characteristics of a general council. Is it the orthodoxy of the doctrine which is to characterize a council, or is it the council which is to characterize the doctrine ? If the former, why should the council of Tyre be rejected, which was summoned by the same authority as that of Nice ? If the latter, who is to decide upon the characteristics of a general council 1 Thus I have gone in some degree over the same ground of argument that I traversed the second day ; by which I showed you that infallibility does not exist in the church of Rome. Some of the arguments which destroy its claim to infallibility, it is plain, overturn its pretensions to unity. The first council of Lyons has been doubted by some. The fifth Lateran by others. The fifth council, assembled at Constantinople, was held in defiance of Pope Vigilius; yet it has been received by his successors ; and in fine throughout " the church" as ai oecumenical council. Vide Baron, in Justiniano et Vigilio torn. 7, et Sirmund. Praefat. in Secund. Let Mr. Ma^uire come to the point — let him, if he please, bring forward his catalogue of sects, and his stories about fana- ticism ; but let him also answer my questions, why councils have been against councils ? and how his church can escape the anathema, which the council of Ephesus pronounced on any who should add to the Nicene confession of faith ? Mr. Maguire . — I called upon my friend Mr. Pope to prove ihat there is a distinction drawn in scripture between essentials and non-essentials. What he has adduced from St. Paul to the Corinthians makes against hnn. St. Paul rebukes the Corin- thians because some amongst them said they were of Paul, others of Cephas, others of Apollos, and others of Christ ; and he condemns their indulging in such frivolous contests. But faith, morality, and discipline had not been violated, and it ia very foolish to bring this text forward as a proof that differenceg u«eife tillowed to exist. St. Paul on all occasions insisted upon THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 28t the necessity of charity ; he tells us himself, that if he possessed faith sufficient to move mountains — that is, a faith of the strongest description — and had not charity, it would profit him nothing.. In this instance the Corinthians were guilty of a breach of charit} not of faith or discipline ; they were making contentions and divisions as to the superior preaching of Paul or of Cephas, afiO St. Paul calls upon them equally to give up such frivolous cor>- tentions, and to live in charity. This text, '^^ugh quoted l>T Mr. Pope, obviously makes against him, for here we iind tl e Corinthians condemned for differences which did not involve matters of faith, morality, or discipline. The arguments adduced by Mr. Pope against my church, are founded upon a great misconception of her doctrines. He hag throughout manifested a surprising ignorance of her real tenets. He has resorted to a negative argument to prove a positive fact. Because St. Paul, in his epistle to the Romans does not speak of Peter, therefore Peter was never at Rome. Because St. Paul wrote an epistle to the Romans relative to the discharge of their moral and spiritual duties, and helped Peter in his mis- sion, therefore St. Peter was not the successor of Jesus Christ upon earth. — A notable conclusion truly ! I affirm that our Saviour appointing a visible head for his church upon earth, acted in nowise derogatory to his heavenly character, but did that which was worthy of divine wisdom. My friend, by negative arguments, seeks to deprive us of a visible head — now Catholics acknowledge the Pope to be the successor of St. Peter, the visible head of the church on earth, and the agent and instrument of the invisible head, Jesus Christ, who is hoaven. You are to decide whether you will believe the holy Fathers, or my friend Mr. Pope — you must reject either one or other, for they are directly opposed. Mr. Pope has made a quotation from Genebrardus. 1 affirm that if the context of the author be examined, it will not be found to prove any thing against Catholic doctrine. Mr. Pope seeks to establish the fact of disunion in the church by a reference to the battles amongst the Jesuits and Dominicans on the subject of the Con- ception. With regard to every thing which has not been defined by the Catholic church, every Catholic is at liberty to entertain his private opinions ; toe church has not thought proper to definu any thing but what is necessary for the preservation of the de- posit of faith. Mr. Pope recurs to the argument relative to the sacrificing priest. I have already said, that taking the words in the strict and rigorous sense, Christ ^an alone be called the sacrificing priest. He is the Assistans Pontifex futurorum boaorum. Christ himself is both the priest and the victim, oi te^ St Augustin has it, ha is the pnest himself offerings stn^ 288 THE WANT OF UNITY OF himself the victim. The priest pronounces the words : Christ performs the action, therefore the priest himself does not tran- substantiate. With regard to Columhanus, I deny that he is to be quoted on this subject as an authority against the Catholic church. His lucubrations on this subject have not been ap- proved of. It is remarkable, that Mr. Pope quotes as Catholii historians those only who have risen in opposition to the recog- oisod and lawful authority of the church. I now come to the man who was converted by the mouse. \\ ha< a powerful argument against the doctrine of transubstan- liation ! Mr. Pope imagines that he has caught me in a mouse- trap, but I will show that I can squeeze myself out of it. 1 worship a Saviour, who suffered himself to be spat upon and to be scoffed at. In his divine humility he endured all, and would not retaliate upon his enemies. He was treated as a common malefactor — he was crucified on the cross between two thieves — he was covered with every species of indignity and contumely, yet he prayed to his heavenly Father to forgive his enemies, for they knew not what they did. He was a scandal to the Jews, and a folly to the Gentiles. The indignities which our Saviour suffered from the Jews, should be an argument, according to the principles of Mr. Pope, against the divinity of the Redeemer — an argument which has been plausibly put forward, both by Jews and Gentiles. He says, the church of Rome is answera- ble for all heretics. They had been her adopted children, no doubt, but they abused their right — they rejected her authority, ir.ii she banished them from her o-a account of their scandalous conduct, as rebellious and unnatural children. They are gone out from her. He who left the ark of Noah was drowned in the deluge. I defy my friend to point out any substantive error in the Six- tine edition of the Bible, or to prove that any material alterations were made in the Clementine edition. The council of Trent commanded that a copy should be made out quam emendatissime. Though there was nothing substantially erroneous in the edition then extant, yet it re'quired many verbal emendations : accord- ingly as he ought, Clement had a pure and correct copy of the Bible made out. Mr. Pope has recurred to the question of infal- libility but T shall not be drawn by such a manoeuvre from the subject before us. The doctrine of the priest may be infallibly true, although he himself may be very fallible. The priest is the organ of infallibility, as long as he teaches the true doctrine of the Catholic church ; and I here pubhcly assure you, that if a priest broached any doctrine contrary to that church, when preach- ing from his altar, the people would close their ears against th« new doctrine, and either turn him out of the chafiel or retire THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES 28S themselves. Mr. Pope has aoain alluded to the general coun- cils, and has endeavoured to raise some cavilling objectior s with respect to the council of Basil. Though that council had been lawfully convened, yet, when eighty-nine Arian bishops were nitroduced by the Emperor, the Catholic bishops left the assem- bly, and refused to sit in council with the heretics. This is the ijouncil, forsooth, which Mr. Pope quotes against me ! I already told you, that in the commencement the council was regularly convened, and therefore legitimate. Here lies the quibble of my ingenious friend. But the junta of Arian bishops created disgust and alarm in the minds of the orthodox bishops, and they accordingly quitted the heretical assembly. I have here a list which I shall now read to you, containing an enumeratic::^ of the various Protestant sectarians : " Lutherans, Calvinists, Agricolists, Anabaptists, Re-baptizers, Storkites, Carlostadians, the three latter banished from Wittemberg by Luther for heresy, Muncer (executed for rebellion ; 7000 Anabaptists killed :) Adamites, Apos- tolics, Taciturns, Perfects, Innocents, Libertines, Sabattarians, Ciancukrians, Manifestarians, Weepers, Rejoicers, Indifferents, Sanguinarians, Antima- rians (a sect of Anabaptists ;) Anidronicans, Antitrinitarians, Bacularians ^a sect of Anabaptists, who deemed it a crime to have any other weapon ihan a staff;) Puritans, (a sect of rigid Calvinists, that indulged in various absurdities ; some have killed cats for matching mice on a Sunday, but scru- pulously deferred the execution till Monday ; others have knocked out the heads of their barrels of beer for working on a Sunday, &c, &c, ;) Gtuakers, Rustics, Insurrectionists, Sandemanians, by John Glass — Kiss-of-charity boys. Love-feasts, Seceders, Shakers, Socinians, Southcottians, Swedenbor- gians, or New Jerusalemites, Theophilanthropists, headed by Tom Paine, Universalists, or Salvation every where, Ubiquitarians, Zuinglians, Muggle- tonians, New-lights, Seekers, Armenians, David-Georgians, their author pro- claimed himself the Messiah, Tunkers (not Tinkers,) they deny eternal lunishment. Episcopalians, Familists, or Family of Love, their author held limself above Christ, Fifth-raonarchy-men, Illuminati, Inspired boys, Inde- pendents, Infernalians, held Jesus went to hell and was tormented there, Johnsonians, deny the Trinity and pre-existence of Christ, Jumpers, Groan- srs. Laughers, Latitudinarians, Methodists, Robinsonians,Brownists, Ranters, Baptists, Pedobaptists, cum multus aliis." Here we find tinkers and cobblers, and other such persons, setting up as the preachers of the word of God. Every one of those sects contends bitterly against the principles of the others and all of them differ more from each other than we do from the church of England. Mr. Pope has retailed to you a blasphemous story relati\ e to the blessed Eucharist, upon the credit of an apostate priesi i think it quite unworthy of a foimal reply. I shall merely give you the following story by way of antithesis — it describes pretty accurarely the frantic fits produced by the imaginary workmgs of a certain spirit upon the imagination, highly sublimated with the pride and self-importance rf private judgmenf. The story IS related of a pious Puritan, who, in the presence of our tnx^ eller. 25 I 290 THE WANT OF UNITY OF had executed holy justice on his favourite cat foi iin iinp^oiif violation of the Sabbath — Veni Banbnry, oh! profanum! Ubi vide Puritan um Felem facientem fiireni Gluia Sabbato stravit murem. Arrived at Banbury, oh ! profane ! I there beheld a Puritan, In pious rage hang up torn cat For catching on Lord's day a rat I shall now read to you an extract from Dudithius, a eaxned Protestant divine, in his epistle to Beza : " What sort of people are our Protestants, struggling to and fro, and carrieo about with every wind of doctrine, sometimes to this side, sometimes to that / You may, perhaps, know what their sentiments in matters of religion are to- day : but you can never certainly tell what they will be to-morrow. In what article of religion do these churches agree which have cast off the bishop of Rome ? Examine all from top to bottom, and you will scarce find one thing affirmed by one, which was not immediately condemned by another for wicked doctrine." The same confusion of opinions was described by an English Protestant, the learned Dr. Walton, about the middle of last century, in his preface to his Polyglott, where he says — " Aristarchus heretofore could scarce find seven wise men in Greece ; but with us, scarce are to be found so many idiots. For all are doctors, all aie divinely learned ; there is not so much as the meanest fanatic or jackpudding, who does not give you his own dreams for the word of God. The bottomless pit seems to have been set open, from whence a smoke has arisen which has darkened the heavens and the stars, and locusts have come out with stings, a numerous race of sectaries and heretics, who have renewed all the ancient heresies, and invented many monstrous opinions of their own. These ha^ve 611ed our cities, villages, camps, houses, nay, our pulpits too, and lead the poor deluded people with them to the pit of perdition." Such is the opinion of Dr. Walton, who will not be considered a light authority on the subject. I can also produce another ex- cellent Protestant authority to the same effect: — no less than that of Baxter, the great oracle and organ of the sect of Puritans :— " He who is out of the church is without the teaching, the holy worship, the prayers and discipline of the church ; and is out of the way where the spirit doth come ; and out of the society which Christ is related to. For he is tlie Saviour of the body ; and if once we leave his hospital, we cannot expect the presence and help of the physician. Nor will he be pilot to thera that leave his ship ; nor captain to them that separate from his army. Out of the ark there is nothing but a deluge ; and no place of rest, or safety fw his soul." In 1645, the collected body of ministers protested solemnly against the toleration of sects : and in their remonstrance they say, " We detest and abhor the so-much-endeavoured toleration." And in a provincial assembly, they denominate schism f ^ soul poison,'* THF PROTEST.iNT fllURCHES. 291 111 an)ther provincial meeting they call it : *' A sword in a madman's hand ; a cup of poison in the hands of a ^hild, 1 city of refuge in men's conscienc^"s for the devil to fly to." In short, this, compressed ir to one word, was the general senti- ment ; therefore the general language of these men was, that " Schism is a damnable sin, and whatsoever is contrary to the gospel caw have no right, and therefore should have no liberty." Again, I have the authority of the learned Bayle for :he destructive and ruinous consequences of schism : " I do not know (says he) where one could possibly find out a more grie- vous sin than is that of rending the mystical body of Jesus Christ ; of that spouse which he has purchased at the expense of his own blood ; of that mother whom he has begotten in God ; who feeds us with that milk of under- standing, which is devoid of fraud: and conducts us in the path which leads to eternal happiness. What crime can indeed be possibly greater than to rise up against such a parent ; to defame her through the world ; and to make her children, when they can doit, rebel against her ; tear them by thousands from her womb, in order to drag them to eternal flames ; and not only them, but their posterity forever. Where does there exist a crime of high treason against God, if it be not here ? A husband who loves his wife, and is at the same time assured of her virtue, considers himself more mortally wounded by the calumnies and libels that would make her pass for a prostitute, than 'le would by any injuries proclaimed and pubhshed against himself. Amidst all the crimes into which a subject can fall, there is not any one more grievious than that of rebelling against his lawful sovereign, and endeavouring at the same time to excite as many provinces as he can to dethrone him. INow precisely m the same proportion as supernatural interests exceed all temporal interests, just so does the church of Christ surpass all civil societies. And the consequence, therefore, is, that schism in the church exceeds in the greatness of its criminality, the guilt of all other acts of sedition." " Schism, (says Mr. Wix,) does not prevail merely out of the church, il abounds within it. And among those who profess themselves its membors. very httle attachment to it is toie found. It is, moreover, most seriously lO be lamented, that very many of those, who boast the warmest attachment to her docirines, have arrogated to themselves the knowledge of the gospel, in a sense, which excludes all others from a due conception of it, whose opin ions, or feelings, accord not with their own. In consequence of this, we observe much spiritual disorder ; a variety of opinions of faith, and discipline both in the church, and out of :he church. And thus the greatest injury is inflicted on the unity of the gospel of Jesus Christ." Such, too, is the language of many other writers of the establishment. '* The establishment, (said one of its most eloqueut prelates) is a tree, that .8 shivering to pieces with wedges made out of itself." Dr. Daubeney, a Protestant divine, speaking of the Methodists., Bays, " They are a set of ignorant, self-sufficient enthusiasts, industriously push- ing themselves into every parish, creeping into houses, and leading captive ihose silly persons who are weak enough to be led by them. They are, many of them, of so low a description, as to be obliged to substitute their marks for their names." " In this country (observes M. Stykes) vast sums of money are gaii\ed by schism : and prodigious collections are annually made for the support of iti la nisters. Inferior persons, assuming the situation of teachers, are leadens 292 THE WANT OF UMTY OP of the multitude — Thus in the worship ofcalves, (1 Kings, jii, 33) thepriesU were made of th . lowest of the people. It would now seem, having preach- ers of all sorts, as if we had Moses' wish ; and all the people were propheta —(Num. xi, 28.) Dr. Daubeney informs us, that there was a seminary in Bath " In which hoys are trained for preaching ; and at about twelve or thirteen years of age, wlien considered quahfied for pubUc exhibition, are sent to undertake the services of religion." Speaking of the tiny heroes of the pulpit, Dr. Valpy tells as, ihat one of them, " A lad twelve years old, went about the country preaching extempore. He became popular, and was much admired and patronised." This accounts, at once, both for the multitude of our preach- ers, and for the contusion which they generate ; — preaching i$ now a very profitable^ and a very lazy trade. " Each pious 'prentice freely may dispense Salvation ; licensed now for eighteen pence : And should devotion tempt him from his awl, He'll get his orders, if he gets his call." — Religio Clerici, I could adduce a number of other Protestant authorities, all condemning in the most positive terms the disunion which exists in the Protestant churches. It is unanimously admitted by all, that they have no fixed and common principle to direct them. Mr. Pope set up his private judgment, and would have every man worship it as an idol. He contends that all have a right to exercise their private judgment, and to choose what religion they please. According to his principles, that book which is inspired of God, will be made to dictate 150 different religions — the spirit of truth will be changed into the spirit of error. Every wild fanatic will appeal to private interpretation, and internal illumin- ation. The book of God will be produced to support the most abominable blasphemies, and real religion will be utterly destroyed. It was that devastating principle which superinduced the ruin of the Protestant religion in the Protestant churches of Germany and France. It was by such a principle that the Episcopal church of Scotland was pulled down ; and the same principle will effect shortly similar results in Ireland, in regard to the established church, if it meet with the encouragement it has hitherto received. I call upon the bishops of the established church to step into the breach, and to save their church from utter destruction. If they do not oppose this pri *ciple — if the Catholics do not step forward and perform their duty in counter- acting such a destructive principle, the bishops and parsons of the established church must soon give way to the low, ignorant, pettifogging, self-sufficient preachers of " the word." Thia language may appear strange in my mouth : but I should rathei see the Protestant established church contii ue, than that it should THE PROTESTANT CHURCHES. 293 D« ovei turned by such men. Tenets have been faLely imputed to the Catholics, which they have frequently and publicly denied Our articles of faith have been publicly defined by the church ; and all persons who are willing to inquire, can easily karn what those articles are. Mr. Pope has ridiculed the honest man, of whom Bellarmina speaks, and who, when asked what was his belief, replied, tha* he believed what the church believed. That is my doctrine-- I believe what the church believes, and the church belie\ es what 1 believe. I have been long looking for the particular opinions which constitute the rule of faith professed by my friend — but he has abstained from any thing of the kind. He could not prove, that any three bcioks of the Old or New Testament are absolutely inspired, unlesis, indeed, we admit the authority of his internal evidence. According to him, that internal evidence is a meridian sun, which illuminates the sacred volume. If so — it is strange, that though such a powerful light should be in exist- ence, so many should be involved in darkness, and that there should have been millions of Catholics, who, for 1800 years, could never discover this light, which, according to Mr. Pope, shines forth with such resplendent lusture. But it is but an airy phantom — a wandering meteor which leads not to truth, but to doubt and error. It is the production of heated and enthusiastic imaginations. The ancient heretics laid no claim to internal evidence — ihey denied its existence. They wanted that borrowed light which illumines the Evangelizers of the present day. If th:s internal evidence be so plain and discernable, as Mr. Pope would have us believe, why was it not claimed by the ancient heretics — why did so many millions remain so unconscious of its existence, and why did it continue so long hidden and obscured, as it were by a cloud, until the noon-day of evangelical reformation had arrived 1 How could all this happen, if this light shine forth directing to that city, which is built upon a mountain, and which can be seen by all men 1 Mr. Pope. — Gentlemen, I have already referred to the epistle to ttie Romans, to prove the distinction between fundamental and iion-fundamental doctrines. I admit the evil of exalting one man anove another by saying' '* I am of Paul, and I of Apollos," and we charge the church of Rome with saying, " I am ot Cephas,*'^ ot Peter, though forbidden by St. Paul. *' Whereaj there is among you envying and contention, are you not carnal t,nd walk according to man 1 For wiiile one saith, I indeed am of Paul , and another, I am oi" Apollos •, are you not men ? What then is Apollos and what is Paul ? The ministers of Him whom yo j have beheved > an i ^ B\&:y one as the Lord hath given." — 1 Cor. iii, 3, 4 5. 25* !D4 THE WANT OF UNITY OF In proof that Paul, as well as Peter, founded the chuich oj Rome, I referred to the testimony of Irenaeus. Mr. Maguirc [ am authorized to say, has full permission to consult the librarj of Trinity college, in order to examine my quotations. As to the argument about the Deists, I appeal to men of sense, whether fhat objection has not been answered. The Roman Missal (ir ehe Rubric de Defectibus, circ. Miss. Occurrentibus,) has i whole chapter on the accidents which may occur in the celebra tion of the mass. I beg to call your most particular attentior to that part of said Rubric. As to the number of sects, I would observe, that the Protestants reject many of them. The churcn of Rome has done the same. Why are not real Protestants, as well as the church of Rome, entitled to disclaim alliance with those who are in error ] We have council against council. The council of Ephesus anathematizes any, who should add to the Nicene creed. I ask, is not Pius TV, who has added thereto so many articles, distinctly condemned, as well as all who make use of this creed ? Yet that is the creed adopted by Roman Catholics at this day. The second council of Nice assigns, as one reason for worshipping the image of Christ, that he is not sensibly present on earth, but only in his divinity. — Act. 4, p. 305. It also anathematizes all who assert that Christ was not circumscribed as to his human nature. Is not this the church of one age against the church of another 1 As to the doctrine of intention^ " saltem faciendi quod facit ecclesia,"-— (Trent Cone. Sess. v. can. 11.) I have heard a diiference of opinion expressed — (so much for unity.) At the discussion at Carlow, a Roman Catholic priest, under the juris- diction of Dr. Doyle, asserted tnai the doctrine of intention was merely a probable opinion among divines. The rubric of the Missal says, " If any priest should have before him eleven hosts and should intend to consecrate only ten, not determining which ten he intends, in these cases be does not consecrate, because intention is required. It is otherwise, il thinking indeed that there are ten, he should wish however to consecrate al' Che hosts before him ; for then all will be consecrated, and therefore the priest ought always to have such intention, namely, of consecrating all those which are placed before him for consecration." — Ronwn Missal, Dublin, Richard Coyne, 1822, Rubric de Defect, p. 53. And here permit me to inquire, as transubstantiation depends on the intention of the priest, how is an individual to know whether the priest has the intention? Can he enter into his keart ? In cases where there is no transubstantiation, is there not direct idolatry in worshipping that which, by the acknow- ledgment of the church of Rome, is not God ? and how can anj individual, according to such a principle, be sure that he is not THE PROTESTANT CHUR UHES. 296 guilty of idolatry, the intention of the priest being necessary td transubstantiation 1 The people, therefore, cannot know, even according to their own principles, whether they worship God or not. I shall be told that it is not the fault of the people, for they do not mean to worship that which is not consecrated, but to worship God. So say idolaters — we only worship God through the image. Hence, this mode of arguing would justify idolatry generally. Again ; bear in mind, that this doctrine of intentic n is not confined to the eucharist ; it runs through the whole sys- tem. How iocs Mr. Maguire know whether Popes and Bish- ops, at ordinations, have always intended to ordain? How does Mr. Maguiie know whether he is a priest or not ? He is not certain that the bishop who ordained him, intended to ordain him. Neither does he know whether he is baptized or not ; for unless the officiating priest had intention, the outward ceremony failed : marriage also according to the church of Rome, is null and void, unless intention accompanies the performance of the ceremony on the part of the priest. See, then, the awful results of this pernicious doctrine ! My friend took hold of an expression in an extract from Theo- doret, which I quoted yesterday. I again say, that his argument would fail if he believed in transubstantiation. The change in which he beheved, was a moral change. I admit his language is strong. I shall read to you another passage : — " Jacob, (says Orthodoxus,) called the blood of the Saviour the blood of the grape. For, if the Lord be denominated a vine, and if the fruit of the vine be called wine, and if from the side of the Lord fountains of blood and water, circulating through the rest of his %ody passed to the lower parts ; well and seasonably did the patriarch say. He washed his garments m wine, and his clothes in the blood of grapes. As we then call the mystic fruit of the vine after its consecration, the blood of the Lord, so he called the blood of the true vine, the blood of the grape. — Our Saviour indeed, changed the names ; for to his body he gave the name of the symbol, while to the symbol he gave the name of his blood ; and, having called himself a vine, he thence consistently appUed the appellation of his blood to the symbol. But the scope of such language is perfectly familiar to those who have been initiated into the mysteries. For our Lord required that they who partake ot the divine mysteries, should not regard the nature of the things which they see ; but that in the change of names they should believe that change which is wrought by grace. Inasmuch as he who called his own natural body wheat and bread, and who further bestowed upon himself the appellation of A vine ; he also honoured the visible sympols with the name of his body and blood, NOT CHANGING THEI-f NATURE, BUT ADDING GRACE TC NATURE."— Theod Dial, i, open vol. iv, p. 17, 1&. As to Pope Gelasius, it does not much matter whether the fvork from which I quoted, was written by him or by Gelasius Cyzinicus ; it proves that opposition was made to transubstan- tiation, a doctrine which was groioing at that time. The council of C^alcedon decreed, ♦bat equal honour should 296 THE WANT OF UNITY OP be paid to the bishops of Rome and Constantinople. On the contrary, the Pope is now calkd God's supreme vicar With respect to general councils, Gregory Nazianzen, wr ting in Procopius, says, •* To tell you plainly, I am determined to fly all conventions of bishopi. For I never yet saw a coiKicil that ended happily. Instead of lessening, they invariably augment this evil." Here is the opinion of a man respecting councils, who had himself been present at the second general council. The Marquess of Pescara, Panan, who was present at the council of Trent, as the charge d'affairs of the Spanish ambas- sador, used often to say, that "Hd deserved much credit for being a Christian, after having been present at two elections of Popes, and at one council,''^ — See Literary Life of Don Joaquin Lorenzo De Villanueva, 2d vol. Append. Lo sucecido en el councilio de Trento desde 1561 hasta que se acabo, written by Don Pedro Gonzalez de Mendoza, bishop of Salamanca. Fiom the testimony of a Roman Catholic, you may judge of the purity and principles by which the Fathers of the council of Trent were actuated. Mr. Maguire talks of infallibility being calculated to end divisions. The Inquisition itself cannot sup- press the inward feeHngs of the heart. The church of Rome may succeed in putting down outward dissensions. But such peace is like that of the dogs of Scylla, who howled and barked at each other, and then retreated into the unity of her cavernous womb. The church of Rome, even in her boasted uniformity of wor- ship and ordinances is nOt agreed. For instance, the church of Abyssinia offered about 2C0 years ago, to adopt the Pope as the supreme head of the church. On that occasion the court of Rome did not require that the Abyssinian ceremonies, which were quite different from those of Rome, should be changed. The Pope received the ambassador from the emperor of Abyssinia ; and the pope's secretary declared, that the said emperor should always be considered as the true son of his hoUness. Never- theless, the Abysinians at that time were Eutychians — they cir- cumcised their children ; they observed the Jewish sabbath ; they communicated under two kinds — they did not believe in the absolute necessity of baptism, and rejected the seven sacra- ments. — ** Francis Alvarez, his description of Ethiopia." The Maronites were also united to the church of Rome, because they acknowledged the Pope's supremacy ; still they retained all their own ceremonies, which they performed in thei/ >wn language. — (See the observations subjoined by Rich. Simon, D his French translation of the Italian Jesuit Dandini's Voyagf o Mount Libanus, pubUshed in 12mo. at Paris. See also Euseb Renaudot, Historia Patriarch, Alexand. p. 548.) THE PROTES.TANV CHURCHES. 297 i«urther; I charge Mr. Mi guire himself, with holding prin- tMcs contrary to his own ' i^ t,u> Deacidified using the Bookkeeper process Neutralizing agent: Magnesium Oxide Treatment Date: Jan. 2006 PreservatiofiTechnologies A WORLD LEADER IN PAPER PRESERVATION 1 1 1 Thomson Park Dnve Cranberry Township, PA 16066 (7!?/i\ 770.9 1 1 1 7X I^K n^^c UBHARY OF CONGRESS 017 285 630 5